ἜΧΕΝ ΠῚ δι πὰς ΟΝ vee ” ΠΟΥ͂Ν evan Dovreat tee a File λα area σα wh iby geen She ase tee Ryoho! Cg ath pragagst RRS lee) waht geen a a et dpe ΟΥΤΩΣ anette etre ΡΖ ΩΣ nt we ° nay Siasetett teens ALT ars Τρ ταῖς ee tam tony Vpravesaew neta eo eters ψ 2) κυ "ων. Loree lense bke nee «ἡ οὐ het tT TS hat aa vote ρον Ὁ ΩΣ ZHemocions εν we ; L ν ΓΝ aan εὐ. 9 66 Fi ΤᾺ ἈΠ Phe “Ὁ ΔΝ, ; ᾽᾽ ; i ᾿ ᾿ S&S δ αδιῖι Ὁ ἐν νον ας | Nt im ti | | vA red ὶ τ ἮΝ" τι} ; ἮΝ ᾿ | iy vy, ἣν ὶ γὼ WY A! ᾿ 4 ty νῶν af } a) Wr ee) ἊΝ Ἀν. , ᾿ ᾿ i i ᾿ ᾿ i Be ᾿ " {1} αὶ ΠΥ a at ὌΝΩΝ " ΠΝ ΓΝ HYPONOTA: OR, THOUGHTS ON A SPIRITUAL UNDERSTANDING (2TNESIZ ΠΝΕΥΜΑΤΙΚΗῚ OF THE APOCALYPSE, OR BOOK OF REVELATION. WITH SOME REMARKS UPON THE PAROUSTA, OR ' SECOND COMING OF THE LORD JESUS CHRIST, AND AN APPENDIX UPON THE MAN OF SIN. Pv an Re. Avy 4 “Blessed is he that readeth, and they that hear the words of this prophecy, and keep those things which are written therein.”? Rev. i. 3. : “That ye might be filled with the knowledge of his will in all wisdom and spiritual understanding.”? Coli. 9, * NEW-YORK: LEAVITT, TROW & CO., PUBLISHERS, 2 MDCCCXLIV. Enterep according to Act of Congress, in the year 1844, by Joun R. Horo, in the Clerk’s Office of the District Court of the Southern District of New-York. TABLE OF CONTENTS AND RUNNING TITLES. Preface : Notice to the Reader PA Tey. §. CHAPTER I. Apocalyptic Introduction CHAPTER II. Introductory Epistle to Church in Ephesus, “ “ “ Smyrna, ΣΝ - # Pergamos, - εἰ τ Thyatira, . CHAPTER III. Introductory Epistle to Church in Sardis, . ἐν e Ἢ Philadelphia, - ( Laodicea, Summary of Addresses, CHAPTER IV. The Throne in Heaven, CHAPTER V. The Sealed Book, Retrospect, . CHAPTER VI. Opening of the first seal, ( “ second seal, g «“ third seal, Section. lto 40 . 41 to 48 49 to 57 . 58 to 67 68 to 83 . 84 to 87 88 to 100 101 to 112 113 114 to 132 133 to 143 144 145 to 147 . 148 to 151 152 to 154 Pace. ol iv TABLE OF CONTENTS. Opening of the fourth seal, ᾿ “ ΒΠ} seal, : : (ς ς CHAPTER VII. Sizth seal continued, (part second.) The servants of God sealed, Chorus, Conclusion—contrast, CHAPTER VIII. Section. . 155 to 159 160 to 163 sixth seal—part first—coming of Day of Wrath 164 to 171 . 172 to 176 177 to 183 184 Opening of the seventh seal, and four Jirst trumpets. Seventh seal, The seven trumpets given, . The altar of incense, The first trumpet, The second trumpet, The third trumpet, . The fourth trumpet, The herald of wo, CHAPTER ΙΧ. First wo, and fifth trumpet. The bottomless pit, The scorpion locusts, Retrospect of first wo, Second wo, and sixth trumpet. The four angels loosed, The Euphratean cavalry, Retrospect, . CHAPTER X. Second wo, and sixth trumpet, continued. The mighty angel, Time no longer, The little book . Retrospect, . CHAPTER XI. Second wo, and sixth trumpet, continued. The outer court given to the Gentiles, The holy city, 185 186 187 to 188 . 189 to 194 195 to 198 . 199 to 201 202 to 203 205 206 to 208 - 209 to 216 217 . 218 to 219 220 to 226 226 227 to 229 . 230 to 232 233 235 . 236 to 237 238 to 239 Pace. 55 63 67 75 82 93 96 97 98 101 107 111 113 ti? 120 123 134 138 140 151 153 156 161 164 167 171 TABLE OF CONTENTS. Section. The two witnesses, . ‘ ὃ ‘ ν᾽ F . 241 to 253 The earthquake, ; : . ‘ : . 254 to 255 Retrospect, . : é : : ‘ ; ‘ 256 CONTINUATION OF CHAPTER ΧΙ. Third wo, and seventh trumpet. Song of the chorus, , ) ) Σ : 258 The temple opened in heaven, , F ; 2 Ξ 204 CHAPTER XII. ς Third wo, and seventh trumpet, continued. The woman and the man-child, : i : : 266 The great red dragon, , : : é : 209 The warinheaven, . : ; : ; ὃ 219 The heavenly chorus, 3 Ε 3 : ; : 289 The dragon upon the earth, and persecution of the woman, . 287 to 291 Retrospect, . " : : ; : E : 202 CHAPTER XIII. Third wo, and seventh trumpet, continued. The beast from the sea, : : H : 298 ἰο 807 The beast from the earth, . : : Ε : . 308 to 310 The image of the beast, ε : : : : 311 to 312 The mark of the beast, , : 3 : : . 313 to 314 The number of the name, ; : : : . 315 to 316 Retrospect, . . ς : : : ς . 317 to 323 PART II. CHAPTER XIV. Third wo, and seventh trumpet, continued. The Lamb on Mount Sion, . : ‘ : : . 325 to 328 The first herald, ᾿ : 3 i : 7 329 to 330 The second herald, . 3 ; : ‘ 5 : 391 The third herald, ° Ἶ : ν , : 333 The voice from heaven - : - : , F 337 The rest of faith, 4 , j . : 338 The Son of man on the white cloud, ἴ he 4 - 999 199 207 211 215 227 233 240 248 251 269 274 280 285 292 305 312 315 319 325 327 329 vi TABLE OF CONTENTS. SecTion. Pace. The harvest, . - : 5 ‘ : 341 331 The vintage, 5 : : 5 ‘ ; : 342 333 Wine-press of wrath, . : ; ; : 343 335 Retrospect, . - " : : : : : 345 339 CHAPTER XV. Third wo, and seventh trumpet, continued. The angels having the last plagues, : - : ἱ 947 344 The chorus of victors, . : 5 : : 4 348 345 Song of Moses andthe Lamb, . Om : ;: : 349 347 The temple scene—the seven plagues prepared, é : 353 352 CHAPTER XVI. Third wo, and seventh trumpet, continued. Temple scene continued—vials poured out—first vial, . . 306 to 357 357 Second vial, . : : : : : : 358 260 Third vial, . ; 4 : : 5 : . 8690 to 360 361 Fourth vial, : 3 : : ᾿ : : 361 to 362 364 Fifth vial, . : : : : ; : 363 368 Sixth vial, ; y : ais . ; : 364 370 Spirits like frogs, . > : : : 4 . 365 to 366 372 Warning to watch, ᾿ ᾿ μ 5 : : 367 to 368 375 Armageddon, . : ᾿ : ᾿ : : 369 379 Seventh vial, . . j : : : ; 370 to 374 380 Retrospect, . : : : : : : : 375 388 CHAPTER XVII. Third wo, seventh trumpet, and seventh vial, continued. Vision of the harlot, ν 4 : A : . 379 to 399 395 Retrospect, 5 : : : : 5 : 400 428 CHAPTER XVIII. Third wo, seventh trumpet, and seventh vial, continued. Desolation of Babylon, " : : ; : . 401 to 405 431 Warning call, . : : ; : 3 : 406 to 407 437 Sentence of retribution, : : : 5 : . 408 to 410 440 Conflagration, . : : : : : : 411 445 Anathema, . : : 4 4 : : ; 415 458 Blood-guiltiness of Babylon, . f : ; ; 419 458 Retrospect, . : : : : 5 : 421 460 CHAPTER XIX. Third wo, seventh trumpet, and seventh vial, continued. Chorus and responses, . . : ' ; 4 424 464 TABLE OF CONTENTS. The bridal array, Guests at the feast, The testimony of Jesus, Battle of Armageddon, and heaven opened, The conqueror, The Word of God, : The King of kings and Lord of lords, The herald of defiance, The gathering of Armageddon, The victory, Retrospect, CHAPTER XX. Section. 426 427 428 429 430 433 434 438 439 440 442 Conclusion of third wo, seventh trumpet, and seventh vial. Satan confined, . The first resurrection, Satan released, . Siege of the beloved city, . The last conflict, The great white throne, Heaven and earth flee away, The second resurrection, The books opened, : The sea, death, and hell judged, . The second death, The lake of fire, The day of judgment, . Retrospect, CHAPTER XXI. All things new. The new heaven and new earth, Descent of the holy city, The tabernacle of God with men, ; δ Former things passed away, The promise, The denunciation, Retrospect, CHAPTER XXI—(CONTINUED.) : Vision of the bride, the Lamb’s wife. The holy Jerusalem, The glory of the city, 443 447 451 453 454 455 456 457 458 459 460 461 461 462 463 464 468 469 474 476 480 481 483 Vii Paar. 471 478 474 470 479 480 483 489 491 492 496 571 574 Vill TABLE OF CONTENTS. SEcrTIon, The wall, gates and angels, and dimensions, : : . 484 to 489 Garnishing of foundations, ; : : : . 490 to 497 Twelve gates of pearl, twelve illustrations of one way of access, 498 The street of gold, and the temple, . 4 é .. 502 to 503 The light, . : ; : : 4 : : 504 The open gates, and terms of admission A ; . 606 to 509 CHAPTER XXII. Vision of the bride, continued. The river of life, . : 4 : : 5 . 510 to 511 The tree of life, : : : ; : ; 512 The twelve manner of fruits, ; : : : . 513 to 514 No curse, : 4 : : : Ξ 515 The throne of God and ihe Lamb, and the service of the servants of God, : 5 : : : ‘ . 516 to 517 No night, ; : : : : : ὃ 518 Kingdom and priesthood, . : ς : 4 : 519 Reign of faithful and true sayings, 2 Σ : : 521 Retrospect of Vision of the bride. ᾿ 4 : : 522 Apocalyptic Conclusion, Σ A ‘ : . 626 to 536 Address of Jesus, . ; : : : Ἵ . 587 to 551 Parousia, or second coming, . : ; : . 545 to 551 Summary, . : - : : : 552 Note on the number of the ae APPENDIX. The Man of Sin. Pace. 575 585 596 602 606 609 616 618 620 623 624 629 631 636 637 643 657 672 680 693 695 PREFACE, Ir will be perceived in the following pages, that a design is attributed to the book of Revelation essentially different from that usually ascribed to it. The Apocalypse has been generally supposed to contain a prophetic account of certain political and ecclesiastical changes in the history of the visible church of Christ ; instead of this, it is here taken to be an unveiling of the mysterious truths of Christian doctrine, with an exhibition of certain opposite errors—a revelation made by Jesus Christ of himself—an intellec- tual manifestation; corresponding with what is apprehended to be the Scripture purport of the second coming of the Son of man. This view, it may be said, deprives the New Testament of the con- firmation of its divine origin, drawn from the heretofore supposed fulfilment of certain predictions, in respect to various anti-Christian institutions : the loss, however, if any, appears to be more than compensated by the support of gospel truth gained by a proper understanding of this mysterious volume. As the loss of any confutation of error, derived from the source above alluded to, must be fully counterbalanced by the forcible illustrations of doctrinal principles, to be found in the spiritual construction of this por- tion of Scripture ; a construction exhibiting truth under such a variety of phases, as to supersede in the mind the delusive imaginations from which all error in matters of religious doctrine takes its rise. We suppose, at least, a spiritual interpretation of this book of Revelation calculated to oppose directly not only one, two, or three erroneous systems, but to. x PREFACE. leave no place for falsehood: so operating upon the mind as not only to substantiate the divine origin of the Christian faith, but, at the same time, to give a just view of the spirit and character of the religion itself. It has been well obseryed that the occult meaning of Scripture lan- guage, “in order to have any degree of confidence reposed in it, must har- monize with the texts of Scripture which are plain and direct.”* Accord- ingly, no consideration is claimed for the suggestions here put forth further than they appear to be sustained by the contents of the sacred volume, taken as a whole, and comparing spiritual things with spiritual. Not only so, it will be perceived, from the number of references to, or quotations from, every part of the sacred writings, (about two thousand,) that our aim has been to allow the language of the inspired writers to make its own commentary upon the work under examination. We have taken all the books of the Old and New Testaments to be the immediate production of the same Author, whatever difference there may have been in the penmen or scribes. We assume the Divine Author to have been fully acquainted with the purport of his own figures of speech ; to have preserved throughout these several compositions a consistency and exactness in the use of these figures, and never to have been forgetful in one portion of his work of the purpose te which the same figurative or symbolical expression had been elsewhere applied. On these principles, a composition of divine inspiration must be pre- sumed to be capable of supporting an exact analysis; its figurative lan- guage being susceptible throughout of the same analogical interpretation. Tt is not pretended that such an exact analysis has been performed in the present work ; an effort only has been made towards it. Qur views have been thrown out as suggestions, and so we wish them to be understood, although in aiming at brevity of expression they may in some places carry the air of assertions. However commentators disagree in other respects, upon one point there can be no difference of opinion: all must admit the language of the beok * Smart's Hints, p. 28. Ἵ 6 PREFACE. xi of Revelation to be highly figurative, and a literal interpretation of it to be entirely inconsistent with common sense. Being figurative, the field of construction is freely open to all; subject only to the restriction, that the sense applied be such as can be uniformly sustained, and such as is con- sistent with the general tenor of holy writ. The rule of interpretation must be the same ; there can be no intermixture or amalgamation of exegesis: one portion, or one chapter, is not to be rendered spiritually or doctrinally, and another literally or politically. The character given by the apostle to his own relation is professedly that of a vision, or waking dream ; and, as such, it must be contemplated from beginninig to end. The language is not sometimes that of reality, and at others that of a vision; except it be where the apostle is supposed to express some thought of his own at the time of writing, not forming part of the scene previously presented to his mind. The style of a dream is peculiarly adapted to the purpose of the narra- tion ; admitting as it does of sudden and apparently capricious transitions from one subject to another. It affords latitude, also, to a certain extrava- gance of imagination, not admissible in other compositions ; but, no doubt ἐὠδθωλον here, for the requisite variety of figures bearing analogy with the truths or meanings to be illustrated. This unlicensed extravagance, as humanly speaking we might term it, if not susceptible of an appropriate and consistent spiritual interpretation, would place the entire composition upon a level with the wild vagaries of mental aberration; whereas, if the whole be capable, as we maintain it to be, of sustaining the test of a rigor- ous analysis, the conviction can hardly be withheld, that it is the emanation of an omniscient mind. The use of the term spiritual in these remarks is intended to accord with that of the same term by the inspired writer himself: as, in speaking of the slaughtered witnesses, he says, (Rev. xi. 8,) “ and their dead bodies shall lie in the street of the great city, which spiritually (πνευματιχῶςν is called Sodom and Egypt, where our Lord was crucified :” a passage, incomprehensible otherwise than by supposing this figuratively anti-Christian city to be in ΧΙ ‘PREFACE. in some parts of Scripture alluded to as Sodom, in others as Egypt, and in others as Jerusalem in bondage to the Romans, where our Lord was cruci- fied ;—there being in all these a certain analogy of character or history, coinciding with the meaning of the figure employed, while other parts of the Apocalypse represent the same city as also spiritually called “ Baby- lon,” “that great City,” or“ Mystery,”’—the ‘“ Mother of Abominations.” In the use of other terms, we disclaim any sufficient acquaintance with the writings of other commentators to be influenced by their peculiar views or expressions, having purposely aimed at keeping ourselves aloof from such influence ; on the other hand, we are far from claiming for our thoughts the authority of a peculiar inspiration or intelligence to which some have pre- tended. ‘There is a spirit in man, and the inspiration of the Almighty giveth him understanding,” and whatever we do, it is to be done as of the ability which the Lord giveth, that his name may be glorified 3 but it ap- pears to have been the will of the Most High, to have withheld the miracu- lous evidences of his peculiar influence upon the mind ever since the days of the apostles, leaving every work to be tried by the test of his revealed word. ‘Show me,” said Gideon, (Judges vi. 17,) “a sign that thou talkest with me.” This was the natural dictate of a cautious mind, fearful of being led away by some delusive imagination. The Hebrew champion wished to be satisfied that it was indeed the Deity who communed with him in so extraordinary a manner. ‘There must be few writers upon reve- ation, who would not, like Gideon, gladly obtain a miraculous token of divine guidance ; but we have Moses and the prophets ; we have Christ and his apostles—the law and the testimony. If our constructions accord with the general tenor of what these have revealed to us, we have the token or sign, that God has talked with us, and not otherwise. Here is the standard of judgment, and by this criterion alone our treatment of the sub- ject commented upon in the following pages is to be appreciated. In the remarks made upon the passages relating to the beast, the harlot, and the false prophet, it will be perceived that the application made of PREFACE. xiii these figures is not of so exclusive a character as that generally adopted. Wherever the inspired standards of doctrinal belief (the sacred Scriptures) are least attended to, there we may reasonably look for the greatest obli- quity in matters of faith as well as of practice ; but errors in doctrine are not confined to any single denomination of religionists, to any single sect or limited number of sects, or to any particular form of infidelity. The same error, under different garbs, may exist in some degree in a variety of ereeds and systems. The “man of sin,” ‘ the mystery of iniquity,’ when fully revealed, may be found to have exercised an influence, greater or less, in the minds of all ; however professedly adverse the creed or platform of doctrine of the disciple may be to such influence. Such, indeed, is the imperfection of human compositions, that the spirit of error itself may have no small share in dictating the very safeguards intended to operate against it. The design of the Apocalypse is, accordingly, supposed to be that of detecting and revealing this mystery of error wherever it is to be found, as well as of developing its opposite truths. The purport of this Revelation, contemplated in the light in which we view it, sustains, it will be perceived, in a manner not a little remarkable, the doctrine of salvation, through the vicarious sufferings and interposing merits or imputed righteousness of a Divine Redeemer, and through these means alone; as a result of the all-controlling power of sovereign grace. To prevent, however, any misapprehension of our views in this particular, we wish it to be distinctly understood, that we regard the moral law, as a rule of action, eternal and unchangeable in the nature of things ; as much so as the distinction necessarily existing forever between good and evil. In the nature of things, such is the character of the Deity, that this moral law must be the rule of conduct throughout eternity ; the glory of God requiring the observance of this rule in all his rational creatures in every state of existence. Circumstances may change ; where there is no death there can be no murder ; but envy, malice, fraud, hypocrisy, pride, selfish- ness or covetousness, must be as hateful to a Being of infinite perfection in eternity as in time. The love of God, with all the heart, and mind, and iv PREFACE. strength, together with a corresponding love of every fellow-creature, must be the rule of conduct hereafter, as it is the unchangeable commandment — here. As the criterion of moral good and evil must always be the same, the motive for adherence to this rule, apart from the difference of circum- stances, is all that is susceptible of change. In this state of existence, man is, in a greater or less degree, governed by mercenary feelings, arising from fear of punishment, or from hope of reward. Hereafter the redeemed dis- ciple can be influenced by no motive but that of gratitude (love) for evils escaped, salvation experienced, and benefits enjoyed. Such, or similar to this, is supposed to be the change introduced, wrought or to be wrought, in the heart or mind of the disciple, as an operation of faith or of doctrinal views even in this life. The rule of moral action remains the same, but the obligation to observe this rule, in the apprelien- sion of the believer, is entirely different. ‘The disciple, having cast himself with unreserving hope and confidence altogether upon the atoning sacrifice and justifying righteousness of his Redeemer, feels himself bound by the strongest ties of gratitude to perform scrupulously every duty of morality ; to fulfil every obligation towards God and man ; to avoid even the appear- ance of evil, that he may obey, please, and glorify his Divine Benefactor ; thus judging that he that died for all, died that those that live might no more live unto themselves, but unto him that died for them and rose again. To unfold this mystery, to enable the follower of Christ thus to discern his true and proper position, and the duties consequently devolving upon him, and thus to be built up in his most holy faith, while the glory is manifested to belong to God alone, is supposed to be the main design of this unveiling or revelation of Jesus Christ. NOTICE TO THE READER. Tue first three verses of the first chapter of the book of Revelation, may be taken for the title-page; setting forth the subject matter, the source whence this matter is derived, those for whose edification it is ostensibly intended, and the individual by whom the matter is committed to writing, together with a species of motto, calculated to impress the minds of all into whose hands the volume may come with the importance of its contents. The greeting is in the ancient epistolary style, and occupies the space from the fourth to the sixth verse inclusive ; the communication being in the style of an epistle to certain seven churches of Asia. The seventh verse appears to contain a proposition relative to the coming of Christ, which, as will be seen, (§ 552,) we apply to the subject of the whole book. The remainder of the chapter details the manner in which the apostle has received his commission to perform the extraordinary task devolving upon him; a detail equivalent to the declaration of Paul, Gal. i. 11, 12: “ For I certify you, brethren, that the gospel which was preached of me, is not after man, for I neither received it of man, neither was I taught it, but by the revelation of Jesus Christ,” be ἀποκαλύψεως Inoot Χριστοῦ. The second and third chapters are oceupied with seven distinct addresses to as many angels of churches; addresses coming not from John, but from him whose manifestation in vision had just been described. It is thus not till the commencement of the fourth chapter that the great subject of the book is entered upon. A large portion of the first chapter may be regarded as John’s preface ; we give therefore to our remarks on this chapter, the running title of Apocalyptic Introduc- tion ; and to the remarks on the second and third chapters, containing the addresses, the running title of Introductory Epistles ; having arranged and paged the matter of these three chapters in the usual form of an introduction, purposely to distinguish it. The division into chapters and verses, however, it is to be borne in mind, forms no part of the original composition, having been adopted some thirteen or fifteen hundred years subsequent to the times of the Apostles. “The text of the sacred books,” it is said, “was originally written without any breaks or divisions into verses, or even into words; so that a whole book, as written in the ancient manner, was in Xvi NOTICE. fact but one continued word; of which mode of writing, many specimens are still extant in ancient Greek and Latin manuscripts,” (Intro. Bagster’s C. B.) In seeking the sense of a passage, therefore, we must be governed by that of the preceding and succeeding matter, without let or hindrance from this arbitrary arrangement of human invention; of which it has been very justly said as above, “ Although the very great advantages which have arisen from it, in facilitating references to particular passages, has caused its almost universal adoption ; it must be confessed that these divisions and subdivisions are not always in the happiest manner, many passages being sev- ered that ought to be united, and vice versa.” The analytic manner in which these thoughts are given to the public, has arisen from the necessity of the case. [Ὁ was proposed to exhibit the Apocalypse as a doc- trinal work, to be understood in a certain spiritual sense, and in doing this, to employ a uniform rule of analogical interpretation; the value of this rule depending upon its capability of application to the entire piece of composition. In order to ascertain and to set forth these peculiarities, it became requisite therefore to examine the character of every passage, verse by verse, and clause by clause, that no important portion should escape attention, or appear to be intentionally passed over. The general course of interpretation pursued here, has been first to ascertain the proper natural or literal sense of the term or figure employed, as understood in the time of the apostle; and afterwards to search for the analogous spiritual meaning. In pursuing this investigation, the writer has availed himself only of such helps as were within his immediate possession: for the aid received from these he has been careful to give due credit where the occasion seemed to call for it; and he cannot express too strongly his sense of the important services performed in the cause of truth, by the laborious researches and patient labours of the lexicographers, com- pilers of concordances, and collators of editions and manuscripts, to whom the Christian world are so much indebted. P. S. In making quotations from the English Scriptures, we have’put the words italicized in our common version into parenthesis ( ), and those which we have our- selves substituted, or proposed to change, into brackets [ ]; italicizing only such words as we wish to render particularly emphatic. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. THE REVELATION ΟΕ THE DIVINE. AIIOKAAY ¥IZ ST. JOHN IQANNOY (TOY OEOAOTOY). § 1. Tuts title is not admitted in some editions of the Greek, nor is it noticed in the English Concordance of Cruden, or the Greek of Schmidt. It is generally believed to have been added by a later hand, (Rob. Lex. 301,) and may have originated from the endorsement on the outside of a scroll, afterwards inadvertently copied as the commencement of the manuscript. The Greek term Θεόλογος, the theologian, injudiciously rendered divine, is applicable to any writer treating of the Deity, qui de Deo, deisve disserit aut loquitur, (Suiceri Lex.,) but it is not in keeping with the style or character of John, the Evangelist, to give himself the title of saint, or of divine, or even of the theologian. As little can we suppose him to have styled the work his Revelation; either as a revelation of himself, or as something revealed by him. Even those by whom this title was first intro- duced, could have intended nothing more by it than to distinguish the volume or scroll as something committed to writing by this apostle, vouched for by him, and therefore called his. CHAPTER I. Vs. 1,2. The Revelation ofJesus Christ, ᾿Αἀποκάλυπψις ᾿Ιησοῦ Χριστοῦ, ἤν ἔδωκεν which God gave unto him, to show unto his servants things which must shortly come to pass: and he sent and signified it by his angel unto his servant John, who bare record of the word of God, and of the testimony of Jesus Christ, and of all things that he saw. αὐτῷ ὃ Θεός δεῖξαι τοῖς δούλοις αὑτοῦ ἅ δεῖ γένεσϑαι ἐν τάχει, καὶ ἐσήμανεν ἀποστείλας διὰ τοῦ ἀγγέλου αὑτοῦ τῷ δούλῳ αὑτοῦ ᾿Ιωάννῃ, ὅς ἐμαρτύρησε τὸν λόγον τοῦ Θεοῦ καὶ τὴν μαρτυρίαν σου Χριστοῦ, ὅσα εἶδε, OF ὅσα TE εἶδε. § 2. ‘The Revelation of Jesus Christ.—Here we have the proper title of the book—a title which may also be rendered, THE UNVEILING oF THE ANOINTED SAVIOUR. The name Christ signifying the anointed, and Jesus, ll APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. the Saviour. The word translated revelation also implying the removing of a cover or veil, from καλύπτω, to hide or cover. As Matthew x. 26, and Luke xii. 2, ‘There is nothing hid, or veiled, or covered, which shall not be revealed’”—unveiled, or uncovered—alluding, apparently, to the mysteries of the Gospel subsequently to be unfolded—mysteries veiled under the old dispensation, but unveiled in Christ. As it was said of the children of Israel, 2 Cor. iii. 14, “Their minds were blinded, for until this day the same veil remaineth, untaken away in the reading of the Old Testament, which is taken away in Christ.” This apocalypse of Jesus Christ is therefore a revelation or unveiling, which he makes of himself—an exhibition of his own real character and offices—a revelation, or discovery, such as he made to the two disciples gomg to Emmaus, Luke xxiv. 27, when he expounded to them in all the Scriptures the things concerning him- self—a revelation of things once hid from the wise and prudent, but now revealed, even unto babes; and a revelation of himself, and of God mani- fested in him, of which he says, ‘No man knoweth the Son but the Father ; neither knoweth any man the Father save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal him,’ Matt. xi. 27. The character of the revelation about to be contemplated, then, is that of a development of doctrinal truth, a development set forth in figurative language, and illustrated by a variety of imagery, to be understood only in a spiritual sense. ‘The period of this understanding we suppose to be that alluded to, Luke xvii. 30, as “‘ the day when the Son of Man is revealed,” (ἀποκαλύπτεται,) or unveiled—an opposite development -is alluded to, 2 Thess. 11. 8, as the uncovering of the mystery of iniquity, “ and then shall that wicked be revealed, or unveiled.’’ The revelation of the Son of Man, spoken of in Luke, being an opposite of that of the man of sin predicted by Paul ;—events to be understood in the same sense, and probably to take place contemporaneously.* § 3. ‘Which God gave him.’—It was committed to Jesus Christ to exemplify in himself, in his sufferings, death, and resurrection, as well as in the doctrines taught by him, the truths of salvation, the mysteries of all that economy of grace, by which, it is said, mercy and truth are met together, and justice and peace have been reconciled to each other, (Ps. Ixxxv. 10,) as he himself says, (John xxvii. 4,) “I have finished the work which thou gavest me to 4ο. This work being a revelation of the Redeemer in his person, as God manifest in the flesh, in his offices, as the propitiation for sin, and as the Lorp our Rientrousness. * The Greek term apocalypse, in all its various forms in the New Testament, is almost uniformly applied to an intellectual revelation. According to the Septuagint it expresses the sense of the same Hebrew word, which we render in Leviticus by uncover, and in the prophets by reveal. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. iil > Jesus Christ is here spoken of, we may presume, as a distinct person, because it is not till the truth of salvation is entirely developed, that the Son is exhibited as giving up the kingdom unto the Father, and God himself is manifested to be all in all, (1. Cor. xv. 28,) as in fact He must necessa- rily have been from all eternity. “ΤῸ show unto his servants.’-—The work of Christ, although completed or wrought out at the time of his resurrection, may still be considered a thing covered, or veiled ;—its hidden meaning, or that which is to be taught by it, being but imperfectly understood. This meaning we suppose it to be the design of the Apocalypse to uncover, or make known ; the Holy Spirit, or Comforter, teaching and bringing the things of Christ to remembrance in two ways: first, after the didactic manner of the Apostles in their epistles ; and secondly, by the pictorial illustrations of this book of revelation. ‘ His servants..—The word translated servants, may signify any descrip- tion of bondmen or slaves, and is thus applicable to all the followers of Jesus, purchased by his blood. Freed from sin, and redeemed from the conse- quences of sin, but bound to Christ. “Τὸ show to his servants,’ is to show to the whole household of faith, but especially to those whose duty it is to instruct others, stewards as well as domestics. 'The steward of those times being generally a confidential slave or servant, a fellow servant of those to whom he was to give their meat in due season. § 4. «Things which must shortly come to pass’—or to be of a sudden, or suddenly brought forth—the adverb ταχύ, sometimes ἐν τάχει, including the idea of suddenness, (Rob. Lex. 745)—things to be developed at an un- expected moment, in such a manner as to flash conviction on the mind. So we find the Greek term ταχυϑάνατος rendered subito moriens, dying suddenly ; (Lex. Suiceri ed. Tiguri 1683 ;) corresponding with what is elsewhere said of the sudden coming of the day of the Lord, as in the twinkling of an eye. ‘ And he sent and signified by his angel to his servant John. —The Greek term, translated angel, is literally a messenger, and any means, by which the Divine will is communicated, may be said to be a messenger of God. The elements, diseases, and even death, are such messengers. The angel of death is sometimes so spoken of—we should speak more correctly in saying, the angel Death, for death is virtually the messenger to call us fr m this state of existence. According to Hebrews ii. 2, the prophets were angels, or messengers; as it is said, If the word spoken by angels was stead- fast, how much more must be so the word of Him who speaketh from heaven. Sometimes we may consider the communication itself as the an- gel; they are all ministering spirits, and a spirit revealing the things of Christ must be a ministering spirit. We must form our judgment of the kind of angel alluded to in Scripture, by the circumstances of the case in which iv APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. the term is employed. Here it appears probable that the angel sent by Jesus in this instance is the spirit of revelation, which shows the things spo- ken of to the apostle. As it is said of the Holy Spirit, (John xvi. 7,) “If I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you : but if I depart I will send him unto you.” So we may say when the Deity opens the mind in a vision of the night, that this vision is a messenger, or an angel of God. ‘Who bare record of the word of God, and of the testimony of Jesus Christ, and of all things that he saw’—alluding to the record before given by this apostle in his gospel and in his epistles ; as if the question had been asked, What servant John is this? The answeris, It is John the Evangelist. He who bore witness concerning the word, or Logos, (John i. 1—4,) and who recorded both in his gospel and in his epistles, that which he himself wit- nessed of the works, and doctrines, and sufferings of his Divine Master, (John xxi. 24, and 1 Johni. 1.) The declaration thus identifies the writer of these different productions, and indicates in some degree a correspondence, or relation between these Scriptures ; all being written, as we say, by the same hand.* V. 3. Blessed is he that readeth, and Μακάριος ἀναγινώσκων, καὶ οἵ ἀκούοντες they that hear the words of this prophecy, τρὺς λόγους τῆς προφητείας, καὶ τηροῦντες and keep those things which are written |. 2) αὐτῇ γε; es heaps therein: for the time is at hand. ee Tee Ope Cee § 5. The word rendered read is compounded of a word signifying to know, or to be acquainted with. It may apply to the recognition of the sense of a passage, as well as to the reading of it. So the hearing must be a hearing of the heart, or mind, applicable to a comprehension and willing reception of the truth ; the hearing alluded to, (Hebrews v. 11,) where dulness of hearing is put for want of understanding. So the keeping may bea holding in custody—something more than mere remembrance—a keeping of some- thing valuable. ‘If any one keep my saying,” or word, “he shall never see death,” (John viii. 51.) Reading and hearing, here, are not equivalents, as in common parlance we consider reading a discourse equal to hearing it. This reading seems to be rather a recognition of the authority of the reve- lation ; the hearing, a comprehension of the hidden meaning. He that receives the revelation of Jesus in his propitiatory character as the purpose of God; who comprehends how it is, that he, who was himself without * It may have been in allusion to the peculiar distinction with which the apostle was to be favoured as the recipient of this revelation, or as the eye-witness of this exhibition, of Christ, that the answer was given to Peter, (John xxi. 22,) “IfI will that he tarry till I come, what is that to thee?” John, however, we find so far from assuming upon this distinction, the title of saint, or divine, styles himself the servant, the slave or bondman of Christ—one bound by indissoluble obligations of gratitude to his master; as a captive, (servatus,) saved from death by his captor, was held bound to devote his life to the service of his preserver. APOCALYPTIC [NTROBUCTION. 7 Vv sin, is made sin for us, that we may be made the righteousness of God in him ; and who cherishes, and rests upon, the gospel assurance of this gracious provision ;—such a one is happy or blessed ;—happy in faith even in this life ; as it is said, (Ps. exlvi. 5,) “ Happy is he that hath the God of Jacob for his help,” (as the Lord his righteousness,) “ whose hope” (for salvation) “is in the Lord his God,” (in the merits of his Redeemer.) ᾧ 6. ‘For the time is at hand, or is near..—The reason given for this happiness in reading, hearing and keeping, is that the time is at hand. We find at the end of the book, (Rev. xxii. 10,) the same reason given for not sealing the sayings of the prophecy, viz. that the time of developing the truth is at hand. The happiness contemplated arises from the full develop- ment of the glad tidings of salvation, now about being made. The mys- teries which prophets and kings desired to see and hear, and which angels desired to look into, are now to be exposed to view; at hand, because con- tained in this book. If the contemplation of them is not actually enjoyed, it is not because they are not at hand, but because those who have possession of the volume do not yet see, and hear, and keep its precious contents in the sense alluded to. ‘The time indeed is at hand in a more literal sense, as the moment of death approaches ; the moment of transition to that state of being where we shall see as we are seen, and know as we are known. But in the meantime, happy is he that recognizes in this revelation of Jesus Christ, his Saviour God, his strength and righteousness. Happy is he who understands the mysteries of redemption here set forth ; or rather he who is prepared to understand them. Happy he who leans upon the words of this prophecy, and conforms his faith to the views of the plan of redemption here displayed. Such we may suppose are not far from the kingdom of heaven, if they may not even be said absolutely to see it. Vs. 4-6. John to the seven churches, which are in Asia: Grace be unto you, and peace, from him which is, and which was, and which is to come; and from the seven spirits which are before his throne; and from Jesus Christ, the faithful wit- ness, the first begotten of the dead, and the prince of the kings of the earth. Unto him that loved us, and washed us from our sins in his own blood, and hatn made us kings and priests unto God, and his Father ; to him be glory and dominion fof ever and ever. Amen. § 7. This greeting is of two parts. ᾿Ιωάννης ταῖς ἑπτὰ ἐκκλησίαις ταῖς ἐν τῇ ‘Aoi: χάρις ὑμῖν καὶ εἰρήνη ἀπὸ ὃ ὧν καὶ ὃ ἦν καὶ ὃ ἐρχόμενος, καὶ ἀπὸ τῶν ἑπτὰ πνευμάτων, ἃ ἐστιν ἐνώπιον τοῦ ϑρόνου αὐτοῦ, καὶ ἀπὸ Ἰησοῦ Χριστοῦ, ὃ μάρ- Tus ὃ πιστός, ὃ πρωτότοκος τῶν νεκρῶν καὶ ὃ ἄρχων τῶν βασιλέων τῆς γῆς" τῷ ἀγαπῶντι ἡμᾶς καὶ λούσαντι ἡμᾶς ad τῶν ἁμαρτιῶν ἡμῶν ἐν τῷ αἵματι αὑτοῦ, καὶ ἐποίησεν ἡμᾶς βασιλείαν, ἱερεῖς τῷ ϑεῷ καὶ πατρὶ αὑτοῖ, αὐτῷ ἡ δόξα καὶ τὸ χράτος εἰς ig αἰῶνας ἀμήν. The division between the two being in τῶν αἰών wy the midst of the fifth verse, where the verses should have been separated. The first part is an ejaculatory prayer, that those te whom the epistle is addressed may enjoy the benefit spoken of ; and the last part is a summons to those receiving the epistle, to unite with the Apostle in an ascription of vi APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. praise to Him, who is the instrument in procuring the grace and peace alluded to. ‘John to the seven churches which are in Asia.’—The Apostle sets forth what he is about to write, as an epistle addressed to certain churches. Not, as the whole tenor of the book afterwards shows, that this epistle is intended merely for the edification of those bodies, or assemblages, but as a person writing a book for the instruction of young persons may put forth his publication in the form of letters to his own children. The design declared in the first verse, (to show unto his servants, &c.,) and the univer- sality of the blessedness spoken of in the third verse, confirm this supposi- tion. At the same time we must attend to the peculiar characteristics of these churches, in order to have a better understanding of the matter laid before them. These seven churches of Asia have long since passed away ; and if we except that of Ephesus, scarcely any mention is made of them in other por- tions of Scripture. Paul, also, addressed epistles to seven churches: the [ Roman, Corinthian, Galatian, Ephesian, Philippian, Colossian, and 'Thes- | salonian, besides his epistle to the Hebrews; but of these only one, the Ephesian, corresponds in name with a church of the Apocalypse. If we view these assemblies as types, it is unimportant what seven churches are selected. We have only to bear in mind the peculiar features of each ; if not types, it is difficult to imagine why Paul should have selected seven churches principally in Europe, and John seven churches in Asia. As to the number seven, it seems to express a certain totality, ad infinitum. Every circle being equal to seven circles, and each of these seven circles divisible into seven other circles, andso on. Thus the seven churches of John, and the seven churches of Paul, may represent alike, the whole Christian church. ᾧ 8. ‘Grace unto you, and peace.’—Grace, χάρις, gratia. Free, unme- rited favour, something the opposite of wages, or of debt, (Rom. iv. 4.) The law came by Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus Christ. Some- thing freely granted through Jesus Christ, and only through or by him. The grace of God which bringeth salvation, (Titus ii. 11,) being also styled the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, (Acts xv. 11, and elsewhere.) Peace; reconciliation with God, obtained through the blood of the Lamb, (his Son,) as God was in Christ reconciling the world unto him- self, (2 Cor. v. 19.) Hence a peace passing understanding, (Phil. iv. 7,) a peace with God, but obtainable through Jesus Christ, and through him only, (Rom. v. 1.) It is important to bear the peculiar characteristics of these terms in our minds, that we may compare the consistency of this apostolic benediction with the general tenor of the revelation subsequently made. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. Vil ‘From him which is, and which was, and which is to come ;’ or, from the being, the was, and the coming. That is, from God himself; the giver of every good and of every perfect gift; and, indeed, the only being who can, strictly speaking, be said to give at all: all other beings only act as his instruments. He has not only a right to do as he pleases with his own, but all things being his, he has a right, and he alone has the right to do with all things according to his will and pleasure. Hence, the grace or favour coming from him is termed sovereign grace, consisting in the exercise of a power of perfect sovereignty. ὁ 9. ‘And from the seven spirits that are before his' throne.’—After what has been just said, it seems inconsistent indeed, to enumerate seven other sources of grace and peace. ‘The subsequent revelations of this book, however, will probably reconcile this seeming inconsistency. Meantime we may advert to what we have remarked ($7) of the number seven—that it represents a totality. The seven spirits before the throne of God, are all the spirits—before his throne. To be before the throne of God is to be in a position of peculiar favour. These seven spirits are, then, all the spirits thus favoured ; and the whole seven constitute in fact but one spirit—one spirit thus favoured, or in favour ; and this we may presume to be the Holy Spirit, which is not otherwise here mentioned; but which, according to Paul, is a joint source of the same blessing of grace and peace, or is some- thing equivalent to it: as he says, 2 Cor. xiii. 14, The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God, and.the communion of the Holy Ghost (Holy Spirit) be with you all. These seven spirits must be, therefore, seven elements, or operations of the Holy Spirit employed in the work of conferring grace and peace. § 10. ‘And from Jesus Christ.—Another inconsistency—unless Jesus Christ himself be identic with God the Father ; for there cannot be two sove- reigns of the universe, or two sources of sovereign grace. The common form of this benediction in Paul’s writings is, Grace to you and peace from God, (our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ,) as we think the words should be read ; the two persons last mentioned being spoken of in parenthesis, qualifying or explaining the appellation given to the Deity. The translators of our common version, however, have uniformly supplied the word from, immediately before the person last named, so as to make it appear that the grace and peace are from two sources, when the apostle apparently intends to set forth, expressly, but one source. Jesus Christ, indeed, is said to be especially our peace, (Eph. ii. 14—16,) but this might be interpreted only as being so instrumentally ; whereas, in this passage of Revelation, the three, the Father, the Seven Spirits, and the Lord Jesus, are set forth as coequal sources of the same grace and peace ; corresponding with the decla- ration, 1 John v. 7, ‘‘ There are three that bear record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy Ghost ; and these three are one.” Vill APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ‘The faithful witness. —Of the two other members of the triune source of grace and peace, it may be said that the apostle confined himself to pointing them out distinctly—God, as the eternal being, and the Holy Spirit, as the seven spirits before the throne ; but when he comes to men- tion the last member, Jesus Christ, whose unveiling is to be the subject especially of his book, he gives an epitome of his character, his dignity, his work, the results of his work, the glory due to him, and the manner in which this glory is to be manifested at his second coming. A faithful witness, that is, a witness worthy of full faith and confidence. “Tt behooved him to be made like unto his brethren ; that he might be a merciful and faithful high priest,” (Heb. ii. 17,) that is, a high priest to be depended upon. We call a martyr faithful when he dies at the stake in adherence to his testimony, although he may be in error ; we cannot, there- fore, depend upon the testimony of a martyr in this respect ; but with Jesus Christ there is no danger of mistake—in whatever testimony he bore, all doctrines taught by him while in the flesh, and all taught by him, through his apostles, are so much testimony of which he is the witness ; but besides this, we are now about to go into his testimony in the book before us. [{ is important, therefore, that we should establish our minds in the conviction that the witness about to testify, is one that cannot be mistaken, and will not deceive. He is a faithful witness—worthy of unlimited confidence. § 11. ‘The first begotten of the dead’—or rather the first born from the dead ; ὁ πρωτύτοχος ἐκ τῶν νεκρῶν. We are apt to make use of these terms begotten and born as equivalents. We speak of regeneration as a new birth merely, and we speak of the resurrection of Christ here as a new generation ; whereas there is a marked distinction between the ideas to be con- veyed in the two cases.* To be born implies a previous existence ; but to be begotten, or generated, does not admit the idea of previous existence. It cannot be correct to say that Jesus Christ is the first generated from the dead. Accordingly the same Greek term which is here translated begotten, is rendered Col. i. 18, by the word born—“ the first born from the dead””— and in no other place of the New Testament is expressed by begotten, — except Hebrews i. 6 ; where it should have been rendered by the word born, as it there refers in a figure to the bringing in of the remedial plan of propi- tiation, as an event taking place in the Divine mind at a particular moment ; although we know that in the Divine mind the purpose must have been eternally the same. The reason given in Colossians for this precedence of Christ, in his birth from the dead, is, that in all things he might have the pre-eminence, (πρωτεύων,) tee being first, in allusion we suppose to the specimen afforded by the first fruits—Christ taking the lead, as we may say, in the process of * As there is a similar distinction between the Greek verbs téztw and yarrow. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. 1x resurrection, as he had done in the work of redemption :—ty pifying in a spirit- ual sense his resurrection from the position of condemnation, to which he had subjected himself in man’s behalf, and exemplifying, in a material sense, his triumph over the powers of corruption ; spiritually, affording the disci- ple an assurance of justification in him; and physically, an assurance of a re-existence in an incorruptible, material body of flesh and bones ; such as he was seen to have, Luke xxiv. 39. The disciple of Christ, adopted in him, and accounted to partake of his merits, and to be conformed to his image, being raised from a position of death in trespasses and sins, of which Christ’s resurrection is the earnest or first fruits. As it is said, (1 Cor. xv. 13-- 17,) If Christ be not risen, your faith is vain, ye are yet in your sins—while at the same time his material resurrection, as a first fruit, is a sample of the material ye-existence of his followers. The word *“Azagzj, rendered first fruits in ouF Common version of this passage, in Corinthians strictly signify- ing first part, or sample piece, (Rob. Lex. 55.) As in a lump of leavened dough, if a piece taken from the outside be leavened, it is a proof that the state of the whole lump corresponds with it; the process of leavening hay- ing commenced from the centre. As the first piece is, therefore, so is the whole ; as is the fruit, so is the tree ; as are the branches, so is the stock ; as was the material resurrection of Christ, so will be that of his followers—not in manner, however, but in kind. $12. ‘The prince,’ or rather the ruler (ὁ ἄρχων) ‘of the kings’ or chiefs ‘ of the earth. —We have not yet reached the commencement of the apostle’s description of the vision, and cannot yet say that the language and figures here employed, are those of vision ; but we may say, that the lan- guage is already figurative, and that the term kings of the earth signifies here something else than political rulers, in the ordinary sense of the term ; as we find Paul uses the expression, 1 Cor. iv. 8, somewhat sarcastically perhaps: “ Now ye are full, now ye are rich, ye have reigned as kings with- out us.” So Jesus Christ says, (Luke xxii. 21,) ‘* Behold, the kingdom of God is within you.” Opposite to which we may suppose the kingdoms of the earth, or of the world, to be something within the disciple, opposed to the reign of God in the heart.‘ The Lord is our King,” it is said Is. xxxiii. 22, ‘* He will save us.” Earthly sovereigns were formerly looked up unto by the people, in a time of trouble, and were trusted in for their power to save. Kings of the earth may thus represent supposed means of salvation, and as the earth is an opposite of heaven, the kingdoms of the earth must be opposites of the kingdom of heaven; and the kings of the earth we may consider leading principles of these kingdoms of the earth ;—leading prin- ciples of economies of salvation opposed to the economy of grace: all which leading principles are subordinate, and subservient to the manifestation of the power of Christ. The element of salvation by grace, through the imputed x APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. righteousness of Christ, predominating over the principles of all earthly schemes of redemption. As it is said of those justified in Christ, Col. ii. 10, “‘ Ye are complete in him, which is the head of all principality and power ;” who also, it is added, (vs. 14, 15,) “in blotting out the hand-writ- ing of ordinances,” “ spoiled principalities and powers :” as Christ is also said, Eph. 1. 21, to have been “raised far above all principality and power, and might and dominion, and every name that is named.” So it is said of disci- ples, (Eph. vi. 11, 12,) that they “wrestle not against flesh and blood,” (human power in a literal sense,) “ but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world.” These quotations suffi- ciently showing that kings and kingdoms of the earth, or of this world, are figurative terms, even in portions of Scripture where we might suppose the literal sense to be more strictly adhered to. We have thus in this designation of Christ, as the source of grace and peace, three important particulars: that he is a witness to be depended upon ; that he is the earnest of the resurrection from the dead, both in a spiritual and in a material sense ; and that as a Redeemer, his power predominates over every other principle. § 13. ‘Unto him that loved us..— We now come to the reminiscence of the great cause of gratitude ; as it is said, (1 John iv. 19,) “We love him because he first loved us.” And 1 John ix. 10, “‘ Herein is love, not that we loved God, but that he loved us, and sent his Son to be the propitiation for our sins.” And as Paul expresses it, Gal. 11. 20, “‘ The life that I now live in the flesh, I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me and gave himself for me.” So Rom. viii. 35-37, ““ Who shall separate us from the love of Christ ἢ “ Nay, in all these things we are more than conquerors, through him that loved us.” The love of God and the love of Christ being uniformly spoken of in Scripture as identical; the passage which exhibits one, applies equally to the other; as we shall perceive more fully in the progress of this development of the character of our Redeemer. § 14. ‘And washed us from our sins in his own blood.’ —As it is said, 1 John i. 7, the blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth from all sin ; and this for the reason afterwards given, that he is the propitiation for our sins, (1 John i. 2;) as it is also said 1 Cor. vi. 11, “ But ve are washed, but ye are sanctified, but ye are justified in the name of the Lord Jesus, and by the Spirit of our God.” The washing in the name of Christ, being an expression equivalent to that of being cleansed by his blood. § 15. ‘And hath made us kings and priests unto God and his Father.’— What we have just now said of kings, is equally applicable here. It is evi- dent that the term is not to be understood in a literal sense. For if all the followers of Jesus were kings, they would be kings literally without subjects. The peculiar characteristic of a king amongst the Hebrews was that of being APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ΧΙ anointed, or set apart. So the kings of Israel were styled the Lord’s anointed. In which respect a king was a type of Christ, who is pre-eminently the anointed of the Lord, spoken of, Ps. ii. 2, and Ixxxiv. 9. In which respect Christ himself also represents all who are adopted in him, (Ps. xviii. 50.) To be a king, therefore, in this spiritual sense, is to be the Lord’s anointed, set apart in Christ ; and in him reigning and triumphing over the powers of the earth, opposed to the salvation of the sinner. Such an anointing ap- pears to be alluded to by David, Ps. xcii. 10, as an anointing of fresh oil ; that is, an unction in a spiritual sense, as contradistinguished from the literal oil, with which as king he had been before anointed. Priests were also anointed ones ; as Moses poured oil on Aaron’s head, Lev. viii. 12 ; but priests were also admitted to sacrifice at the altar, and the high priest, by virtue of his office, entered even the Holy of Holies. So, in Christ, the disciple, in a spiritual sense, is admitted to all these privileges. In Christ, he serves in the temple of God; in Christ, he offers his body an acceptable sacrifice ; and in Christ, he is admitted even into the holiest ; identified, or accounted identic in the sight of God with his Divine Re- deemer. It is thus in Christ only, that disciples are kings and priests ; and this to God, not to man, or in the sight of men. The word translated king, is said to have been originally applied to one who presided over sacred things, (Rob. Lex. 104.) According to some edi- tions of the Greek, however, this word should be rendered a kingdom, or a royal dignity, (Rob. Lex. 101 ;) and the word priests without the conjunc- tion seems to be intended in apposition, and not in addition, to the preceding term—et fecit nos regnum, Sacerdotes Deo et Patri suo—(G. & L.) And has constituted us a royal dignity, that is, priests, &c., corresponding with the royal priesthood, spoken of, 1 Peter ii. 9. As Christ was a priest after Zz order of Melchizedek, a royal priest; so in him his followers are c counted priests of the same order. As Melchizedek brought forth the offering of bread and wine, so Christ brings forth the sacrifice of his own righteousness, the bread of life, and the offering of his own atoning blood, the wine procured from the water of purification; and so the disciple in Christ is accounted to offer to God perpetually the sacrifice of his Redeem- er’s merits ; the bread and wine of eternal life. $16. ‘To him be glory and dominion for ever and ever, amen.-—To him, that is, to Christ, as appears by the Greek order ; and yet we are told that God will not give his glory to another, (Is. xlii. 8.) We are thus con- tinually reminded that the Father and Son must be two exhibitions of the same Deity. The ascriptions of the apostle John being no doubt in strict accord- ance with that of another apostle, (Jude 25,) To the only wise God and our Saviour, be glory and majesty, dominion and power, both now and ever. The word be is supplied by our translators; perhaps the sense would be ᾿ | ΧΙ APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. better expressed by the word is. To him is the glory and dominion, for ever and ever. Solet it be. The glory belongs to the Saviour, and is and will be his whether any of his creatures should give it to him or not ; and this the apostle declares positively : He has loved us and washed us from our sins, and made us a royal priesthood, and to him is the glory. And so it should be, adds the apostle. Amen, so let it be. It is even to teach us that this glory and dominion is his, that he unveils, or reveals, himself to us, especially in the following pages. V.7. Behold he cometh with clouds ; ᾿Ιδού, ἔρχεται μετὰ τῶν νεφελῶν, καὶ Owe- and every eye shall see him: and they ται αὐτὸν πᾶς ὀφϑαλμός, καὶ οἵτινες αὐτὸν Beek choad me ΟΝ ἘΠΠΓΕΡΕ ἐξεκέντησαν " καὶ κόψονται ἐπ αὐτὸν πᾶσαι Even so. Amen. αἱ φυλαὶ τῆς γῆς " ναί. ἀμήν. 17. ‘Behold, &c.’—Here. the apostle, as if carried away by the transport of his feelings, anticipates apparently the great subject matter, as we apprehend it to be, of the revelation committed to him; that of the second coming, or manifestation of his Master; as if he had said, In the revelation about to be made, the coming of the Lord is to be found. He that loved us is there about to unveil himself. He that hath done so much for us is now, amidst the types and shadows and figurative language of this book, as amidst the clouds, about to manifest himself ;—to reveal his love and the mysteries of the work of his salvation. Here, in this revelation spiritually interpreted, he is coming to the understanding. , The coming of the Lord is expressed in sixteen places of the New Testament, by the Greek word παρουσία ; in two, by the word ἐρχόυμενος, and in one, 1 Cor. i. 7, by ἀποκάλυψιν," which last term is the same as that rendered Revelation in the title of this book. There can be no doubt that all these terms relate to the same coming. So the Greek term apocalypse is rendered Rom. viii. 19 by manifestation, and 1 Peter i. 7 by appearing, while in the 13th verse of the same chapter of Peter, it is translated by revelation. Comparing the two verses together, it is evident that this apostle considered the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ and the revelation of Jesus Christ as identic, and consequently to be expressed by the same term; and it is equally evident that what Peter terms an apocalypse is that which Paul terms parousia. The word apocalypse is also made to express (Luke i. 32) light, or enlightening ; while the appearing of Jesus Christ, termed 1 Peteri. 7, apocalypsis, is expressed in other places by the word ἐπιφανεία, a shining upon, (1 Tim. vi. 14.) An exhibition of brightness, which, according to 2 Thes. ii. 8, is to destroy that wicked—the man ofsin ; then to be simulta- neously revealed, unveiled, (ἀποκαλυφϑήσεται.) The coming of this wicked * “ So that you come behind in no gift; waiting for the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall confirm you unto the end, blameless in the day of our Lord Jesus Christ.” APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. xiii being expressed in the Greek by the same word parousia, as that employed most frequently to express the coming of Christ. In both cases the words coming, revelation, and appearing, or brightness of coming, being nearly equivalent terms, or at least terms to be understood in the same spiritual or intellectual sense. We hence take it for granted that the coming of Jesus Christ is the revelation of Jesus Christ, and this revelation of Jesus Christ, is precisely the title of the book we are now about to examine. Accordingly the expression, Behold, he cometh with clouds, is equivalent to the declara- tion, Behold, he is about to be revealed with clouds. $18. God is said (Ps. cxi. 7, 8,) to cover the heaven with clouds ; clouds being represented as a veil spread over the heavens. The heavens, it is said also, display the glory of God, and the firmament his handy-work. Analo- gous to this, we suppose the heavens, in a spiritual sense, to be that exhibi- tion of Divine sovereignty which manifests the glory of God, in his goodness towards a lost world; and his power in the work of redemption. _ As the clouds, in a literal sense, veil the material heavens, and partially or entirely prevent our contemplation of celestial objects ; so, in a spiritual sense, we may give the appellation of clouds to whatever conceals wholly, or partially, from the human understanding the wonders of redemption. Such conceal- ment is undeniably produced by the types and symbols, and figurative lan- guage, in which a large portion of Divine revelation is handed down to us. ‘I have many things to say to you, but ye cannot bear them now,’ (John xvi. 12)—this was said even to the most favoured disciples of our Lord, and so probably it might have been said to his followers ever since that time. Our mental vision is not yet capable of sustaining the bright- ness of a full manifestation, or shining forth of the Sun of mghteousness. God in mercy has covered his revelation of truth, with a cloudy veil; we see as yet only through a glass darkly, (1 Cor. xvi. 12,) but no doubt we are permitted to see as much as we are able to bear. Previous to the coming of Christ in the flesh, the cloud may be said to have been one of thick darkness, (Joel ii. 2, and Zeph. i. 18.) But the light of divine truth has since been progressively revealing itself, becoming brighter and brighter unto the perfect day. In the present day the understanding of the symbolic language of revelation is much advanced. The heavenly exhibition is still veiled by a figurative mode of expression, but partially understood. We may say, however, perhaps, with the prophet, (Zech. x. 1,) “ὙΠῸ Lord hath made bright clouds.” In the account we have of the transfiguration upon the mount, where Moses and Elias were seen ministering to Jesus, it is said, Behold, a bright cloud over- shadowed him, Matt. xvii. 12. So, when we see the !aw and the prophets ushering in a development of Gospel mysteries, our Redeemer may be spoken of as veiled only with a cloud of brightness. On the other hand, when the XIV APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. understanding has no perception of Jesus, as the Sun of righteousness, it may be said to be a day of thick clouds. But while the figures and symbols of Scripture are the instruments of a temporary veiling or concealment of the mysteries of Divine goodness, they are also the instruments of handing down and of promulgating the know- ledge of this goodness. The knowledge of the Lord is to cover the earth, and this result is to be brought about by the use of these means ; so it is said, Ps..iv. 3, ‘‘ He maketh the clouds his chariot.” These types and figures, when properly understood, become the vehicles of setting forth the true character of Jehovah. This proper understanding we suppose to be comprehended under the figure of his coming in, or with the clouds. ᾧ 19. ‘ And every eye shall see him.’—That is, intellectually, corre- sponding with the petition of the apostle, Eph. i. 17, 18, “ That the God of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of glory, may give unto you the spirit of wisdom and of revelation (ἀποκαλύψεως) in the knowledge of him, that the eyes of your understanding may be enlightened; that ye may know what is the hope of his calling, and what the riches of the glory of his inhe- ritance in the saints.’ ‘To every one, possessing this spirit of wisdom, or thus enlightened, Christ may be said to come intellectually, or to be seen coming as in the clouds, or with clouds. ᾧ 29. ‘ And they which pierced him.’—The word translated pierced, is the same as that used (John xix. 37) in reference to the action of the soldiers, who, in piercing the side of Jesus, unwittingly provided for the fulfil- ment of the prophecies: Ps. xxi. 16, ‘‘ They shall look on him whom they pierced ;” and Zech. xii. 10, ‘‘ And I will pour upon the house of David, and upon the inhabitants of Jerusalem, the spirit of grace and of supplica- tion: and they shall Jook upon me whom they have pierced, and they shall mourn for him, as one mourneth for his only son.” The looking upon the pierced one is here spoken of as a consequence of the pouring out of the spirit of grace and supplication. As such it may be equivalent to the operation of the Spirit spoken of (John xvi. 8) as the conviction of sin, of righteous- ness, and of judgment. Literally, the body of Jesus was pierced by a single individual, a Roman soldier ; and even those who nailed him to the cross were but a few soldiers acting by command of a superior, not knowing what they did. In a spiritual sense, however, all have pierced him, on account of whose transgressions he was wounded, (Is. li. 5.) An understanding contempla- tion of the relation between the iniquities of the sinner and the sufferings of the Saviour, is probably what is alluded to as the lookmg upon him whom they pierced. The disciple sees his crucified Lord not merely as one who was pierced, but as one whom he himself has pierced. ‘ And all the kindreds of the earth shall wail because of him.’—It can- APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. XV not be those rejoicing in Christ as a Saviour, who mourn at the prospect of his coming ; on the contrary, their language is, Even so, come, Lord Jesus. The Greek term rendered here wail, and according to the Septuagint in Zech. mourn, signifies primarily, to cut one’s self; reminding us of the man- ner of the priests of Baal, (1 Kings xviii. 28.) It seems to be the charac- teristic of idolatrous worship, expressing the lamentation of vexation rather than of affection ; and we may suppose such lamentation of vexation and disappointment, to be the wailing of the kindreds of the earth, on the occa- sion here contemplated. Their position corresponding with that of the persecutors of the martyr Stephen, when, sitting in council and looking steadfastly on him, they saw his face as it had been the face of an angel ; and when, cut to the heart by the truth of his statements, they gnashed upon him with their teeth, Acts vi. 15, vu. 54. So the opposers of gospel truth may wail, when they behold the truth they oppose, decidedly demonstrated to be truth. ‘The opposers of the doctrine of salvation by grace, may wail when they perceive this doctrine about being manifested as truth. And the despisers of this salvation by the imputed merits of Christ may wail when they behold Jesus about ex- hibiting himself openly, and as it were face to face, as the Lord our right- eousness. So also those who go about to establish, or who, as they think, have established, and who depend upon a righteousness of their own for salvation, must mourn as one mourneth for a lost son, when they find this means of dependence, this source of vainglory cut off, and destroyed, by the exhibition of the truth as it is in Jesus.* § 21. The word here rendered kindred, (φυλαὶ,) is the same as that transla- ted tribes, Matt. xxiv. 30, ““ And then shall all the tribes of the earth mourn.” According to the Jewish mode of speaking, we suppose the tribes of the earth to represent something the opposite of the twelve tribes ; as in figu- rative language the earth represents something the opposite of what is represented by heaven, and the kingdoms of the earth are put for opposites of the kingdom of heaven. As the twelve tribes represent something chosen, adopted, and set apart, so the tribes of the earth may be supposed to represent things not so chosen, adopted, and set apart. When the truths of the gospel are being manifested, then, as we apprehend, the principles of the economy of grace may be called upon, figuratively speaking, to lift up their heads ; while on the other hand it may then be said to be the part of the * © As one that mourneth for a lost son. Children are a heritage of the Lord ; analogous with this, the means of justification are also an heritage of the Lord: the inheritance of the merits of Christ by imputation. Children thus representing that righteousness, or merit, which is necessary to justify. The self-righteous man, when convinced of the nothingness of his pretensions, thus mourns, or wails over his loss, as if for a lost son. ΧΥΪ APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. principles of self righteousness, personified as the tribes of the earth, to wail because of him. The correctness of this construction, however, may be better appreciated as we advance in our examination of the peculiarly mystic language of this portion of the inspired writings. ‘ Even so, amen’—or, yea, so let it be—as assuredly such will certainly be his coming, (Rob. Lex. 29 and 467.)—The word amen, here and in the preceding verse, appears designed to indicate the completion of the topic im- mediately preceding it. So at the end of the sixth verse, the summary of what Christ had done is completed. ‘Then comes a summary also of what he is about to do; which is also completed at the close of the seventh verse ; after which, the sense admits of a considerable pause. We may also consider this seventh verse as having immediate reference to what is said at the close of the third verse—‘“ For the time is at hand,’ ‘‘ Behold, he cometh.” The time is at hand, because the revelation contemplated is to be found in the succeeding pages ; and, behold he cometh, because this reve- lation constitutes his coming. V. 8. Iam Alpha and Omega, the ‘Ey εἶμι τὸ A καὶ τὸ 2, λέγει κύριος beginning and the ending, saith the Lord, § 9εός, 6 ὧν καὶ ὃ ἦν καὶ ὃ ἐρχόμενος, ὃ which is, and which was, and which is to come, the Almighty. ss: de ae oe § 22. It will be perceived by comparing the English with the Greek text, as above, that there is some slight difference in the Greek editions. ‘The com- mon version omits the word God, (ὁ ϑεός,) and adds the words the begin- ning and the ending, (ἀρχή καὶ τέλος,) while the Greek edition from which we copy,* omits these last words, and adds ὁ ϑεός to the term κυρίος. This difference is not material, as the letters Alpha and Omega, the first and the last of the Greek alphabet, express all that is expressed by the begin- ning and the ending; and the closing term—the Almighty—shows the speaker to be God, whether it be so expressed before or not. ‘IT am Alpha and Omega.’—We infer that these are the words of him that cometh, but it is not absolutely so declared. ‘The same annuncia- tion, however, is found in three subsequent passages: Rev. 1. 11, xxi. 6, and xxii. 13. The process of development is here just commencing, and we are gradually let in to a knowledge of the true character of Christ, as we are also into that of the peculiar functions of his mission and ministry. We learn here that he who styles himself the Alpha and Omega, is the Almighty, the eternal Lord God—which is, and was, and is to come. If we after- wards find the same title to be assumed by, or given to Jesus Christ, put- ting the two together, we find him declared to be the Eternal God, the ἘΝ. T. G. post Tittmannum. Ed. Robinson, New-York, 1842, with Heyne’s variations. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. xvii Almighty.* But this announcement is at present delayed, as it were, because in the present stage of the revelation we are not yet able to bear it. Meantime we may notice that this title, Alpha and Omega, as the first and last letters of the Greek alphabet, has something finite in it, leading one’s mind to a characteristic of the speaker, distinct from that of his Eternity. With God, the Almighty, contemplated only as the Supreme Being, there can be neither beginning nor ending, (Heb. vii. 3.) We are obliged, there- fore, to look for something of which it may be said that the Almighty God is the beginning and the ending in a peculiar sense ; and this something we find or shall find in the Economy of Grace. Christ, that is, God manifest in Christ, being peculiarly the beginning and the ending of the plan of redemption—the author and the finisher, the first cause and the final cause. The economy of grace being designed to glorify the Saviour, as the woman, it is said, was created for the man, and not the man for the woman, (1 Cor. xi. 9.) The church being called into being for the Redeemer, and not the Redeemer for the church. Elsewhere, as Hebrews xiii. 8, we find the same attribute ascribed to the Son as is here given to the Father Almighty. Jesus Christ, the same yesterday, to-day, and for ever; that is, who was, and is, and is to come. V.9. IJohn, who also am your bro- ther and companion in tribulation and in the kingdom and patience of Jesus Christ, was in the isle that is called Pat- mos, for the word of God and for the tes- timony of Jesus Christ. ᾿Εγὼ ᾿Ιωάνγγης, ὃ ἀδελφὸς ὑμῶν καὶ συγ-- κοινωνὸς ἐν τῇ ϑλίψει καὶ βασιλείᾳ, χαὶ ὑπομονῇ ᾿Ιησοῦ Χριστοῦ, ἐγενόμην. ἐν τῇ γήσῳ TH καλουμένῃ Πάτμῳ διὰ τὸν λόγον τοῦ Θεοῦ καὶ διὰ τὴν μαρτυρίαν ᾿Ιησοῦ Xx OLOTOU. ᾧ 23. Here the narrative is introduced, with an account of such particulars of the writer and of his circumstances at the time of writing, as must place the genuineness of the production beyond dispute. The apostle claims for himself no consideration of superiority—he is a brother—adopted in Christ; every disciple is a brother, for all so adopted are brethren, by virtue of that spirit- ual tie. He is a companion in affliction—literally, he was so in those times ol persecution ; spiritually, he was so, because every sinner is, in himself, in a position of affliction, although in Christ he is in a position of rejoicing, which last state is expressed by companionship in the kingdom of Christ. The Greek term signifying a participation of fellowship—iiterally, as an avowed disciple and follower of Jesus—and spiritually, as participating in the communion of his merits, sharing in the benefit of justification by his righteousness, and of purification by virtue of his atonement. He was a participator also in the patience of Jesus Christ ; or rather in the patient waiting for Christ, this being the interpretation given to the * The letters 4 and 2 serving as a key to interpret, or rather as a chain to con- nect together these several titles. 3 XVill APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. same Greek word, 2 Thess. iii. 5. Not that the apostle affected to share in the endurance of Christ literally, but that there is a patience or endurance which every Christian is called to exercise for Christ’s sake, and which on this account is called the patzence of Christ. To these particulars of himself, the apostle adds the name of the island in which he was residing at the time of receiving the vision, and of com- mitting it to writing, and the cause of his being a resident of that secluded spot. Thus furnishing a geographical and an historical criterion for testing the reality of the circumstances, and for identifying the period of this remark- able revelation. The Island of Patmos, one of the Sporades, is mentioned by Pliny and Strabo ; and the apostle’s account of his confinement in the island, cor- responds with the tradition of his banishment to it by order of the Emperor Domitian, (see Leusden’s Onomas. Sac.) From what is said of the familiar terms upon which this disciple stood with some of the Jewish authorities, it appears probable, that the regard in which he was held by many of his countrymen, instrumentally procured for him this commutation of banish- ment for death, αἵ ἃ time when his life might otherwise have been scarcely spared. ‘The name of the island signifying something deadly, (lethals vel mortifere, according to Leusden,) may have been derived from its barren- ness, or want of salubrity, rendering it so much the more probable that such would be the place of confinement of a persecuted disciplé. So, as the providence of God overruled the circumstance of the apostle’s mtimacy with the high priest, to enable him to witness the trial of his master, similar circumstances were overruled to place him in a position favourable for writing his vision, and for promulgating it with these evidences of its authenticity. Perhaps without these coincidences, from the highly figurative language and imagery employed throughout the Apocalypse, the book would not have commanded that respect for its authority which has been so universally ren- dered to it for nearly 1800 years. It required, more than any other portion of the New Testament, pecu- liar evidence of its having been written by an apostle ; and even evidence pointing out the particular apostle. Some specification of circumstances was necessary to connect it with what was known of the writer’s life, as a kind of prelimimary proof to entitle it to attention, and to procure for it the critical and laborious investigation of pious and learned commentators ; an investigation bestowed upon it in a very remarkable degree, notwithstand- ing its apparent extravagance of diction. The book properly understood, will, no doubt, maintain its own authority ; but, in the mean time, had it not been for this announcement of the time when, the place where, and the indi- vidual by whom it was reduced to writing, its contents might have been taken APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. XIX for the wild vagaries of some visionary enthusiast. The Isle of Patmos, then—standing as it still does, a rock in the midst of a well-known Sea— performs the important part of a voucher for the authority and genuineness of this revelation, or unveiling of himself, made by Jesus to his beloved dis- ciple. This testimony becomes still more important, if we consider the peculiar manner in which John is here favoured, as the distinction implied in the words, If I will that he tarry till I come, what is that to thee? John Xx1. 22, 23. THE VISION. Vs. 10,11. I was in the spirit on the Lord’s day, and heard behind me a great voice as of a trumpet, saying, fam Alpha and Omega, the first and the last: and what thou seest write in a book, and send it unto the seven churches which are in Asia; unto Ephesus, and unto Smyrna, and unto Pergamos, and unto Thyatira, > . , > ΄ > ~ ~ c Γ Ἐγενόμην ἐν πνεύματι ἐν τῇ κυριακῇ ἡμέ- , OM, καὶ ἤκουσα Oniow μου φωνὴν μεγάλην , ΄ ' ὡς σάλπιγγος, λεγούσης: ὃ βλέπεις γράψον εἰς βιβλίον, καὶ πέμψον ταῖς ἑπτὰ ἐκκλησίαις, > Way XY τὰ , \ 2 ' εις ἔφεσον καὶ εἰς Suvevoy καὶ εἰς Πέργα- Ἂ με , \ > Φ \ μον καὶ sig Θυατειρα καὶ sig Σάρδεις καὶ εἰς Φιλαδέλφειαν καὶ εἰς Ταοδίκειαν. and unto Sardis, and unto Philadelphia, and unto Laodicea. ᾧ 24. “1 was in the spirit on the Lord’s day.’—There is no article in the original preceding the word translated spirit, and the form of expression is the same as that employed in Matt. xvii. 23, “ How then doth David in spirit” (εν πνεύματι) “call him” (Christ) ““ Lord ?” that is, how does David, speaking in a spiritual sense, or having his mind translated into that state which presents a spiritual view of the subject, call Christ, Lord ? The word rendered Lord’s, is the adjective form of Κύριος ; it occurs but in one other place of the New Testament, 1 Cor. xi. 20, χυριακὸν δεῖπνον, where it is rendered the Lord’s supper, in contradistinction to every In Latin it is correctly rendered by the word dominicus, and strictly speaking we should either say the Lord-Day, the Lord-Supper, or render the passages by a grecism or latinism, the kyriacal or dominical day. ever, to render the term by a noun in the possessive case, we have the same right to translate κυριακὸν δεῖπνον, by the supper of the Lord, as we have by one his own supper, and is not found at all in the Septuagint. If we choose, how- the Lord’s supper ; and we should render χυριακῆ ἡμέρα as justly by the day of the Lord, as by the Lord’s day. This distinction would not be so im- portant, were it not that we are accustomed to associate with the term the Lord’s day, the first day of the week ; and with the term the day of the Lord, something equivalent to the second coming of our Saviour. Accord- ingly, it is usually supposed that the apostle in this passage represents him- self to have been in a peculiarly devotional frame of mind, on a certain first day of the week ; a construction apparently far short of the real meaning. Xx APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ΄ The verb γώομαι, from which the word rendered J was is derived, is sus- ceptible of a variety of modifications of meaning, conveying, for the most part, an idea of generation, transition, or change of state, something more than is signified by the English verb Iam, or the Greek éui, to be, (Rob. Lex. 125.) So Rev. viii. 8, the third part of the sea became (ἐγένετο) blood; and Rev. iv. 2, and immediately I became in spirit—ev0 dae ἐγενόμην ἐν πνεύματι. Taking these particulars into view, we seem to be warranted in the con- clusion that the apostle’s meaning here is, that upon the occasion referred to, he was brought into such a state of mind that he was, in a spiritual sense, present in the day of the Lord—he was enabled to witness that day. In spirit, or by the spirit,* he was brought to see this day, which he calls the dominical (kyriacal) day ; not in the sense in which our almanac makers employ the term, but in the sense in which it was understood by the apos- tles—the day of the Lord being peculiarly the Dominical Day. So Jesus says to the Jews, ‘ Your father Abraham (in spirit) saw my day ; he saw it, and was glad.” As Paul also-was, we may suppose, an spirit, “‘ whether in the body or out,” enabled to hear unspeakable words, which it is not law- - ful for man to utter. So we may suppose the apostle John to have been in spirit enjoying in vision the coming of his Lord; with this difference, how- ever, between the two cases: that the beloved disciple was directed to com- mit to writing what it was not lawful for Paul to utter, 2 Cor. xii. 1-4. If we suppose the kyriacal day to be merely a first day of the week, there seems to be no sufficient reason why it should be- mentioned, and we are obliged to suppose the whole vision of the apostle to have been wit- nessed, if not committed to writing, on one particular first day of the week ; but if we consider the term as designating the day of Christ, the mention of it throws light upon the whole contents of the book; while we may easily suppose the witnessing and recording of the revelation to have occupied the apostle’s thoughts and time during a large portion of his banishment.t * ef δὲ ἐγὼ ἐν πνεύματι Geov. If I by the Spirit of God, it is said, Matt. xii. 28.—So _ it may be said here, I was by the Spirit in the day of the Lord—or verbatim, I was in the Spirit in the kyriacal day. The only question will then be, what did John un- derstand by the kyriacal day? We suppose it to be the day of the Lord. How far this reading is consistent with the whole tenor of the vision will appear in the sequel. + The term, the Lord’s day, is not to be met with in any other place or passage of Scripture; and even as it occurs here in our common version, we find it classed in Cruden’s Concordance, with the day of the Lord. The day we call Sunday is uni- , formly designated in the New Testament as the first day of the week. In the Old | Testament, its typical equivalent appears to be that spoken of as the eighth day, _ (Lev. xxiii. 36-39.) The Sabbath, or Sabbath-day, as we commonly use the appellation, is a term uniformly applied both’ in the Old and New Testament to the seventh day of the ee APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. XXi § 25. ‘And I heard behind me a great voice as of a trumpet.’—A voice we may suppose like the sound of a trumpet. Of the coming of the Son of Man it is said, (Matt. xxiv. 31,) “ And he shall send forth his angels with a great sound of a trumpet, and they shall gather together his elect from the four winds, from one end of heaven to the other.” So, 1 Cor. xv. 51, 52, “ Behold, I show youa mystery ; we shall not all sleep, but we shall all be changed, in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye, at the last trumpet—for the trumpet shall sound, and the dead shall be raised incorruptible,‘and we shall be changed ;” and 1 Thess. iv. 16, «For the Lord himself shall descend from heaven with a shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with the trumpet of God.” Here are three several predictions of the coming or manifestation of Christ, attended with the voice, or sound of a trumpet. The first is that of a great sound of a trumpet, such as the sound which John now hears behind him. The second speaks of the Jast trumpet ; we have no account of a last trumpet, so called, in ear but, besides the sound of this great trumpet, we have seven trumpets spoken of; concerning the seventh or last of which, it is said, (Rev. x. 7,) that in its sounding, the mystery of God should be Jinished. The third prediction is that of the voice of the archangel, and of the trump- et of God. We know that the trumpet of God is not the trumpet of man : and we may judge that it signifies not a material trumpet, but some revela- tion, or instrument of revelation from God, analogous to the voice of a trump- et. So the voice of the archangel must be the voice of one who js the ruler, the chief of the angels ; and we have, at the commencement, and at the close of this book of Revelation, the assurance that it is a communica- tion by the mouth, or voice, as we may say, especially of the angel of Jesus ; that is, Jesus himself speaking through his angel ; and may not this be equivalent to what Paul denominates the voice of the archangel? At least, may there not be some intimate relation between the trumpets alluded to by Matthew and Paul, and the trumpets described in the Apocalypse ? The trumpet was generally employed amongst the Hebrews for public proclamations and for martial preparations, and even the walls of the city of Jericho were overthrown by the sound of trumpets, Joshua vi. 4-20, The victory of Gideon was obtained instrumentally by the sound of trumpets, Judges vii. 19-22; and the ark of the Lord was brought up to the city of David, with trumpets, and cymbals, and shoutings. With these references we cannot but believe that there is something of more than an ordinary impor- tance to be attached to the employment of the apocalyptic trumpets. The week. Consequently we may say, the term Lord’s day, as applied toa particular day of the week, although such use of it may be sanctioned by very early authority in the church, cannot strictly speaking be considered a Scripture term. XXil APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. trumpet is peculiarly the instrument of a herald, indicative of a proclama- tion by sovereign authority ; any revelation of the divine will may be spoken of as such a proclamation, and may be thus figuratively termed the voice of a trumpet, or the trump of God. The Greek verb κηρύσσω, translated preach, and applied particularly to the preaching of the gospel, is a term primarily signifying the action of a herald in proclaiming the will of the sovereign as with the voice of a trumpet. The promulgation of the legal dispensation is spoken of, Hebrews xii. 19, as the voice of a trumpet ; and may be said to be a trumpet of God. So the preaching of the gospel may be called the sound of a great trumpet, or the trumpet of a god. Several developments of gospel truth may be each of them termed the voice of a trumpet, and the last of these, the final revelation which God may make of his will, may be equally spoken of as the sound of the last trumpet, the trump of God, the last proclamation of the will of the Divine Sovereign, as by a divinely commissioned herald. 'To these suggestions we may add, that the universally admitted extreme old age to which the apostle John was permitted to live, and the probability that the revelation he committed to writing was received towards the close of his life, (as supposed about A. D. 96,) warrants us in the assumption that this revelation is the last promulgation of the will of God, made directly to man—the last divinely mspired communi- cation by a commissioned herald ; and as such it may be appropriately spoken of as the last trumpet, or the great trumpet. ‘The sound of this trumpet is its meaning. ‘This sound has not yet reached us, or we have yet heard it only indistinctly, as we hear the distant thunder; and even, if that exhibi- tion which the Apocalypse affords us of the true character and offices of Christ, constitutes what is called his parousia, or coming—something com- pared to the lightning which lighteth from one part of heaven to the other— the brightness of this exhibition may precede, in some degree, the full understanding of the truths presented by it, as the dazzling brilliancy of the electric fluid bursts upon our sight while we wait, as it were, the sound of the distant explosion for an interpretation of the cause of our astonishment. § 26. ‘Saying,’ [I am Alpha and Omega, the first and the last:] ‘ what thou seest write in a book.’—The words within brackets are not to be met with in all editions of the Greek, and are excluded from that from which we copy. They do not appear necessary here, but whether omitted or retained, the sense of the passage is not affected, and their limitation, when used, to the economy of salvation, has been already noticed, (¢ 22.) ‘ And send it to the seven churches which are in Asia.’—Here follow the names of these seven churches. The apostle addressed his epistle to them in the first instance ; he now gives the reason why he did this, viz., that he was so directed. He is to send, too, an account apparently of all that he sees to these seven churches; although, as we afterwards find, he APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. xii has beside a particular message for each of them. Their number, seven, as we have suggested, (ὃ 7,) making it probable that they are put for the whole church—as we find, from the preamble in the third verse of this chapter, that all are blessed who read, hear, and keep the words of this prophecy. The particular designation by name of the seven churches, may have been made that the origin of the book might be traced from its first emission, and its authenticity and genuineness thus early established. Seven copies of the whole, in the apostle’s own hand-writing, being put forth simulta- neously, and being carefully treasured up no doubt by these seven churches as repositories. ‘The manuscripts afterwards transcribed could be compared by the early Christians with these seven originals, by which means a multi- tude of faithful copies was provided for—while each church, vouching for the fidelity of its own manuscript, may be supposed to have watched, with jealousy, the copies transcribed from it. The book is noticed, it is said, as early as A. 1). 107 and 108, by Ignatius and Polycarp ; by Justin Martyr, A. D. 120; at which time we may easily suppose all the originals to have been accessible to the writers of the age. The extraordinary contents of the volume at the same time must have prompted the early Christians to sat- isfy themselves of the correctness of its expressions and figures, and this they would naturally do, as has been since done, with the more curious research in proportion as a literal construction was put upon its language. Vs. 12-16. And I turned to see the voice that spake with me, and being turn- ed, I saw seven golden candlesticks ; ; and in the midst of the seven candlesticks (one) like unto the son of man, clothed with a garment down to the foot, and girt about the paps with a golden girdle. ‘His head and his hairs were white like wool, as white as snow; and his eyes were as a flame of fire, and his feet like unto fine brass, as if they burned in afurnace: and his voice as the sound of many waters. And he had in his right hand seven stars: and out of his mouth went a sharp two- edged sword: and his countenance was as the sun shineth in his strength. § 27. * ‘ Καὶ ἐπέστρεψα βλέπειν τὴν φωγήν, ἣτις , 2 - 3 © ἐλάλει ust ἐμοῦ καὶ ἐπιστρέψας εἶδον ἑπτὰ λυ χνίας χρυσᾶς, καὶ ἐν μέσῳ τῶν ἑπτὰ λυχνι- ὧν ὅμοιον υἱῷ pau ἐγδεδυμέν ov πο- δήρ on καὶ περιεζωσμένον πρὸς τοῖς μαστοῖς χρυσῆν" ἢ δὲ κεφαλὴ αὐτοῦ καὶ αἵ Ss 3 λ ' «| Ἢ 5 a γ᾽ 7 ἊΝ ᾿ eo Zz £ Ἂ τρίχες λευκαὶ ὡς ἔριον λευκόν, ὡς χιών, nol ἘΠῚ 9 } \ > galas 10k ee "ee ot οφϑαλμοὶ αὐτοῦ ὡς φλὸξ πυρός, καὶ οἵ ’ὔ 2 ~ Oo , < πόδες αὐτοῦ ὅμοιοι χαλκολιβάνῳ, ὡς ἐν κα- , Pe ‘ > ~ ε MOG τεεπυρωμένοι, καὶ ἢ φωνὴ αὐτοῦ ὡς ζώνην φωνὴ ὑδάτων πολλῶν, καὶ ἔχων ἐν τῇ δεξιᾷ αὑτοῦ χειρὶ ἀστέρας ἑπτά, καὶ ἐκ τοῦ στό- ματος αὐτοῦ ῥομφαία δίστομος ὀξεῖα ἐχπο- θευομέν Ny καὶ ἢ ὄψις αὐτοῦ ὡς ὃ ἥλιος φαίνει ἐν τῇ δυνάμει αὑτοῦ. ‘ And I turned, &c.’—This turning of the apostle seems to con- firm the supposition that the voice did not at the time announce the speaker as the Alpha and the Omega. If it had, we may suppose he would not have turned—he would have remained as if transfixed with awe, waiting to hear what direction was to be given him; whereas, hearing a great sound as of a trumpet, with an abrupt direction to write, &c., the first impulse was naturally to turn, and see who gave the direction. ΧΧΙΥ͂ APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ‘I saw seven golden candlesticks.’—Not seven lights, but seven stands upon which lights may be placed. The seven candlesticks are declared in the 20th verse to be seven churches ; but we cannot suppose seven ephem- eral assemblages of disciples, in as many towns, or cities of Asia, to be literally so peculiarly the objects of divine care that they above all others should be thus distinguished. Here we are to remember in the outset that this is a vision, and that whatever is heard, as said in the vision, is a part of the vision, as much as whatever is seen. The interpretation in a vision of an object there contem- plated, is as much a part of the vision as the thing interpreted. Such inter- pretation we. therefore style the language of vision, being something which itself also is to be interpreted. Every thing seen or heard in vision being symbolic of something else, and to be so uniformly considered. The can- dlesticks are declared to be churches, but this is an interpretation in vision ; the term church is now a figure of vision, a symbol as much as a candle- stick. These churches are typical of something of a spiritual character, analogous both to a church and to a candlestick. A candlestick is the recipient of the light placed upon it, and the instrument of conveying that light to others. So these seven churches were literally the recipients of this revelation, and the instruments of conveying its light intellectually to others. But as assemblages of human beings, we may consider them sym- bols of assemblages of principles, or elements of doctrine, doctrinal systems, instruments of exhibiting and imparting spiritual light. ἱ The material of these candlesticks was of gold—the peculiar character- istics of gold are its preciousness and its capability of withstanding the test of the assayer or refiner. When submitted in the crucible to the action of fire, it is melted, but not destroyed ; pure gold in this respect resembling, and we suppose representing, pure truth—truth without alloy, capable of abiding the test of the revealed word of God, an instrument of trial com- pared to fire, (Jer. xxii. 29.) These golden candlesticks or churchés repre- sent, therefore, something of which the composition is truth, pure truth, gos- pel truth ; for this is that kind of truth which is peculiarly precious, and which we regard as so contemplated under the figure of gold throughout this vision. § 28. ‘And in the midst of the seven candlesticks one like unto the Son of Man.’—The candlesticks are the recipients of light, and the imstru- ments of imparting the light they receive to other objects. The “like unto the Son of Man’ can be no other than a representation of Christ, who him- self assumed this appellation. His position in the midst of the candlesticks indicates the kind of light with which these candlesticks are to be supplied. He is the true light, John i. 9; the light of the world, John vii. 12. It is to be inferred, therefore, that the purpose of this light in the midst of these candlesticks is, that they may be supplied with ght, and that continually. APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. χχν Light is spoken of in Scripture in three different senses : light, in ἃ physical or natural sense, being literally light—light, in an intellectual or metaphorical sense, being an illumination of the mind or understanding, knowledge—and light, in a spiritual or analogical sense, being that glory of moral perfection or righteousness which belongs only to the character of the Deity, and which can be imparted to any of his creatures only by his own free act of impu- tation. The Son of Man, as God manifest in the flesh, represents especially this spiritual light ; he is clothed with it as with a garment. ΤῸ be in him is to be in a position of light, participating in the glory of this moral per- fection ; to be out of Christ, is to be in the position of spiritual darkness, entirely without this glory of divine righteousness. We contemplate the Son of Man here especially as the source and fountain of this spiritual light. The seven candlesticks we suppose to be seven instruments, assemblages of true principles, designed to exhibit and hold forth this spiritual light ; as the candlestick is not the light itself, neither does it bear light for its own use, but is the instrument of manifesting the light placed upon it. As the Son of Man is represented in the midst of these seven candlesticks, so God is spoken of by the prophet as in the midst of the spiritual Jerusalem ; which herself may be considered as in a position equivalent to that of these golden candlesticks—I, saith the Lord, will be a wall of fire round about her, and will be the glory in the midst of her, (Zech. ii. 5.) ᾧ 29. ‘Clothed with a garment down to the foot.’—The peculiarity of this array is the entireness of the covering, its amplitude and sufficiency. ' Such is the righteousness of Christ—it is sufficient, abundantly sufficient, for all to whom it may be imputed. Unlike the merits or righteousness of man, of which it may be justly said, “‘ The bed is shorter than a man can stretch himself upon, and the covering narrower than that he can wrap himself in it,” (Is. xxviii. 20.) This garment down to the foot, may be considered equivalent as a figure to the coat of Jesus, without seam, woven from the top throughout, spoken of, John xix. 23; a symbol of the spiritual robe of his perfect righteousness ; its allotment among his persecutors represent- ing that purpose of sovereign grace by which his merit is freely imputed, even to those who were the cause of his vicarious suffering. ΑΒ it is said, Prov. xvi. 33, “ The lot is cast into the lap, but the whole disposing thereof is of the Lord.” So the same clothing down to the foot was represented on the mount of transfiguration as the raiment white as the light, Matthew xvil. 2; indicating the light of the glory of that divine righteousness, of which the Son of Man in the midst of the seven golden candlesticks appears as the never-failing source and supply. The robe of the High Priest (zodijeys) was of the same ample character, (Rob. Lex. 611,) in typical allusion, no doubt, to this garment of salvation of the great High Priest of our profession. ΧΧΥΪ APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ‘ And girt about the paps,’ or towards the paps, ‘ with a golden girdle.’— The position of the girdle may indicate the avocation of the wearer. ‘The high priest ministering at the altar, or the intercessor at the throne of grace, we may suppose to have his robe girded towards the breast or upper part of the chest ; but the disciple, whose part it is to agonize, to strive, and to run the race set before him, must be girt about the loins. The girdle, however, in both cases, must be of the same material—the master and the disciple, the intercessor and the worshipper, must be alike girt about with truth, Eph. vi. 14. The golden girdle, precious, pure, and incombustible ; something upon which entire reliance may be placed ; as it is said, Righteousness shall be the girdle of his loins, and Faithfulness the girdle of his reins, Is. xi. 5. é § 30. ‘ His head and his hairs were white like wool, as white as snow.’ —That is, we suppose, the hair of his head, of his eyebrows, and of his beard, were white. Hair being of the nature of a covering, and the colour white, representing perfect moral purity, or perfection, the covering of the face and head may be considered as corresponding with the entire covering of the garment down to the foot, being part of the same figure of amplitude and completeness ; showing the Being here represented to be complete in the array of moral perfection. As it is said of the Redeemer, in view of his qualifications for the work of salvation, he put on righteousness as a breast- plate, and a helmet of salvation upon his head ; and as it is said of the dis- ciple, in allusion to the benefits resulting from adoption in Christ, Col. 11. 10, «« Ye are complete in him.” ‘His eyes were as a flame of fire.—F ire is the agent by which the purity of metallic substances 15 tried ; so it is said of the Most High, (Ps. xi. 4,) His eyes behold, his eyelids try the children of men; and Prov. xv. 3, whose eyes are in every place beholding the evil and the good. I beheld, says the prophet, (Dan. vii. 9, 10, 13, and 14,) till the thrones were cast down, and the Ancient of days did sit, whose garment was white as snow, and the hair of his head like pure wool. His throne was like the fiery flame, and his wheels as burning fire ; a fiery stream issued and came forth from before him. Thousand thousands ministered unto him, and ten thousand times ten thousand stood before him. We can hardly bring these passages together, without looking upon the Ancient of days as identic with the Son of Man, allowing only for the difference, that Daniel sees the same Being in his exalted state, which John saw in his mediatorial character. In the one case, God being manifest on the throne of his majesty ; in the other, God manifest in the flesh, according to the mystery of godliness spoken of, 1 Tim. i. 16. ‘ And his feet like brass, as if they burned in a furnace.’—The burning appearance of these feet indicates the tendency of the progressive develop- APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. XXVii ment of the character of Christ, in testing the truth or falsehood of every doctrine connected with, or opposed to, the elements of God’s plan of salva- tion. At the same time the strength of the material, brass, may be intended to point out the firmness of the divine purpose in advancing this develop- ment ; as it is said, Num. xxiii. 19, God is not a man, that he should lie ; neither the son of man, that he should repent, (change his mind.) Hath he said, and shall he not do it? or hath he spoken, and shall he not make it good? § 31. ‘ And his voice as the sound of many waters.’—So, Jer. x. 13, it is said of the Deity, ‘“‘ When he uttereth his voice, there is a multitude of waters in the heavens.” The action of a multitude of waters, or the rush- ihe of many waters, is to overpower, to sweep away every thing before them. ‘The voice of the Son of Man, when he speaks, must be the revela- tion which he utters, and this revelation we may suppose to have the over- whelming and overpowering effect compared to that of a deluge of many waters. The sound of the waters indicating the effect at hand. In the book of Daniel we find the description of one whose appearance very nearly corresponds with what the apostle here says of the Son of Man, “Then I lifted up my eyes, and looked, and behold a certain man clothed in linen, whose loins were girded with fine gold of Uphaz ; his body also was like the beryl, and his face as the appearance of lightning, and his eyes as lamps of fire, and his arms and feet like in colour to polished brass, and the voice of his words like the voice of a multitude,” (Dan. x. 5and 6.) The effect of the voice of a multitude being that of silencing all other voices. The similarity of these different visions leads us to conclude that the same divine Spirit which was manifest in the flesh in Christ, has been also in vision exhibited under the various appellations of Gabriel, Michael, and others ; but always nearly in the same garb, and bearing the same attributes. § 32. « And he had in his right hand seven stars.—These stars are ex- plained in the twentieth verse to be the angels of the seven churches—not the churches themselves, but their angels, messengers, or ministering spirits. As we speak of the spirit of a doctrine, these stars or angels may be figures of the spirit, or tendency of the collections of doctrines, represented by these churches or collections of human beings—like stars imparting or exhi- biting their light, or the light given them, or as messengers (angels) commu- nicating this light to others; or they may be the systems of faith built upon these doctrines. It does not appear that the seven candlesticks have any other light than that supposed to be committed to them under the figure of a star. Each has its portion of divine light, and each is upheld by the right hand of the Son of Man. We find, by Is. xl. 1, 10, the right hand of Jehovah to be his righteousness. Accordingly, whatever be represented by these stars, we may suppose it to rest or depend for its manifestation upon XXVili APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. the doctrine of salvation by the imputed righteousness of God. The angel, or star, however, is not the light itself, but is something between the candle- stick and the light. It is something capable of receiving and transmitting the true light, but something, as we shall see, by which the true light may be misrepresented. Analogous to this is a literal church or congregation of disciples ; it re- ceives the light, and may be the instrument of imparting it intellectually, but it may also be the instrument of perverting it. As it is said, Matt. v. 14— 16, Yeare the light of the world: a city that is set upon a hill cannot be hid: neither do men light a candle, and put it under a bushel, but on a can- dlestick, and it giveth light unto all that are in the house. Let your light so shine before men. Here the literal church is neither the light nor tHe candlestick, but the candle ; supposed, however, to give no useful light un- less placed in a candlestick. So, to remove the candlestick would be equiv- alent to depriving the candle of its ability to enlighten those around it ; cor- responding with which, we may suppose the star to be no longer held in the right hand of him who is in the midst of the golden candlesticks. § 33. ‘And out of his mouth went a sharp two-edged sword.’—The word of God is said (Heb. iv. 12) to be sharper than any two-edged sword, piercing even to the dividing asunder of soul and spirit, (ψυχῆς ze καὶ mvev- watog,) separating the physical or natural from the spiritual sense... This word of God is also spoken of, Eph. vi. 17, as the sword of the Spirit ; the instrument by which a spiritual understanding of revelation is obtained. So the promise given to the apostles was, that the Holy Spirit should give them understanding ; the Spirit of truth should guide them into all truth, John xvi. 7,13. This promise we find fulfilled on the day of Pentecost, when this Spirit of truth appeared unto the disciples as cloven tongues (Acts 1]. 3) of fire. Not two tongues paired—but one tongue divided into two parts, (διαμεριζόμεναι γλῶσσαι,) figurative apparently of the literal and spiritual senses in which the language of revelation may be understood. ‘These tongues, too, were of fire, because the revealed word, with its literal and spiritual sense, is the element for testing the character of every doctrine, or principle of doc- trine. Connecting this twofold characteristic of the tongue with the descrip- tion of the two-edged sword, and its position, coming out of the mouth, we may suppose the two instruments to be the same revealed word, spiritually under- stood, which is also termed, 2 Thess. ii. 8, the spirit of the mouth of the Lord.* * The idea of a twofold sense in the language of inspiration, is far from being a modern one. The efforts of the public teachers amongst the Jews to ascertain the hidden, or mystic sense of the Holy Scriptures, obtained for them, it is said, the appel- lation of searchers ; and teaching in the synagogues was commonly called searching, (Cruden’s Concord, art. Synagogue.) Such probably was the searching of the Bereans, (Acts xvii. 11,) and to such searching our Lord may have alluded in his direction to the scribes and Pharisees, (John v. 39.) APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ΧΧΙΧ ᾧ 34. ‘ And his countenance was as the sun shineth in his strength.’— The day cometh, says the prophet, Malachi iv. 1, 2, when the Sun of right- eousness shall rise with healing in his wings. This Sun of righteousness. is here revealed in the person of the one like unto the Son of Man. As 186 natural sun clothes every object accessible to its rays with light, so every | object of divine mercy is clothed with the imputed righteousness of the Re- | deemer. Thus clothed, the disciple appears clad in the light of the coun- tenance of his divine Master, to which allusion is made, Ps. iv. 6, and xlii. 5. So, Ps. Ixxxiv. 11, The Lord God is a sun and shield; and Ixxxix. 15, ἐς Blessed is the people that know the (gospel’s) joyful sound ; they shall walk, O Lord, in the light of thy countenance ; in thy name shall they re- joice all the day, and in thy righteousness shall they be exalted.” Or, as it is expressed, Acts ii. 28, Thou hast made known to me the ways of life, thou shalt make me full of joy with thy countenance. We thus perceive in this description of one like unto the Son of Man, the attributes of the Triune God. The one being the express image of the other ; thus preparing our minds for a full exhibition of their identity. “T saw,” says the prophet, (Dan. vii. 13, 14,) “in the night visions, and behold, one like the Son of man came with the clouds of heaven, and came to the Ancient of days, and they brought him near before him, And there was given him dominion, and glory, and a kingdom, that all people, and nations, and languages, should serve him: his dominion is an everlasting dominion, which shall not pass away, and his kingdom, that which shall not be de- stroyed.”’ To this we must add the declaration of the apostle, 1 Cor. xv. 27, 28, “For he hath put all things under his feet. But when he saith he hath put all things under him, it is manifest that he is excepted which did put all things under him. And when all things shall be subdued unto him, then shall the Son also himself be subject unto him that put all things under him, that God may be all in all.*” The one like unto the Son of Man being virtually brought near unto the Ancient of days—one identified with the other—God manifest in the flesh —being no other than Jehovah, our righteousness, and the Lord our Re- deemer ; corresponding with the declaration, Is. xliii. 11, 1 am the Lord, and besides me there is no Saviour. Vs. 17, 18. And when I saw hin, I fell - § '@ + > , 2 ‘ ‘ , Kat ὅτε εἶδον αὐτόν͵ ἔπεσα πρὸς τοὺς πό- αἱ his feet as dead. And he laid his hand ~ c , 2 . Sag αὐτοῦ ὡς νεχρός" καὶ ἔϑηκε τὴν δεξιὰν upon me, saying unto me, Fear not, I am the first and the last: (IJ am) he that liveth, and was dead; and behold, 1 am alive for evermore, amen; and have the keys of hell and of death. αὑτοῦ én ἐμέ, λέγων" μὴ φοβοῦ: ἐγώ εἰμι ὃ πρῶτος καὶ ὃ ἔσχατος καὶ ὃ ζῶν" καὶ ἐγε- γόμην νεχρός, καὶ ἰδοὺ ζῶν εἰμι εἰς τοὺς αἰῶ- vag τῶν αἰώνων, καὶ ἔχω τὰς κλεῖς τοῦ ϑανά- του καὶ τοῦ ἅδου. * It is evident that, in this, and in all similar passages of Scripture, the manifest- ation of the fact, and not the fact itself, is that which is spoken of as prospective. GK APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. § 35. ‘Thou canst not see my face and live,’ said the Lord to Moses, Ex. xxxill. 20, ‘ for there shall no man see me and live.’ The most favoured servants of God appear to have borne this declaration in mind upon every manifestation of the Deity. It was to them, however desirable the favour, a cause of trembling. ‘“ Wo is me,” said the prophet, (Is. vi. 5,) ‘ for mine eyes have seen the King, the Lord of hosts.” Such seems to have been the apprehension of the apostle on this occasion. He does not appear to have recognized, in the form before him, the face of his beloved Master. His impressions seem to have been only those of that awe which a supposed sight of the Supreme Being must have inspired. Daniel experienced similar feelings of fear in beholding the vision already alluded to, so like the present, (Dan. x. 5-18.) He needed one like the appearance of a man, to strengthen him, to enable him to contemplate the face of him whose appearance was as of lightning, and his eyes as lamps of fire. So it is in Christ only, as in the cleft of the rock, (Ex. xxxiii. 22,) that we can behold the glory of the Lord and live. As, without holi-- mess no man can see the Lord, so it is in Christ only that any can be thus qualified to see him, or to enjoy his presence. ‘ And he laid his right hand upon me, saying, Fear not.’—This right hand is the same as that holding or sustaining the seven stars. The right hand of the Lord is,particularly designated in Scripture as the hand of power, Mark xiv. 62, and Luke xxii. 69, especially of saving power, (Ps. cxxxviii. 7,) and the reason why it is thus designated is given, Is. xli. 10. Because it represents that divine righteousness by the imputation of which the sin- ner is justified and saved. As it is said, “" Fear not, for 1 am with thee: be not dismayed, for | am thy God: I will strengthen thee ; yea, I will uphold thee with the right hand of my righteousness.’ 'To be upheld by the power of Jehovah’s righteousness, being thus equivalent to being in’ Christ, or in that position of holiness which enables the disciple to see the Lord and live, and which virtually says to him, ear not. ᾧ 36. “1 am the first, and the last, and the livmg’—and I became dead, and behold, Lam living for ever—The terms first and last, corresponding with Alpha and Omega, have been already commented upon ($ 22) as applicable especially to the beginning and ending of the economy of redemption. The living, that is the ever-living, as John vi. 57, ὁ Cav πατὴρ, the living or ever-living Father. And was dead or became dead ; the living became dead, and yet behold he liveth, and that forever. Here is a decla- ration identifying expressly the speaker with the crucified Redeemer, ‘‘ who died for our sins, and was raised for our justification ;” at the same time iden- tifying him with the speaker in the eighth verse, who declares himself to be the Alpha and the Omega—equivalent to the first and the last—also the being, and the was, and the coming—the Almighty. We have thus APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ΧΧΧΙ advanced, by ἃ very important step, in the development or unveiling of Jesus Christ, showing him, although in appearance to human vision like unto the Son of Man, to be in effect one and the same with the Almighty God, the Everlasting Father, as it was predicted of him, Is. ix. 6. The living, the Ever-living, became dead, and still he is alive for ever.— Well might it be said of him, in the same prediction, his name shall be called Wonderful. Without controversy, great is the mystery of godliness—God was manifest in the flesh, justified in the spirit, seen of angels, preached unto the Gentiles, believed on in the world, received up into glory, (1 Tim. iii. 16.) The Ever-living, in the person of his Son, having assumed a human form, uniting a material body with his own spirit, underwent a separation of that spirit from the body, became dead, as all who die undergo a like sepa- ration ; but again, by his own power, reunited that spirit with the same body, and remains as he was, the Ever-living. As he said, in reference to his human form, (John ii. 19,) ““ Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up;’ and as he said of the sacrifice of what may be called his natural life, John x. 18, “ No man” (οὐδεὶς, no one) “ taketh it from me—I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again.” He did lay it down, he yielded up, or rather sent forth, transmitted, breathed out, (as it is variously expressed by his evangelists,) the spirit; but we must bear in mind that this spirit did not cease to be, and that what we call death itself, is not annihilation. Jesus died, or became dead, and rose again, or became alive again, the third day, but he was not annihilated a single moment—there was no cessation of being. His spint, separated from the body, had still the power of reuniting itself to the body. The body without the spirit is said, indeed, to be dead, (James ii. 26,) but it is nowhere said that the spirit without the body is dead. § 37. ‘And have the keys of death and of hell.’—There is a dif- ference here, it will be perceived, in the order of these terms, some editions with our common version, reading, the keys of hell and of death; giving the precedence to the term death, however, is most in conformity with the arrangement of the same words in other parts of the Apocalypse, as well as with our general notions of the subject. ‘And have the keys.—As keys are instruments, in a literal sense, of locking and unlocking, of confining and of liberating, so used as the expres- sion is here, in a book of revelation, we suppose them to represent the means of unlocking or opening the things to be revealed. Christ may be said to have the keys of Death and Hell in every sense—literally, as God, subjecting the creature to natural death and its consequences—as Supreme Judge placing the sinner in a position of condemnation, and pronouncing the sentence of condemnation ; and as Redeemer, delivering even the crimi- nal from the state to which under the law he has been condemned. But XXX1i APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. especially, in this last respect, he not only has the keys, he is himself, the instrument of the deliverance. We may presume, therefore, that in the apocalyptic sense, the use of a key is its employment in developing the mysteries spoken of ; as, in his first coming, Jesus Christ furnished a key to the interpretation of the ancient prophecies, so, in the final manifestation of his true character and offices, he furnishes the means of understanding the mysteries of Death and Hell. As it is said, 1 Cor. ἢ. 7, 10, “« We speak the wisdom of God in a mystery ; even the hidden wisdom ordained of God before the world ;”’ “‘ but now,” he adds, “revealed or unveiled unto us by his Spirit ; for the Spirit searcheth all things, yea, the deep things of God.” «¢ Which things, also,” he says, ‘“‘ we speak, not in the words which man’s wisdom teacheth, but which the Holy Ghost teacheth”—comparing spiritual things with spiritual. The whole Economy of Redemption constitutes, it is true, one mystery ; but this mystery is composed of a number of other mysteries subordinate to it; as the mystery of the resurrection, 1 Cor. xv. 57; the mystery represented by the marrage union, Eph. v. 32; the mystery of iniquity, 2 Thess. ἢ. 7; the mystery of the seven stars, Rey. i. 20; the mystery of Babylon, Rev. xvi. 5, 7. All of which may be included with others in the mysteries of the kingdom alluded to, Matt. xiii. 11, and Luke viii. 10; and the mysteries of God, of which the Corin- thians were said to be stewards, (1 Cor. iv. 1.) So we suppose Death and Hell to have each its separate mystery, of which Christ alone has, and fur- nishes the key or means of interpretation, as he possesses and furnishes also the keys of the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven, (Matt. xvi. 19.) ᾧ 38. ‘Death and Hell.’—Whatever is to be understood in the apoca- lypse by these terms, we find by Rev. xx. 14, that they represent something finally said to be cast into the lake of fire, which is sufficient to establish the point, that they represent mysteries, for the development of which a key may appropriately be said to be required. We find, by Rom. vii. 9, that there is a state of death contemplated in Seripture entirely distinct from that of death in the ordinary, or physical sense of the term. I was alive, says the apostle, without the law; but when the commandment came, sin revived, and I died. Here death is an appellation given very specifically to a position under the law, which peculiar position we may term the mystery of Death. The term Hell, would have been better rendered in this place by adopt- ing the Greek word Hades, to distinguish it from the term γέερρα, (Gehenna,) which we have likewise translated by the same English word Hell, although the two Greek terms have probably very different significations. The last of these terms, sometimes denominated the Hell of fire, τὴν γέενναν τοῦ πυρός, (Matt. v. 22, xviii. 9, and Mark ix. 47,) is not found at all in the book of Revelation ; not, we may suppose, because there is no such thing, but because APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. — it is not a subject of which this book is designed to treat. The term Hades. on the contrary, is met with in three other passages of Revelations, and in them it is immediately coupled with, and succeeds the term or idea of Death : as in the representation of the rider of the pale horse, it is said, Hades fol- lowed with him ; and in the judgment scene, Rev. xx. 13, Death and Hell, or Hades, are said to deliver up the dead which were in them—indicating very plainly that this term Hades, must be the appellation of something else than the state of future punishment, because we cannot suppose its inmates to be punished first, and judged afterwards. The same word, too, is employed 1 Cor. xv. 55, where we have rendered it the grave ; and perhaps we may say that as, in a material sense, the state of the grave is an immediate con- sequence of the state of Death, so, in a spiritual sense, the state of condem- nation is an immediate consequence of a position under the law. The pres- ence of the law giving existence to sin, (the sting of death,) and the exist- ence of sin being necessarily attended by a state of condemnation, in which sense Death and Hades may be said to be inseparable companions. These suggestions are sufficient to show that Hades, the apocalyptic Hell, has its mystery, as well as Death ; or that death and hell constitute one mys- tery ; and, consequently, that to have the keys of death and hell, is to have the means of opening, unlocking, or developing the mysteries thus denominated. Our further consideration of these topics must necessarily be postponed for the present. — 19, 20. — τ — ris Teawoy οὖν ἃ εἶδες καὶ ἃ εἰσὶ καὶ ἃ μέλλει ou hast seen, and the things which are, γέγεσϑαι μετὰ ταῦτα. τὸ μυστήριον τῶν thotaryteryo the seven sinks which thea A5% Srtioas, ὧν εὔδερ ix} sip, Sete pw sawest in my right hand, and the seven *% τὰς ἑπτά λυχνίας τὰς χρυσᾶς. οἱ ἕπτα golden candlesticks. The seven stars are ἀστέρες ἀγγεῖοι τῶν ἕπτα ixzinoww εἰσι, the angels of the seven churches: and χαὶ αἵ λυχνέαι ai ἑπτὰ ἐχχλησίαι εἰσί. the seven candlesticks which thou sawest are the seven churches. ᾧ 39. ‘ Wnite, therefore. —The word therefore is not in the common version, but the particle ovr is said to be found in all the Greek editions sup- posed to be most correct ; and it appears to give an appropriate force to the direction. As if the divine speaker had said, I, the first and the last, and the ever-living—I am the author and finisher of all that you here see, or are to see—I have the keys for opening all these mysteries ; write therefore what thou seest ; write what thou hast already seen in this vision, what thou now seest, and what is yet to be exhibited to thee. The apostle is directed to commit the vision to writing ; not the inter- pretation of it. The word things is supplied in our common version, but it is not material, the term being as applicable to objects of vision as to reali- ties. We are to be careful, however, not to associate literal ideas with terms intended only to be figurative. The word barna/ies fim also rather a free 4 XXXlv APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. translation of the Greek μετὰ ταῦτα, after these. Write the things thou hast seen, the things thou now seest, and the things which are to be after these. The same Greek words μετὰ ταῦτα repeatedly occur in other parts of this book, and are as repeatedly rendered by after this, or after these things. In Rev. iv. 1, they are translated at the commencement of the verse by after this, and at the close by hereafter. The importance of the difference lies “principally in the different ideas associated. After this, we readily suppose to apply to something subsequently taking place in the vision; while, by things to be hereafter, we suppose events are understood which are to take place ages, or\centuries afterwards. ‘There is nothing, however, in the direc- tion here given, to oblige us to suppose the apostle ‘instructed to write an account of distant events, either political or ecclesiastical. He is only to write what he sees, has seen, and may see. Taking into consideration the peculiarly strange and anomalous appear- ance of the objects presented for John’s contemplation, we may well sup- pose that he would hardly have committed a description of them to writing, had he not been imperatively directed to do so. He might well have doubted the saneness of his own mind. He might have hesitated, lest he should be carried away by some delusion of the imagination ; and this, not so much in respect to what he already saw, or had seen, as in regard to what he was yet to see. ‘The command is therefore positive, and general, and unqualified. He is to write all. As if it had been said to him, however strange and unnatural these things, or some of them, may appear to you, write down all that you see and hear. The manner in which the speaker had previously announced himself, leaving no room to doubt of his author- ity, or of his peculiar prerogative in dictating the duty to be performed. § 40. ‘The mystery of the seven stars which thou sawest in my right hand.’=-The word mystery, μυστήριον, is said to come from the Hebrew mustar, a moral truth veiled under an external representation, (Jones’s Lex. 1132.) This definition is nearly the same as that usually given to the term allegory ; and perhaps the mustar of the Hebrews corresponded with the allegory of the Greeks. The word mystery, however, was in common use amongst the Greeks in the times of the apostles, as a mythological term applicable to something hidden or concealed in matters of religion—hidden in effect although outwardly exhibited by mystic rites, signs, or symbols. The apostle is first directed to write certain things, and then is added apparently in apposition, the mystery of the seven stars ; as if the first direc- tion were equivalent to the second, write what thou seest; that is, write the mystery of the seven stars upon my right hand. The whole subsequent revelation constituting, or pertaining to, this mystery of the seven stars. He is also to write the seven golden candlesticks, or an account of them, as something connected with the mystery, although it is not expressed that ee APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. ὄψων the mystery of the stars is also that of the candlesticks; for the stars are spoken of in the genitive case, as governed by mystery, while the candle- sticks are in the accusative, forming with the mystery a common object of the verb write. The near relationship, however, of the candlestick to the star or candle, may leave it to be implied, that what is the mystery of one must be the mystery of the other. The further explanation is then given :— ‘ The seven stars are angels of the seven churches, and the seven can- dlesticks are the seven churches.—These terms are all terms of vision. The star is not literally a star, nor the angel literally an angel, nor the can- dlestick literally a candlestick, nor the church literally a church. The star represents an angel, and the angel represents something of a spiritual character. The candlestick represents a church, and the church represents something also of a’ spiritual character. We suppose churches, as assemblages (ἐχκλησίαι), literally of human beings, to represent assemblages of doctrinal principles or truths ; and as these churches of Asia are represented by golden candlesticks, we suppose the material of the principles of these assemblages to be truth, that is, they are systems of true principles. The Greek term éxxAnoiagg(church,) ex- presses not merely an assembly of persons, but an assernbly of persons called out—an assembly of select persons, of particular stations or charac- ters. So, spiritually, the seven assemblages of principles, or elements of doctrine, are select assemblages, true principles, or elements called out from the mass. So many collections of these principles, constituting parts of the whole collection of truths, enter into the composition of the church or econ- omy of grace ; this economy, as a whole, may perhaps be typified by the candlestick of pure gold, seen by the prophet Zech. iv. 2. The seven churches of Asia, literally, we suppose to be mere types—having answered the purpose for which they were intended, as literal assemblages of Christ- ians they have passed into oblivion ; it is not even necessary to enquire into their character, or that of the individuals composing them; but there is an important distinction here, between the church and the angel of the church. The subsequent admonitions, it will be perceived, are directed to the angels: of the churches ; and in the reprimand given to the angel of the church of Ephesus, he is told that his candlestick—his golden candlestick —his church shall be taken out of the way. By this, it appears that the angel of the church is something liable to perversion, and to be deprived of the advantage derived from its collection of truths ; but these collections themselves are unchangeable—they may be removed, but not destroyed. Angels, as Paul says or implies, are all ministering spirits ; admitting these churches or candlesticks to represent assemblages of true doctrinal XXXV1 APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. principles, we suppose the angels to represent the system of faith deduced from those principles. The principles may be true, but the system built upon or deduced from them may be more or less incorrect—as we say of an argument, the premises are good, but the deduction is false. ‘The sys- tems represented by these angels may, accordingly, prove to be perver- sions of true doctrines. In this case they will eventually be manifested, as unsustained by the assemblages of truths, from which they professed to ema- nate. Such a manifestation would be in effect the taking away or removing of their golden candlestick, and would be equivalent to a repudiation of the angel.* * This last verse appears to have been designed as an explanatory introduction to the several addresses contained in the two following chapters. The division of the chapters, however, here as well as elsewhere, seems to be unnecessary and injudicious as far as the meaning is concerned. We are not to suppose any considerable pause between the conclusion of this chapter, and the commencement of the next. The apostle is first told generally all that he is to write ; and then, as it were, in the same breath, he is told what to write to the churches severally ; while, in the meantime, to prepare him to understand the direction given to write the seven angels, he is shown the connection between these angels and the stars, ‘and between the churches and the candlesticks—at the same time, we are to recollect that the whole Apoca- lypse, as one epistle, purports to be written for the use of the seven churches. Hach is to receive its introductory address, while also each receives a copy of’ the whole revelation. The angels of the seven churches find, we may suppose, in the pictures of the Apocalypse, an admonition against the tendency of their own errors, and an exhidi- tion of truth to preserve them from going further out of the way. The seven churches, in the aggregate, representditerally the whole Christian com- munity, all to whom the Gospel is preached—to whom these presents may come— spiritually, the seven in the aggregate represent the whole economy of salvation, or epitwal church, represented by the Bride, as we shall see hereafter. So also we may suppose, the seven angels, with the good and bad features peculiar to them, to represent in the aggregate, literally, the whole visible church, with its various errors as well as truths; spiritually, the Economy of grace, perverted more or less by the erroneous elements which have crept into the exhibition of it—equivalent, perhaps, to that typified by Babylon. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. XXXVii CHAPTER II. Epistle to the Angel of the Church of Ephesus. V.1. Unto the angel of the church of Τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν ᾿Εφέσῳ ἐκκλησίας γρά- Ephesus write: these things saith he yoy: τάδε λέγει ὃ κοατῶν τοὶς ἑπτὰ ἄστέ πα ate S CEMTU UOTEOMS that holdeth the seven stars in his right — a: ° : : ἐν τῇ δεξιᾷ αὑτοῦ, ὃ περιπατῶν ἐν μέσῳ τῶν hand, who walketh in the midst of the Ὁ 4] λ he SREY SRS ἐδ, seven golden candlesticks. ὅπ Κυχνίῶν, τῶν χρυσῶν ᾧ 41. ‘ Unto the angel of the church,’ &c.—As these terms have been already commented upon, and the epistles are distinctly addressed to the angels of the churches, and not to the churches themselves, we shall pre- sume these angels (¢ 32) to represent something equivalent to systems of faith—deductions from assemblages of doctrinal truth. The churches them- selves representing something equivalent to such collections of truth, or ele- ments of true doctrine ; as the candlesticks are said to be the churches, (Rev. i. 20;) and their material, gold, is the symbol of truth, (ᾧ 27.) The Greek term ecclesia, rendered church, signifying also, not only an assembly, but an assembly of selected individuals—not a promiscuous multitude, but a selec- tion from the multitude. Jf there be error, therefore, to be reproved, it is not in the assemblage of doctrinal principles or truths, (the candlestick,) but in the system or spirit of the system, the star, angel or ministering spirit, messenger, or instrument of communicating or imparting the views formed from these collections of truths. ‘He that holdeth,’ &c.—The verb χρατέω, to hold or wield, expresses a right of power over the thing held. A right implied, though not expressed in the verb ἔχω, to have, employed Rev. i. 16, where the Son of Man appears as having (ἔχων) only these stars in his right hand: here he declares himself to have a right or power over them—a declaration the more appropriate as he is now about to admonish and reprove, as well as to instruct and encourage. _ ©The seven stars.—These stars are the seven angels, (Rev. i. 90 ;) that is, they represent them, as a thing in the hand may represent something at a distance ; for a person could not be spoken of as sending a message in writing to another whom he held by the hand. So the holding, (κρατέω,) cannot express here the immediate exercise of power; because, if the stars were immediately controlled by the hand, it would not be necessary to send the epistle tothem. The power, we may say, is exercised through the in- strumentality of the instructions given. XXXVIil INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ‘In his right hand.’—The right hand of his righteousness, (Is. xli. 10.) As the star is upheld by the hand alluded to, so the system, if a system of truth, must be upheld by divine righteousness as its basis. And as the right of the Creator to control the universe arises from the fact that he sustains the universe, so the right of the Redeemer to control or dictate a system of faith, arises from the fact that such a system must depend upon his own imputed righteousness for its foundation. In other words, as the right hand of Jehovah’s righteousness is declared, in the passage above quoted, to be the instrument of salvation ; so the same right hand, or the precious truth repre- sented by it, must control and regulate all views pertaining to the scheme of redemption. ‘Who walketh, &c.—This walking amidst the golden candlesticks, ecclesia, or assemblages of select truths, may indicate that amidst these only Christ is to be found, bearing the characteristics represented in the descrip- tion given of him in the preceding chapter. Vs. 2,3. I know thy works and thy > τ , ἶ οἷδα τὰ ἔργα σου καὶ τὸν κύπον σου καὶ labour, and thy patience, and how thou canst not bear (them which are) evil: and thou hast tried them which say they are apostles, and are not, and hast found them liars: and hast borne, and hast pa- tience, and for my name’s sake hast la- boured, and hast not fainted. τὴν ὑπομονήν σου, καὶ OTL οὐ Dvr βαστά- σαι χακούς, καὶ ἐπείρασας τοὺς λέγοντας ἑαυτοὺς ἀποστόλους καὶ οὐκ εἰσί, καὶ εὗρες αὐτοὺς ψευδεῖς, καὶ ὑπομονὴν ἔχεις, καὶ ἐβάστασας διὰ τὸ ὄνομά μου, καὶ οὐ κεκο- ; πίακας. § 42. There are some slight differences here in the various Greek edi- tions, as well as in the English versions, but such as to require no comment. The rendering of the close of the last verse, may be, according to Leusden, “and has suffered for my name, and hast not been wanting or deficient.” The words, them which are, in the second verse, are supplied by our trans- lators ; the reading without them would be better—and how thou canst not bear evil ones, that is, evil principles ; but this is immaterial, as we consider here, as well as throughout the whole book of Revelation, the terms of persons when introduced, as well as of animals, angels, and material things, to be figura- tively employed. Principles being personified by men and angels, or typically represented by beasts, birds, living creatures, and even inanimate objects. “1 know thy works,’ &c.—A doctrinal system is here addressed under the figure of the angel, or ministermg spint, of a church. Its tendency to activity and perseverance in promoting the glory of the Redeemer is praised ; at the same time, its deficiency in one important respect is pointed out ; while due credit is given for its opposition to certain incorrect views of Chris- tian faith, and its examination and condemnation of false doctrines, spoken of as pretended apostles. We have no particulars of the Ephesian Church to throw light upon this passage, unless it be the faith and love towards the saints, INTRODUCTORY EPI{STLES. χα alluded to, Ephesians i. 15. The quality praised or reprehended, and not the person or persons, is that to which our attention is to be directed. It is unnecessary to inquire what particular works or labour are here alluded to—we have only to take the representation as it is in the general. ‘The Ephesian angel was not deficient, apparently, in works, but he may have relied too much upon works for salvation, as contradistinguished from grace. He laboured, too, but he may have laboured or gone about to establish his own righteousness ; he exercised patience, but he may have relied upon his patience as a work; he had zeal, too, in contending with the elements of error, and, according to Paul, as above referred to, he had faith towards God, and love or benevolence towards the saints, but he may have considered his faith a merit, and his benevolence a merit ; and thus, after all, have contem- plated salvation as a result of works of righteousness done by the disciple, although not works professedly fulfilling the law. ‘That such was the case, appears probable from the character of the error for which he is admonished. V.4. Nevertheless I have somewhat ᾿4λλ ἔχω κατὰ σοῦ, ὅτι τὴν ἀγάπην σου against thee, because thou hast forsaken τὴν πρώτην ἀφῆκας. thy first love. ᾧ 43. ‘ Because thou hast forsaken,’ &c.—The word ἀγάπην, here trans- lated love, is the same as that rendered, 1 Cor. xui., charity. We may either say here, thou hast forsaken thy first charity, or we may say there, without love we are nothing. It is to be regretted that the same English term - has not been uniformly employed in our common version. So, Romans xiii. 10, ‘love is said to be the fulfilling of the law, while, according to Tim. i. 5., the end of the commandment is charity. The term in both cases being the same as that which is expressed, Rev. ii. 4, by love, and ii. 19, by charity. The manner in which the verb, derived from the same root, is employed, 1 John iv. 19, shows us more exactly what we are to understand from the Scripture use of it—jusig ἀγαπῶμεν ἀντὸν ὅτι αὐτὸς πρῶτος ἠγάπησεν ἡμᾶς---- “We love him, because he first loved us ; from which it is evident, that this principle of love on the part of the disciple is that commonly called grati- tude ; although it appears somewhat extraordinary that the term grateful, or gratitude, is nowhere to be found in our common version of the Scriptures ; and even the term thankfulness occurs but once, Acts xxiv. 3, and then it is only used as a complimentary expression towards a Roman governor. The term thankful, occurs but once in the Old Testament, Ps. c. 4, and once in the New, Col. ili. 15, and once, Rom. i. 21, where the want of thankfulness, or of gratitude, is spoken of as a characteristic of those who, although they knew God, glorified him not as God. That the same princi- ple of gratitude, spoken of by John as love towards God, is also recognized by David, appears from his language, Ps. exvi. 1, “I love the Lord be- cause he hath heard my voice and my supplications.”’ xl INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. We are to be grateful to God, as the Scriptures teach us, for the love, or loving kindness exhibited by him towards us. This is the disciple’s love or charity manifested towards God, in obedience ; towards man, in benevo- lence. The love of God consists in his free and unmerited goodness towards us ; our love to him is something which He has deserved, merited, in the highest possible degree. His love towards us, is something entirely unde- served on our part ; our love towards him, is in return for favours received from him. The great love wherewith God has loved us, (Eph. ii. 4,) is entirely a matter of grace, a free gift ; our love to him, is something which we are under the highest obligations to render—something not to be with- held by us, without the basest ingratitude. His love towards us is some- thing which He is under no obligation to give, and which He may at any time withhold without any act of injustice. Although the term Jove may be the same in both cases, it is evident from the difference of the circumstances that the cause of the sentiment must equally differ. ‘To pretend that our love of God should be like his towards us, entirely irrespective of any antecedent cause, is to place ourselves in the position of the Deity, a degree of presumptuousness virtually bordering upon blasphemy. It is at the same time undermining that foundation upon which our obligation of service is to rest, and from which our love is to grow up and increase with every retrospective glance of favours received, throughout eternity. The. greater the love or benevolence we believe God to have manifested towards us, the greater, necessarily, must be our return of gratitude, or love to him. Could the love of God towards us have been merited on our part, in the first in-” stance, there would have been no room for gratitude ; or could it have been partially so, our gratitude in the same proportion must be partial, if such a thing were possible. If we believe what God has done for us to be but an act of justice towards us—nothing but what we have merited, as a reward of some goodness of our own—our belief will not admit of the principle of gratitude. With foolish hearts so darkened, we must necessarily be unthank- ful. So, if we believe ourselves to have partially merited what we receive at his hands, in the same proportion we lose that love which is due to him for all his favours, but especially for his redeeming mercy. Such we suppose to have been the error pervading the Ephesian system —a persuasion that the benefit of eternal salvation is the result of some good quality or meritorious work on the part of the recipient—a_persua- sion calculated to destroy in the disciple that sentiment of love or gratitude so unavoidably felt in the first moments of conversion. It may have been, therefore, especially in view of the ungrateful tendency of these errors, that the Apostle prayed, as he says, for the Ephesians, “ That they, being rooted and grounded in love, might be enabled to comprehend the breadth, and length, and depth, and height, and to know the love of Christ,” Eph. ii. 17, INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xli that by this knowledge they might themselves be brought back to what is called in the Apocalypse their first love. . Our views may be perhaps better illustrated here, by supposing the case of an individual. The heart or mind of the sinner on his first conversion, when first convicted of his sinfulness, overflows with gratitude towards his Saviour for’ that love of God which he believes and trusts is manifested in his redemp- tion. He does not then admit a thought of any merit of his own. The involuntary expression of his feelings corresponds with that of the Psalmist, “What shall I render unto the Lord for all his benefits,’ (Ps. exvi. 12.) The more sensible he is of his entire unworthiness of the least of the favours of his God and Saviour, the more grateful will he be for the distinguished privilege he enjoys. This state of mind may be denominated that of the disciple’s first love. Conversion, however, being followed by reformation in mind and conduct, attention to religious and moral duties takes place per- haps of reckless self-gratification, and habits of thoughtlessness being now changed for those of piety and devotion, the same individual begins to look upon himself with some degree of self-complacency. He compares his conduct with that of those around him, not so correct in their deportment, and he gradually imbibes the idea that there is some good thing in him. That the favour he receives from God is a reward or recompense of some- thing that he has done. Some work of his own, or, as he supposes, his own penitential feelings, may have been a merit calling for this reward. He no longer considers his eternal salvation entirely a matter of grace, and conse- quently he no longer possesses those unmingled feelings of gratitude with which his heart once overflowed. He loses his first love. V.5. Remember therefore from whence πνημόγευε οὖν πόϑεν πέπτωκας, καὶ με- thou art fallen, and repent, and do the f } τὸ Sto ἕ, ᾿ . ἕξ ταν ϑ όσον HHL τὰ πρῶτα ἕργὰὰ ποιῆσον [2 first works, or else I will come unto thee ° 47 Ἴ quickly, and will remove thy candlestick out of his place, except thou repent. δὲ μή, ἔρχομαί σοι ταχὺ καὶ κινήσω τὶν λυχνίαν σου ἐκ τοῦ τύπου αὑτῆς, ἐὰν μὴ μετανοησῆς. ᾧ 44. The word translated repent, is the imperative of the verb μεταγοέω, compounded of μετὰ, change, or after, and vo¢éw, [ think. 'The compound ex- pressing a change of mind, or after-thought, in Latin sententiam et mentem muto—post intelligo. In the Latin versions of Leusden and Beza, it is ex- pressed by resipisco, to come to one’s senses again. It signifies, strictly, a mental or intellectual operation, a change of opinions, a change typically represented by that described as taking place in the mind of the prodigal son, when, as it is said of him, Luke xv. 17, he came to himself; so also by the change wrought on the demoniac, (Luke viii. 35,) when after his cure he sat clothed, and in his right mind. Such was the meaning of the word in the times of our Saviour and his apostles, although in subsequent ages of ΧΙ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. the church different ideas came to be associated with the term. Some of our lexicographers give two meanings to this and other Greek Scripture terms, one according to profane writers, and the other according to ecclesi- astical writers ; but we may reasonably suppose the evangelists and apostles to have written the New Testament in Greek, for the perusal and under- standing of those who were familiar with that language, as it was spoken and written in their time ; of course we must go to the profane writers of that day to know what was understood by the words then used; for we cannot suppose the apostles to have looked forward prophetically to the ‘meaning to be given to certain words by the schoolmen or ecclesiastical writers, some hundred years afterwards.* ‘Remember, therefore, whence thou art fallen. —Change thy mind, come to thy senses again. Go back to those views of faith which were given thee when thou wast first convinced of sin, and first cast thyself upon the atonement of Christ for salvation—when, most sensible of thy utter unworthi- ness, the whole work of thy redemption appeared to thee a work of sove- rein grace, and a call for unadulterated love, or gratitude, towards him who gave himself for thee. Such appears to be the admonition addressed to this personification of a system of faith, possessed of many good features, but labouring under the influence of an error peculiarly hostile to the system of the gospel. Under the figure of this angel all are admonished who are under the influence of the same error. Wherever the first love is forsaken, there the golden can- dlestick will be taken away. ‘Or else I will come unto thee quickly,’ that is, suddenly, (ᾧ 4.)—I will manifest myself as the only Saviour, and show the inconsistency of thy system with the assemblage of true principles, represented by the golden candlestick. * Μετάνοια, says Suicerus, apud scriptore profanos, notat mutatam mentem et sententiam ; apud scriptores vero ecclesiasticos, notat, 1, penitentiam sive resipiscentiam. 2, Penas canonicas eorum qui ob delicta sua castigabantur, atque hi dicebantur oi ἐν μετανοίᾳ. Repentance, according to profane writers, signifies a change of mind, or opinion. But according to ecclesiastical writers, it denotes—Ist, penitence, or com- ing to one’s right mind—2d, the canonical punishments, or penalties of those who were chastened on account of their misdeeds—or, as he says of the verb Meraroéu, specialiter μετανοῦντες vocantur, qui ob delicta sua in ecclesie penis ecclesiasticis cas- tigabantur. Those were especially styled repenting persons, who were being chas- tened, on account of their offences against the church, with ecclesiastical penalties. The design of this chastisement was, no doubt, to bring these delinquents to a change of mind—but in process of time, in the use of terms, the means were substi- tuted for the end, and the endurance of penalty was put for repentance ; and subse- gently penance and repentance were considered identic. It is evident that the apostles, in their use of language, did not contemplate these interpretations of a subsequent age. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xliii As the right arm sustains the stars, so the golden candlestick, or assem- blage of truths, may sustain the system of doctrine. To remove the can- dlestick, being equivalent to withdrawing the right arm from the star; that is, unless there is in the system supposed, a return to what is denominated its first love, it will be manifested to be deprived of the support of divine righteousness spoken of as the right arm of the Saviour. ‘ Repent and do thy first works.’—That is, works of faith, operations of the mind, such as are spoken of by Christ himself, (John vi. 28 and 29,) “They said, therefore, unto him, what shall we do that we may work the. works of God? Jesus answered, and said unto them, this is the work of God: that ye believe on him whom he hath sent.” Such, probably, were the first works—a conviction of sin and of entire unworthiness, and the cast- ing of one’s self without reserve on the grace of salvation through a cruci- fied Saviour. Change thy mind, and go back to thy first views—going back to these first views, being the course to be pursued for regaining the lively sentiment of gratitude designated as a first love. V.6. But this thou hast, that thou "“λλὰ τοῦτο ἔχεις, ὅτι μισεῖς τὰ ἔργα τῶν hatest the deeds of the Nicolaitans, which γι χολαϊτῶν, ἃ χἀγὼ μισῶ. I also hate. § 45. The term Nicolaitans comes from Nicolas, Λικὸ-λαος, one that over- comes the people ; or from γικολαίται, victoria plebis, (Leusden and others.) The people being overcome, we suppose, by arts of seduction, as in the course recommended by Balaam, and as by the idolatrous worship introduced by Jezebel. The term has been supposed to be applicable to the followers of a certain teacher of the name of Nicolas ; “but a better opinion,” it is said, “seems to be, that the appellation here is not a proper name, but symboli- cal and referring to the persons described, Rev. ii. 14, as holding the Balaam doctrine,” (Rob. Lex. 472.) We should goa little further, and say that in the apocalyptic sense it applies to principles inculcating this doctrine, or sdmething analogous to them. The word translated deeds, (égya,) is the same as that rendered in the previous verse by works—deeds or works here being matters of faith. The deeds of the Nicolaitans, we suppose to be certain errors of doctrine opposed to the truth as it is in Jesus. Not professedly in opposition, but, like other heresies, although nominally Christian, militating with a correct view of the gospel system—teaching a dependence upon other means of salvation than those of the merits of Christ. Such, for example, as the doctrines of those who trouble the disciples with words subverting their souls, (minds,*) saying, * τὰς wizas, here, as in Acts xiv. 22, “ confirming the souls,” &c., would be better rendered by minds, instead of souls—a subversion of the soul, according to the usual acceptation of the term, implying a loss of eternal life, an irremediable evil; while a subversion of the mind, carries with it only the idea of a lapse into error, capable of being subsequently remedied by an increase of knowledge.—(Rob. Lex. 842, art. ψυχή.) xliv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ye must be circumcised and keep the whole law, (Acts xv. 24.) Τὸ which subversion the Apostle probably refers, Gal. iii. 1, as a bewitching, operating against an obedience to the truth. Whatever may have been the tendency of the spirit of the Ephesian Church, it did not go so far as to adopt these Nicolaitan errors. It was strongly opposed to them, as the figurative expression, hating, implies. At least it was so in the outset, although any divergence from the line of truth must ultimately issue in an entire estrangement from it. As we frequently meet with those who strenuously profess themselves opposed to every principle bearing the semblance of self-righteousness, while their doctrinal views, if carried out, unquestionably prove their hope of eternal life to rest upon some merit of their own, either in faith or practice. Their views thus, in effect, undermining the foundation of gratitude or love towards the Author of their salvation, and in that respect perhaps illustrating the error peculiar to the Ephesian system, ($ 63.) V. 7. He that hath an ear let him hear ὃ ἔχων οὖς ἀκουσάτω τί τὸ πνεῦμα λέ- ἀλιβηεμμει oecdmneth Will DREN” ao OO 9 ne Ol μαμες of the tree of life, which is in the midst of τῷ BEY. εἶν ἐκ ay ἔὐίον 719 bailig, 0 eaten ihe paradise of God. ἐν τῷ παραδείσῳ τοῦ ϑεοῦ. ᾧ 46. ‘He that hath an ear,’ &c.—This admonitory caution occurs several times in the gospels, as well as in the Apocalypse ; apparently con- veying an intimation of the peculiarly mystic sense of the passages in which it is found, reminding the reader of some hidden meaning, either in the pre- ceding or subsequent context, or in both. . A At the commencement of this book it is repeated seven successive times, that is, at the conclusion of each of these addresses; being thrown in, as it were, by way of parenthesis, perhaps equivalent to saying, He that hath an understanding capable of receiving the spiritual sense, let him 80 receive it. The advertisement is general and uniform to all the angels— what the Spirit saith to the churches, being the whole subject of the book, The mystic caution applies, therefore, to the whole, and to all who read, and hear, and keep it. ‘To him that overcometh, will I give to eat of the tree of life.—To the overcoming, (τῷ νικῶντι.) The pronouns he and Az in these passages are supplied by the translators, (as the word man is in some other like passages supplied,) probably from taking the overcoming in a literal sense. In the original the masculine prepositive article only is employed, with a present participle. This peculiarity, however, is not material, for if it had been otherwise, we should still consider the he, him, man, &c., personifications, in conformity with the uniform style and tenor of the book ;—a book of which the language, to be understood, must be immaterialized throughout— entirely divested of any sense connected with matter, other than that arising INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. χὶν from the analogy between the material figure, and the spiritual subject of thought represented by it. § 47. The tree of life is not a material tree. The eating of this tree, or of the fruit of it, is not an eating in a literal sense ; so, the him that eateth is not necessarily a human being, but something, we apprehend, represented by a human being. Eating a portion of matter is a participation of that matter ; so a principle or doctrine may partake of, or participate in, a certain important truth. A disciple’s faith is his doctrine. If this doctrine be sound or correct, it will be manifested to participate in the all-important truth of salvation through the vicarious suffering of a Redeemer. If the principle of the Christian’s faith be such as to manifest its superiority over the legal principles of condemnation, it will be manifested also to partake of the only sufficient principle of justification : the imputed righteousness of Christ, as set forth in the propitiatory offermg of his own body on the cross. All that is prospective, or all that, in speaking of which the future tense is employed in this revelation, being applicable, as we have before remarked, (ὃ 34.) to the manifestation of the fact, and not to the fact itself. The word here translated tree, is the same as that elsewhere in the Testament rendered cross. Its primary meaning is wood ; the, material by a common figure of speech being put for the thing composed of it. So to partake of a tree, is to partake of that which the tree bears—its fruit. The cross of Christ bore his body, bruised for our iniquities, and wounded for our transgressions ; and from his body on the same cross was poured forth the expiatory offering of his own blood, the fountain opened for the washing away of sin and uncleanness, (Zech. xiii. 1.) The material body of Christ, we may say, represents the spiritual body of his righteousness or merits. The material blood, his atonement, or propitiation—his taking upon himself the penalty of man’s transgressions. The cross may represent something equivalent to the purpose of divine sovereignty, which provided the sacrifice, or that principle of divine justice which required it. Such we suppose to be the Tree of life in contemplation, or rather that for which it is put, Christ crucified, corresponding with a certain purpose in the divine mind, a principle in the economy of grace, represented by Christ crucified. The disciple in fact participates of the tree of life, by participating in the imputed merits of his Redeemer. Shar- ing in the justification procured by the interposing righteousness of Christ, and in the ablution from sin, resulting from his atonement. ‘The principle of faith which overcomes the requisitions of the law, participates, in the Apocalyptic sense, of the tree of life, by being manifested to belong to that arrangement or purpose of the divine mind, exhibited as Christ crucified— as the substitution of the Saviour for the sinner—as the sacrifice of the Redeemer’s merits in behalf of the transgressor. xlvi INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES The words to the overcoming, (τῷ νικῶντι.) contain apparently an allusion to the term φρικολαϊτῶν, just before used. As if it had been said: This thou hast, that thou hatest the doctrine of the overcomers of the people, which I also hate: to the really overcoming I will give, &c., &c. This play upon _ words, as we commonly call it, appears to be natural to the chain or current of human thoughts—an idea of importance being frequently suggested to the mind by a sound or term, of which the reasoner had just before made use, in speaking of some other topic. Such a use of language may be said to belong to the rhetoric of nature, the severer discipline of art only having discountenanced it in later times. Other parts of Scripture teach the duty of faith, and the benefits result- ing from it ; but we suppose it to be the special object of this revelation to show us what our faith should be, and to illustrate the peculiar principles upon which it is to be formed. It will then be for the disciple to compare his faith with the picture here presented. If it correspond, he possesses that which overcomes, and in proportion as he finds this to be the case, his hopes of salvation are strengthened, and his gratitude for that salvation augmented. To suppose the disciple himself to overcome, is to make him the efficient author of his own salvation, whereas it is evident that Christ only, speaking of persons, can be said to have overcome. ‘The disciple overcomes in Christ—accounted to be identified with him ; but this is a principle of faith, not a personal work or act of the believer, as it is said, Rom. iv. 5-8, “To him that worketh not, but believeth on him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness. Even as (or, in the same manner as) David also describeth the blessedness of the man unto whom God im- puteth righteousness (or justification) without works, saying, Blessed are they whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are covered. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord will not impute 51η. So we may say, the principle of sovereign grace, exhibited in the salvation of the sinner, over- comes all the principles of vindictive justice opposed to this salvation. Happy, certainly, must he be who can see his salvation resting upon such a principle, while he is encouraged to regard his faith in this mystery as a token of his destined participation of the benefit to be enjoyed. This faith we suppose to be acquired, instrumentally, in proportion as the disciple is enabled to contemplate the various principles of truth combined in the mystery of redemption. As a person’s confidence. in the power, or capa- bility, of a complicated piece of machinery to perform a certain work, is increased in proportion as he finds, upon examination, a perfect adaptation and sufficiency in all its parts; in like manner, the faith of the Christian in the work of his Redeemer is strengthened and confirmed, in proportion as he perceives the power and peculiar adaptation of all the principles of INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xlvil truth entering into the composition of this divine plan or economy. To exhibit these peculiarities, we suppose to be the design of the Apocalypse ; that by this the disciple may be edified, or built up in faith and love. Prin- ciples of truth being to the mystery of redemption, what principles of physics are to the mysterious economy by which the evolutions and revolutions of the heavenly bodies are directed and controlled. The more we are enabled to contemplate either of these systems, the more confidence we have in the power, and wisdom, and benevolence of the Sovereign author of both. This confidence in physical things, is faith in spiritual things. Whatever difference of opinion there may be on this subject, it must be admitted that the tree of life can represent nothing else than that which furnishes the means of eternal life, and the Scriptures assure us that Christ crucified is the only means by which this eternal life can be secured. The cross, or Christ, must then be this wood, or tree of life, Ξύλον ξωῆς, as it is said, 1 Pet. ii. 24, “* Who his own self bare our sins in his own body on the tree,” or wood, (ξύλον)---- by whose stripes” (wounds or sufferings, Moiaw) “ye are healed ;’—Acts xiii. 29, And when they had fulfilled all that was written of him, they took him down from the tree ;—and Gal. ili. 13, Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us; for it is written, Cursed is every one that hangeth on a free. There can be no other tree of life. To eat of this tree, on the part of the disciple, must be to share in the benefit of this vicarious sacrifice: on the part of a principle of faith, it must consist in being manifested to belong to this propitiatory element of the plan of salvation—something depending upon it. § 48. ‘ Which is in the midst of the paradise of God,’ or of my God, according to some editions. The difference is not material, since, as we have already suggested, Christ retains his distinct sonship, till the final manifest- ation, when God will appear to be all in all. The term Parapise is met with only in two other places of the New Testament, viz., Luke xxiii. 43, the assurance given by Jesus to the malefactor, “ To-day thou shalt be with me in paradise ;” and 2 Cor. xii. 4, where Paul speaks of one caught up into paradise. In our common ver- sion of the Old Testament, the word does not occur at all; but the term there rendered garden, as applied to the garden of Eden, and the garden of God, is uniformly rendered in the Septuagint by the word Παράδεισος, (Par- adise.) The word is supposed to have been adopted into the Greek lan- guage from the Persian, (Rob. Lex. 543.) However this may be, it seems to have been generally understood in the times of the apostles ; and we may suppose it to have been understood by them in the sense and with the asso- ciation of ideas attached to it by the Greeks and others of those days. Literally, it is said to be an appellation given to a park or hunting ground, xlviil INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. a place of security as well asa place of enjoyment. Applied, as it is, in the Septuagint to the garden of Eden, it is evidently understood to be applicable to a place where there is every provision for sustenance and for enjoyment—every plant pleasant to the eye and good for food. Hence, metaphorically, it has been employed to express the condition of the blessed in a future state, in which sense we may presume it was intended to be under- stood by the thief on the cross. It is also said to be figuratively employed to express the sacred Scriptures, or that revelati n, perhaps, by them,*in which the tree of life may be said to be found. -Notat (says Suicerus) scripturam sacram, que frequenter Paradiso confertur. In this figurative, or rather in a spiritual sense, we suppose the term to be employed in the Apocalypse. As it is said, Cant. viii. 13, Thou that dwellest in the gardens, the compan- ions hearken to thy voice: Cause me to hear. Jesus, the Redeemer, is to be found in, or dwelling in, the Scriptures ; but it is more particularly in the economy of redemption, or plan of salva- tion, revealed in those Scriptures, that he may be said to dwell. So it is by participating in the benefits and privileges of that plan, that his followers may be said also to dwell, or to be with him—as in a garden, park, or paradise ; a position where there is abundant provision for eternal life, where there is ample security from evil or danger, and where all is to be found that is necessary for the attainment of endless happiness. In this economy, or paradise of God, the tree of life (the cross of Christ) occupies a prominent position ; the one is in the midst of the other, as the tree of life once stood in the midst of the garden of Eden, (Genesis ii. 9.) The appellation, the paradise of God, or of my God, may be intended to point out something in contradistinction to the first paradise, or to that posi- tion in a spiritual sense of which the first paradise was intended as an illus- tration. | The first paradise was of a temporary character, and its enjoyment was conditional. The second paradise is eternal, and its enjoyment uncon- ditional, for it is freely given, without money and without price. So long as our first parents were ignorant of the difference between good and evil, they were accounted innocent in the sight of God. They were alive, as the apostle says, without the law, (Rom. vii. 9.) We are not obliged to suppose their natures more perfect then, than they were afterwards ; but whatever of imperfection or of depravity existed in them, so long as they had not tasted of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, they were not held accountable as those subject to the law. For them, with the excep- tion of a single command only, there was no law ; and sin is not imputed when there is no law, Rom. v. 13. If they acted morally wrong, with one exception, it was the action of ignorance, and for this the tree of life stood INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xlix in the midst of the garden, and they in common with the whole creation around them enjoyed the benefit of its healing influence. No sooner had they tasted of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, however, than their whole position was changed. ‘They were now accountable beings—the law came, sin revived, and they died—they were now subject to condemnation for every action not morally correct. The plea of ignorance no longer availed them ; they now stood upon their own merits, and in this position, | they could no longer participate in the benefits of the tree of life. The — condition of the enjoyment of the first paradise was, that those who pos- sessed it should be ignorant of good and evil, and consequently should not be dependent for this enjoyment upon any merit of their own. ‘To become wise was to become accountable ; and every creature not perfect as God is perfect, if accountable, must be in a state of condemnation—a state spirit- ually called death. The declaration of the Almighty—in the day thou eat- est thereof, thow shalt surely die—was an annunciation of the nature of things. It was an annunciation of the truth, that the only way in which the creature can be innocent in the sight of God, is by being in that position in which sin is not imputed ; and consequently in that position in which the subject of judgment is not treated upon his own merits. Our first parents, however, preferred a position under the law—at least our first mother did so; she thought it was a good thing to be wise. We think, if we had been in their place, we should not have acted thus ; but every self-righteous person does the same thing. He prefers being under the law—he wishes to stand upon his own merits—he braves the condemnation which the law denounces against every soul of man that doeth evil. In this position man is virtually expelled from paradise—in this position, he cannot, in the nature of things, partake of the tree of life. In this emergency, what is the remedy? How is man to be brought back to his original state—not of ignorance, but of imputed innocence? Imputed innocence, too, notwithstanding his knowledge of good and evil—under the law, and yet delivered from its penalties! The remedy, we may say, has been applied without his consent. In despite of his own self-righteous per- tinacity, Christ has fulfilled the law in man’s behalf. He has endured its penalties—He has absorbed, as it were, in his own merits, all the baleful influence of the fruit of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, and He now stands in the midst of the paradise of God—the tree of life, free of access to all who draw near to participate in its fruit. The disciple is now again in a position of accounted innocence ; a posi- tion in which iniquity is not imputed to him. Not now because he is ignorant, but because, in the sight of God, he is looked upon as substituted in the place of him who was without sin; who became sin for us, that we might become the righteousness of God in him, 2 Cor. v.21. Such is 5 ] INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. the ample provision pre-eminently to be called, in a spiritual sense, the para- dise of God—a provision furnishing all the requisites for a position of per- fect security from the wrath to come; and for insuring the enjoyment of endless happiness. As it is said, Ps. xci. 1, “He that dwelleth in the secret place of the Most High, shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty.” So, John xix. 2, 3, “In my father’s house are many man- sions. I go to prepare a place for you, that where I am, ye may be also ;” or, as it is expressed by Paul, 2 Cor. v. 1, ‘ For we know that if our earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, an house not made with hands—eternal in the heavens.” — The bliss of the first paradise being, in respect to the law, the bliss of ignorance, it may be called the bliss of the paradise of man. 'The bliss of the second paradise is that of justification, through the imputed righteous- ness of Jehovah, and may be, therefore, appropriately styled the Para- dise of God. In the first paradise, man, with a knowledge of good and evil, was precluded from sharing in the benefit of the tree of life, (Gen. ii. 22-24 ;) in the second, notwithstanding this knowledge, he is not only per- mitted, but called upon, to put forth his hand and eat, and live for ever. Epistle to the Angel of the Church mm Smyrna. V. 8. And unto the angel of the church Kai τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Σμύρνῃ ἐκκλησίας in Smyrna write; these things saith the ὄψον: τάδε: λέγει: ὃ πρῶτος καὶ 6 ἔσχα- first and the last, which was dead and is ΑΘΌΥ. 7 . a alive. § 49. The announcement here shows the message, from the characteristics already analyzed, ($$ 22 and 36,) to come from the same source as the pre- ceding, viz., from Jesus, the beginning and the ending of the economy of redemption ; ‘‘ who was delivered for our offences and was raised for our justification, and is ever at the right hand of God to make intercession for us,” (Rom. viii. 94 ; iv. 25.) τος, ὃς ἐγέν éTO VEXQOS nol ἕζησεν" V.9. Iknow thy works, and tribula- ode σου τὰ ἔργα καὶ τὴν ϑλῖψιν καὶ tion, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and τὴν πτωχείαν (ἀλλὰ πλούσιος εἶ) καὶ τὴν (1 know) the blasphemy of them which 9. mere OG , 3 , + βλαςφημίαν ἐκ τῶν λεγόντων “Iovdeious εἶ- say they are Jews and are not, but are 4 ἢ Πῶς wake 3 the synagogue of Satan. γαν ἑαυτοὺς καὶ οὐκ εἰσίν, ἀλλὰ συναγωγὴ τοῦ σαταγᾶ. ‘I know thy works.’—That is, the works of the angel, the elements of the system, the tendency of its principles. This declaration is made to each of the seven churches, even to the Laodicean angel, so espe- cially rebuked for lukewarmness. 'The sense must therefore be, I know thy works, both those which are good and those which are otherwise. ‘ And tribulation.’—The term ϑλῦψις, rendered here and elsewhere trib- ulation, or affliction, carries with it an idea of pressure, or compression. We may suppose the system represented to afford that peculiar view of reli- INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. h gious faith which produces a sense of mental pressure, as it were, under a load of duty. The disciple, instead of rejoicing in Christ, goes mourning all his days, under an impression of his dependence upon some merit of his own ; in respect to which he is at the same time continually sensible of his deficiency. Instead of enjoying the gospel air of freedom, he feels himself imprisoned even in a closer state of confinement than those who are alto- gether dependent upon works of the law. Instead of throwing himself upon the mercy of God, as it is exhibited in Christ, he is under continual apprehension of vindictive judgment. His language is that of complaint— . “Thou puttest my feet in the stocks, and lookest narrowly upon all my paths,” Job xiii. 27.“ Blessed are they that mourn,” it is said, “ for they shall be comforted.” Here is a mourning, however, without the comfort. Godly sorrow worketh repentance, (change of mind,) not to be repented of, but the sorrow of the world worketh death, (2 Cor. vii. 10.) We may suppose a conviction of sin to work that sorrow which leads to an utter renunciation of self-dependence. This change of mind, directing the disci- ple to the Saviour, is a repentance unto life; but the conviction of sin which goes no further than to prompt the disciple to greater efforts in fulfill- ing the law for himself, confining his views to some propitiation of his own ~ working out, is a sorrow of the world, that-worketh death. Such we may suppose to be the tribulation of this system. It exhibited the cause of mourning, but not the means of comfort. § 50. ‘And poverty, (but thou art rich.)’—Corresponding with the tribulation, or compressing view, of the system, is its poverty. Personified as a disciple, it is supposed to look to its own want of merit, which, indeed, is a cause of tribulation ; but besides this, it overlooked the true riches— those imputed merits of Christ which constitute the only real wealth. Every Christian adopted in Christ, and sharing in his imputed righteousness, or in the imputation of his merits, must be rich in effect, because sovereign grace has given him this inheritance. But every such Christian may not enjoy the knowledge of this truth. Like the servant of the prophet, although there are more for him than there are against him, he does not per- ceive this till his eyes are opened. He is, in fact, rich in Christ ; while, look- ing only to his own unworthiness, he feels really poor. As there may be a tribulation, or sense of sin, which does not lead the mind to dependence upon the atonement of Christ, so there may be a sense of poverty or unworthi- ness which does not lead to a trust in the merits or riches of Christ. As it is said, Blessed are the poor in spirit, (or, in a spiritual sense,) for their’s is the kingdom of heaven, (they are rich.) But they do not enjoy their blessedness till they come to the knowledge of the truth, or of their true position. This we may suppose to be the defect of the system of the Smyrnian Church. The ransom of a man’s life it is said is his riches, (Prov. xiii. 8.) The lit INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. means of ransoming eternal life, (Job xxxiii. 24,) must be the greatest of all riches. Such as are called, (Prov. vill. 18,) durable riches and righteous ness. ‘To be without this means is real poverty, to possess them is to be indeed rich. ‘To believe that we do possess them, may be said to be rich in faith—a faith possessed by the Apostle Paul, as he describes it, (Phil. iu. 7,) —but an element of faith, wanting we suppose in the system represented by the angel of the Church of Smyrna. The reason of this deficiency is pro- bably alluded to, under the figure of the blasphemous errors of certain false teachers introducing themselves into the Church. The system having to contend with the erroneous principles introduced into it, as the pastor of a congregation, in a literal sense, might have to contend with those whose doctrines were calculated to turn his people from the truth. § 51. ‘The blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, &c. Blas- phemy, according to John x. 33, consists essentially in making one’s self God, or equal with God. Whoever is the efficient author of man’s salvation, to him must the glory of that work redound. If man were saved by his own merits, he would be the efficient author of his own salvation. In such case man would be glorified by the work, and not God. If man represent himself to be thus the author of his own salvation, he puts himself in the place of God ; he makes himself equal with God, and this is blasphemy; not in words, perhaps, but in effect. The Jews were particularly scrupulous in eschewing the sin of blas- phemy ; and yet here is an error charged particularly upon those who pro- fessed themselves to be Jews :—‘ He is not a Jew, says Paul, (Rom. 1. 28, 29,) which is one outwardly, neither is that circumcision which is outward in the flesh; but he is a Jew (in a spiritual sense) who is one inwardly : and circumcision is that of the heart, in the spirit, and not in the letter: of which the praise is not of man, but of God ;” something of which the praise does not belong to man, but to God. For the sinner cannot be entitled to praise for that which God has wrought either in him or for him. The words rendered inwardly, as above, are ἐν τῷ χρυπτῷ, im the hidden, or mystic sense; as the hidden wisdom, 1 Cor. ii. 7; and the hidden manna, Rev. ii. 17. He is a Jew who is so in that hidden, or mystic, or spiritual sense which is represented or symbolized by the literal Jew. In this spiritual sense we suppose the really uncircumcised to be those depend- ing upon the carnal or self-righteous covering of their own merits, to hide the shame of their guilt in the sight of God: whereas, he is the true Jew, or the truly circumcised, who renounces all dependence upon such covering ; counting all merits of his own but loss, and trusting wholly to the robe of Christ’s imputed righteousness to cover his iniquities, and to protect him from the wrath to come. ᾧ 52. The heart, in Scripture, we suppose to be put for what we call INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. hii the mind—the inmost fountain of thought and motive, whence all the springs of action originate; as the blood, propelled from the physical heart, circu- lates through the whole corporeal system. The characteristic of the circumcised mind, or heart, must be a conviction of entire unworthiness— entire destitution of merit. Few, perhaps, possess this conviction to its full extent; and, if the spiritual circumcision necessary to bring the disciple within the pale of the economy of salvation, depended altogether upon the state of his own mind, who might not have reason to dread the awful sentence of excommunication—‘ That soul shall be cut off from his people,” Ex. xii. 15. But, as the operation upon the Hebrew infant was not per- formed by itself, but by its parents, so we may say of the spiritual rite, that it is not an act of the disciple, but of his Heavenly Father. ‘To God the praise belongs, not to man. However imperfect the believer’s views in this life, God has graciously placed him in that position of circumcision, in which his salvation must be of grace, and not of debt. If his faith be suffi- ciently enlightened, he must’ see this even here, and his only motive of conduct will be that of grateful love, this motive operating through his whole moral system; but whether he see this or not in this life, he cannot but know, and see, and feel it hereafter. Corresponding with this, those who say they are Jews, and are not, we may take to be those pretending to this circumcision of mind—pretending to have renounced all dependence upon their own merits, but not having actually done so. Whatever their professions may be, they still go about to establish, and still trust in some supposed righteousness, or worthiness, of their own. These things we have transferred in a figure, as the apostle terms it, (1 Cor. iv. 6,) to the disciple, by way of illustration ; but we suppose these false professors, or teachers of false doctrines, to be principles, or elements of doctrine, and not human beings. The professed tendency of these principles comporting with the spiritual circumcision alluded to, but their real tendency being that of blasphemously representing man as the author of his own salvation. § 53. These principles are spoken of as belonging to the synagogue or assembly of Satan, that is, emanating from the Satanic system, or Satanic collection of doctrines; the synagogue of Satan being thus an opposite of the Church, or of a church of Christ :—the term synagogue, signifying a col- lection of people, or things, in which respect it corresponds with the term ecclesia, (church,) except that the latter carries with it the idea of selection, which the former does not. As we have supposed a church (ecclesia) | in the apocalyptic sense to represent an assembly of elect or sanctioned principles, so we suppose a synagogue to represent an assembly of principles not elect, not sanctioned. The synagogue of Satan being an assembly even of repudiated principles. liv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. - By Rev. xii. 9 and 10, we find the terms Satan, the Devil, the great dragon, the old serpent, the accuser of the brethren, to be only so many different appellations of the same being, or character. ‘The term Satan from the Hebrew, and Devil (Diabolos) from the Greek, signifying also an accuser, such as an adversary at law, or one occupying the place of a public prosecutor—the opposite of a mediator, or intercessor, or redeemer. We shall have occasion to treat this subject more at large hereafter: meantime, we assume the peculiar characteristic of Satan to be that of a legal adversary ; one whose office it is to enforce the action of the law, to render the subjects of his perquisitions obnoxious to the law, and in fine, to bring the disciple under tlte~condemnation of the law, to be subjected to its penalties, in des- pite of the redemption wrought out in his behalf. ‘Thus, to say that an element of doctrine is a principle of Satan, or that it belongs to the Synagogue of Satan, is equivalent to saying that it is an element of legal accusation, as opposed to an element of the economy of salvation by grace. Accordingly, it is said of these principles of self-righteousness, spoken of figuratively as teachers, professing to be Jews, without really being so, that they are not only false in this respect, but that they actually belong to the legal system of accusation ; a system entirely opposed to the whole spirit and purport of the gospel. ‘They are hypocritical im pretension, blas- phemous in character, and condemnatory, or working condemnation in their tendency. V.10. Fear none of those things which ηΤ]Τηδὲν φοβοῦ ἃ μέλλεις πάσχειν. ἰδού, thou shalt suffer. Behold the devil shall μέλλει βαλεῖν ὃ διάβολος ἐξ ὑμῶν εἰς φυ- cat (some) of you into prion, 8 70 iy, Ine πειρισόῆτε᾽ oud fare lyn tion ten days. Be thou faithful unto /M®9o” δέχα. you πιστὸς ἄχρι ϑανάτου, death, and I will give thee a crown, or καὶ δώσω σοι τὸν στέφανον τῆς ζωῆς. the crown, of life. § 54. ‘ Fear none of these things,’ &c.—The system is figuratively repre- sented as a disciple, having to contend with those who teach doctrines of self- justification, and in doing so, appeals to the accusing principles of the legal dispensation. In this position, the language of the disciple should be that spoken by the mouth of the prophet, Is. 1. 8, “ He is near that justifieth me: who will contend with me? Behold the Lord God will help me ; who is he that shall condemn me?” The circumstances, and the encourage- ment given, corresponding with those alluded to, Is. xl. 10-13. The suffering is the apprehension of the action of legal principles. As the minds of certain of the disciples were troubled, (Acts xv. 1, 5, 24,) by those representing circumcision, and the keeping of the law, as indispensable to salvation, a doctrine declared by the apostles to be altogether unau- thorized. ‘Behold, the Devil’ (the accuser) ‘ shall cast (some) of you into prison.’ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ly —That is, into a place of custody, in order that ye may be tried. The trial does not consist in being in the prison, but is something consequent to it. The public prosecutor seizes upon delinquents, and causes them to be imprisoned, preparatory to their trial. So certain principles of this evan- gelical system are seized upon by the element of accusation, for the purpose of trying, or testing, their efficacy in the work of salvation. ‘And ye shall have tribulation,’ or compression ; that is, ye shall be tried.—Certain of the principles emanating from this system, are to undergo the test. The word some is not in the original. The words ἐξ ὑμῶν, imply that which is from you. It may be all the principles emanating from this system are to be thus tried,—the elements of legal accusation being brought to act on one side, while those of justification by grace are exhib- ited on the other. Nevertheless, the assurance remains, as it is expressed, Is. li. 7, 8, “« Fear ye not the reproach of men ; neither be ye afraid of their revilings. For the moth shall eat them up like a garment, and the worm shall eat them like wool; but my righteousness shall be forever, and my salvation from generation to generation.” ᾧ 55. ‘Ten days.’—A definite term for an indefinite ; a decimal number of days for a whole period ; a short period for a long one. The very short- ness of the period, being intended to show the figurative character of the term ; as every reader is struck, at first sight, with the conviction that the literal sense is not at all to be taken into consideration. Had the time mentioned been ten years, or even ten months, we might have supposed it to apply literally to some specific portion of duration ; but as the trial is so exceedingly short as ten days, it is evident that something else is intended, and that something else we may suppose to be the whole period of duration, from the time of the announcement till the final manifestation of truth, when every trial of this kind must necessarily terminate. The perfect manifestation of the truths of the plan of salvation by sovereign grace. putting an end, in the nature of the case, to all further efforts at establishing the principles of self-justification, or at enforcing those of legal accusation. ‘ Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee the crown of life.’—All the Greek editions (according to Rob. ed. with Hahn’s notes, New-York, 1842,) have the definite article here ; indicating but one crown, as there is but one righteousness. So Paul, 2 Tim. iv. 8, speaks of the crown of righteousness laid up for him and others, and not ἃ crown, as our common version has rendered it. The word translated crown in this place, (ozépavog,) signifies the kind of crown given to conquerors at the public games; differing in this, from the word διάδημα, which we also render crown, but which applies to the insignia of supreme authority, and would be more properly rendered by the term diadem. The first kind of crown is alluded to by Paul, 1 Cor. ix. 25, lvi INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. “They do it to obtain a corruptible crown, but we an incorruptible.” This crown is the token of success in the contest or struggle, upon occasions of which it is given, and may be viewed, not as the reward itself, but as the evidence of the victor’s title to his reward ; as, amongst the ancients, public games were sometimes instituted to decide upon the election of a chief or ruler. The victor at the games, was. crowned with a garland, or wreath ; and we may suppose him, at the conclusion of the exhibition, to have prof- fered this crown as the evidence of his claim to promotion. So, to the fol- lowers of Jesus, the imputed righteousness of their Redeemer is the evi- dence of their victory over the powers of legal condemnation ; and conse- quently, the token, or crown, upon which they depend for the inheritance of eternal life—a crown of his righteousness, and not of their own, and thence distinguished as the crown of righteousness, and THE crown of life— the crown by which eternal life is secured. Their Saviour bore for them the crown of thorns, which they should have borne ; and they receive from him, as a matter of grace, the crown of righteousness to which he alone had a title. , The other kind of crown, (the diadem,) is that represented to be on the heads of the red dragon, and of the beast, Rev. xi. 3, and xii. 1. Not that these were either of them entitled to sovereignty, but that they are sup- posed to assume the prerogative ; as to assume the diadem, has been a com- mon figure of speech for pretending to imperial sway. In contradistinction to these false pretensions, it is said of the Word of God, that on his head he had “ many diadems,” (Rev. xix. 12.) The disciple is nowhere said to receive a diadem, or the diadem ; but he receives a crown, as the token of his success in the contest of faith. Such a token of victory is spoken of as allotted to the system, or angel of this church, figuratively, on condition of its faithfulness to death. As we may say, in the nature of the case, if the system prove to be correct,—if it comport with the elements of the economy of grace throughout—f this be manifested by its abiding the tests and trials to which it is to be exposed, then it is manifested to be itself the truth, and this manifestation is spoken of under the figure of allotting a crown to an individual disciple; the period of final manifestation, corresponding with this figure, being alluded to under the appellation of death. V.11. He that hath an ear, &c. ὁ ἔχων ove, κ-τ.λ. He that overcometh, shall not be hurt at ὃ γικῶν ov μὴ ἀδικηϑῇ ἐκ τοῦ ϑανάτου τοῦ the second death. δευτέρου. § 56. ‘He that hath an ear,’ &c.—This is a repetition of the hint, as we conceive it to be, given to all who read the book, of the mystic sense of the passage ; the remarks already made upon these words (¢ 46) have been, perhaps, sufficient. J / INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. lvil ‘He that overcometh.’—These words are thrown into the same verse with the hint just-spoken of, as if particularly connected with it. But we are to bear in mind, throughout the book, that in the original manuscripts there was no separation of chapters, or verses, and here probably, as elsewhere, the admonition as to the mystic sense is no more peculiar to what follows, or to what is in the verse with it, than to that which precedes it. ὁ vixav— The overcoming shall not be hurt at the second death.’—A a promise is given to him that overcometh in each of these seven addresses, The promises are different, but we may presume the enjoyment of one to be no way inconsistent with that of either of the others. The same overcoming individual, whatever is to be understood by the term, may enjoy the fruition of all of these promises—perhaps they all constitute but one promise. In the preceding epistle, the overcoming was to partake of the tree of life. In the present, the faithful unto death is to receive the crown of life. To one is promised the means of eternal life, as food constitutes the means of natural life ; to the other is promised the evidence of title to the same life,—this evidence of title being itself also a means. But in addition to this, the over- coming is promised here exemption from hurt at the second death. The verb rendered hurt, ἀδικέω, usually signifies doing an injury, in the legal sense of the{term—as Matt. xx. 13. Friend, I do thee no wrong, οὐκ ἀδικῶ oe. It is evident, however, that a promise to him that over- cometh, that he should not suffer wayustly from the second death, could not be what is here intended. The noun of the same formation is rendered in Scripture by the word unrighteousness ; and the verb and participle are both used, Rev. xxii. 11, as the opposite of d:x0100, signifying in the active voice to justify, and in the passive, Matt. xii. 37, and in Paul’s epistles, to be justified. Hence we may safely consider the hurt, or injury alluded to here,\ and of which the second death is supposed to be the occasion, to be the! opposite of justification. He that overcometh shall not be deprived of justification by or at the second death. The particle translated of in this place, ἐκ, signifies out of, —something proceeding from—as, if we suppose this second death to represent a system, or means of trial, the words are equivalent to the decla- ration thus, he that overcometh shall not be condemned, or have his justification impaired by any principle, or power, emanating from that which is termed the second death, (δ 174.) § 57. We find, by Rev. xx. 14, that the lake of fire, into which death and hell were cast, is the second death. In remarking upon Rev. i. 18, we have seen ($$ 33, 37, 38) that death and hell, or Hades, are mysteries, or systems, of which Christ holds the keys; the means of unlocking or of interpreting these systems being found in him. ‘The element of fire we suppose to represent the revealed Word of God, (Jer. xxiii. 29,) by which lviil INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. all doctrines or principles are to be tried, and by which all that is false in them is to be consumed, or manifested to be worthless, (1 Cor. iii. 13.) A lake or pit of fire, as it were an immense furnace, we suppose to be a very powerful revelation, or development of the revealed word, which is to act in a more than ordinary manner, in trying the truth, and testing the falsehood of all principles, or elements of doctrine, at that period of peculiar manifesta- tion, when these two anti-evangelic systems, Death and Hades, are to meet their final destruction. This instrument of trial is also spoken of as a lake of fire and brimstone ; we suppose in allusion to the popular opinion that the sulphuric composition of volcanic fires is the cause of their perpetuity. Hence a lake of fire and sulphur, or brimstone, is an instrument of trial, as by fire, perpetual and eternal. ‘To be Aurt by this second death, is to be manifested in this final trial to be in a state the opposite of justification. A principle hurt or unjustified by this trial, or test, is one manifested to be in- consistent with divine truth—inconsistent with the truth of sovereign grace. Such a fate as this the angel of the church in Smyrna is assured cannot attend the overcoming principle, ὁ γικῶν. The principle of salvation, through the imputed righteousness of Christ, will abide the test of the revealed word in its most spiritual sense. And this we suppose to be pre- eminently the overcoming principle of faith—the principle of sovereign grace, which overcomes every principle of legal condemnation. Epistle to the Angel of the Church of Pergamos. V.12. And to the angel of the church Kai τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Περγάμῳ ἐχκλησίας in Pergamos write; these things saith he άψον- τάδε λένει O ἔγων THY δομφαΐαν which hath the sharp sword with two Εν Ξ ῳ ᾿ δε edges. τὴν δίστομον τὴν ὀξεῖαν" ᾧ 58. “Ηδ that hath the sharp sword.’—Of the different titles assumed by the speaker in addressing the churches, six refer us back distinctly to the account given in the first chapter, of the form and language of the one like unto the Son of man, while the title assumed in the seventh address leads to the faithful witness, declared (Rev. 1. 5) to be Jesus Christ, thus identi- fying the form seen in the midst of the golden candlesticks, with one of the personifications of the source of grace and peace. The sharp sword is not an uncommon figure in Scripture. David says of the enemies of his soul, Ps. lvii. 4, alluding no doubt to the legal princi- ples of condemnation, that their tongue is a sharp sword; and again, Ps. Ixiv. 3, ““who whet their tongue like a sword,” preparatory to a work of legal destruction. The spirit of truth and the spirit of error have each their respective swords ; but the two-edged sword seems to be the peculiar weapon of the Holy Spirit; and this we have already described as divine revelation by the written word with its twofold sense, ($ 33.) INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Νὰ Υ. 19. Iknow thy works, and where οἶδα τὰ ἔργα σοὺ καὶ ποῦ κατοικεῖς, ὅπου thou dwellest, (even) where Satan’s seat ὃ ϑρόνος τοῦ σατανᾶ " καὶ κρατεῖς τῷ ὕνομά (is): and thou holdest fast my name, and RPE shan Ty Coe he hast not denied my faith, even in those ay?) ac. AE 19? Lda yd ae ca per My bef days wherein Antipas (was) my faithful Ταὶς μέθαις ἐν αἷς ντίπας ὃ μάρτυς μου ὃ martyr, who was slain among you, where πιστὸς, 0g ἀπεκτάνϑη πὰρ υμῖν, ὁπου ὁ σα- Satan dwelleth. TUES κατοικεῖ. § 59. “1 know where thou dwellest.’—To say that the Divine Spirit, here speaking, knew that the angel of the church dwelt in the church, or that the church of Pergamos was located in Pergamos, would be to suppose the enunciation of a mere truism. ‘This dwelling must refer, not to locality, but to position. Speaking of a system personified—I know thy position. This seems to be said in extenuation—as if allowance were made for a cer- tain disadvantage under which this angel laboured—as one who of necessity dwells in a place where he is under restraint from the action of a hostile power. ‘ Where Satan’s seat,’ or throne, ‘is,—that is, the seat of his power: ὁ ϑρόνος tov catave,—the throne of the Satan. The seat of the accuser’s power is where the law is in force; for where the law is fulfilled, the legal adversary, or accuser, can have no power. ‘The disadvantage, there- fore, under which this system labours is, that it admits in some degree at least the continuance of the legal economy. Its position supposes the requi- sitions of the law to be still unsatisfied—an admission widely differing from the representation of the apostle Paul, Rom. vi. 14, “‘ Ye are not under the law, but under grace ;”’ and Rom. vii. 4 and 7, “‘ Wherefore, my brethren, ye also are become dead to the law.” “ We are delivered from the law, that being dead wherein we were held; that we should serve in newness of the spirit, and not in oldness of the letter.” Opposite to this is the error, that the law continues in force, not merely as a rule of conduct, or guide to what is pleasing in the sight of God, but as a system of penal ordinances, involving the treatment of the disciple on his own merits, and thus subject- ing him to the power of the accuser. ‘ And holdest fast my name, and hast not denied my faith.’—Notwith- standing the false position, as we may call it, of this system, there were two commendable characteristics in it: the holding fast or wielding the name of Christ, as a weapon of defence ;—trusting in his name, and pleading the power of his name, and not denying the faith. Such a general sentiment of trust in Christ we often find in individual disciples, mingled with some erroneous views influenced by the spirit of legality. ‘‘ If thou shalt confess with thy mouth (it is said, Rom. x. 9) the Lord Jesus, and believe in thine heart that God hath raised him from the dead, thou shalt be saved.” This holding fast the name of Christ, may correspond with the confession of that name spoken of by Paul ; while Paul’s belief of the heart corresponds also with the not denying the faith. From the context of this passage in J ez INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Romans, it is evident that Paul contemplates but an imperfect knowledge of truth on the part of the disciple, who may yet draw the assurance of his salvation from these two simple elementary tokens of divine favour. Such an imperfect view of the scheme of salvation, may be supposed to be possessed by the angel of the church of Pergamos. Represented as a disciple, it might be said of him, with the heart he believed unto righteousness, (or justification,) and with the mouth he made confession unto salvation, giving professedly and confessedly the glory of that salvation to that name, of which it is said, there is none other given amongst men whereby we can be saved. ᾧ 60. ‘ Even in those days wherein Antipas (was) my faithful martyr, who was slain among you, where Satan dwelleth.—The first was is supplied by our translators, probably to make the sentence correspond with the use of the relative who, preceding the second was. It would be taking much less liberty to suppose the name Antipas to have been originally written in the genitive; which requires only a dropping of the final s. On this supposition the sentence might be read, in those days of Antipas, the faith- ful witness of me, who was slain on your account, where Satan dwelleth ; that is, under the legal dispensation—the peculiar position of the accuser. » The preposition παρὰ translated among in our common version, and apud in the Latin version of Leusden, might have been rendered for, or on account of, which meaning it also sometimes has, (Rob. Lex. 541.) The name Antipas is composed of the preposition 47z/, which sometimes signifies for, in the place of, and πᾶς, all. The appellation Antipas thus signifying in the place of all, or instead of all: pro omnibus, (Leusd. onomas.)—leading to the suggestion, that-this name is put for Christ himself in his vicarious char- acter—add to which the term, rendered here fazthful martyr, is precisely the same in the original as that rendered, Rev. 1. 5, the faithful witness, ὁ μάρτυς ὁ πιστός, a title peculiar to Christ—God the Holy Spirit here speaking of God manifested in the flesh—the personification of the Deity in Jesus Christ —the word made flesh—being the faithful witness, or representation of Jeho- vah. The word rendered by our translators even, is the common conjunc- tion καὶ (and) ; which, when repeated as it is here, may be rendered by also. The whole sentence is susceptible of being paraphrased as follows : and holdest my name, and hast not denied my faith in those days also of Antipas, my faithful witness, who was slain in your behalf under that dispensation of, the law which is characterized as the habitation of the accuser. Christ, the true Antipas, having placed himself in this position, pro omnibus, in behalf of all men, especially of those that believe. ‘This we suppose to be spoken of a system represented by an angel, whose fidelity under the circumstances alluded to may be considered an opposite of the conduct of one who, in a parallel situation, denied his master three times before the cock had crowed INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xi ‘thrice. * Notwithstanding this fidelity, however, there were defects in the system, arising probably from the peculiarity of the influence adverted to in the first part of the verse—a consequence of dwelling where Satan’s seat is. V. 14. But I have a few things against “422 ἔχω κατὰ σοῦ ὀλίγα, ὅτι ἔχεις ἐκεῖ on spear " a των Rhea. κρατοῦντας τὴ» διδαχὴν Μαλαύμ, ὃς ἐδίδασκε ΠΤ ΕΣ stambling ΔΑΝ hetare τῷ Βαλὰκ βαλεῖν σκάνδαλον ἐνώπιον τῶν 5 rr “ -- .» ΄ ~ > ΄ . \ the children of Israel, to eat things sacri- ©!” Ἰσραήλ, φαγεῖν εἰδωλόϑυτα καὶ πορ- ficed to idols, and to commit fornication. γεῦσαι. § 61. ‘A few things,’ &c., small in number, but evidently not unimpor- tant in character. ‘The Pergamean system has within it certain principles, figuratively spoken of as persons, inculcating in a spiritual sense that which Balaam taught in a literal sense. ‘The doctrine of Balaam,’ &c.—Balaam was sent for by Balak, king of the Moabites, (Numbers xxii. and xxiii.,) to curse Israel, with the promise of great rewards for so doing. His desire of obtaining these rewards was but too evident. The spirit of prophecy, however, was so strong upon him that he could do no otherwise than declare the truth committed to him to speak : but what he could not do as a prophet, he readily did for the compensation promised as aman. He taught Balak how to bring the Israelites into a snare of such a character as he knew must necessarily be followed by disastrous results to that favoured people, at least of a temporary nature. Acting in this, no doubt, upon his knowledge of the rule of divine providence towards them, that their transgressions should be visited with the rod, and their iniquities with stripes, although the loving kindness of their God would not be utterly taken from them. ‘A trap,’ or stumbling-block, as the term is employed here, must be something causing those affected by it to err from the faith. If meat, says the apostle, 1 Cor. viii. 13, make my brother to offend—that is, place a stumbling-block before him, “I will eat no flesh while the world standeth, lest 1 place a stumbling-block before my brother.” As if he had said, as appears from the context, speaking of the liberty of the people—I will not use my freedom, if my use of it lead a less enlightened brother to suppose that I do that which I do not believe myself at liberty to do, and thence prompt him to do the same thing without my belief’ of freedom—thereby leading him to sin against his own conscience ; for whatsoever is not of faith is sin, (Rom. xiv. 23.) Here was a doctrine of self-denial, the opposite of that of Balaam, who, to gratify his desire of gain—for a reward, it is said, (Jude 11)—hazarded the welfare of those whom, as a prophet of the Most High, he should have regarded as brethren. ‘ Things sacrificed to idols.’—The sin of the children of Israel, is spoken of as the eating of things offered to its idols ; not, however, merely in eat- ing the things, (as we learn from 1 Cor. vili. 7,) but in eating them as }xii INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. things offered to idols—participating in the act of idolatrous worship. As it is said, | Cor. x. 18, “ Are not they which eat of the sacrifices, partakers of the altar?” Their offence was idolatry itself. In a spiritual sense, he who places his hopes of salvation upon any other merit than that of Christ, makes such merit, or the source from which such merit emanates, an idol, or object of religious worship. If he trust to his own righteousness, he must necessarily ascribe his salvation to his own merit. In doing so, he depends upon himself and upon his own ability for that sal- vation, the glory of which he takes to himself, feeling indebted to himself alone even for his eternal happiness. While working out his salvation, as he considered it, he was actuated by no motive but that of serving and glo- rifying himself; and now having, as he supposes, effected this object, his obligations of gratitude and love, in his estimation, are to himself. His own self is his idol of worship; and all his works, however good they may appear outwardly, are but so many sacrifices offered to his idol. His error is not in performing works, but in doing them as things offered to an idol. § 62. There is a similar analogy between the crime of fornication and the error in doctrine illustrated by it. As the illicit indulgence into which the Israelites were betrayed through the teaching of Balaam, is the opposite of the lawful enjoyments of the marriage state,—the type or figure of the mystic union between Christ and his people,—so the criminal intercourse alluded to, in a spiritual sense, as a matter of faith, is a reliance upon other means of eternal happiness than those of a union and identity with Christ— righteousness of his righteousness, and merit of his merit; as the wife, in relation to her husband, is accounted one and the same person, bone of his bone, and flesh of his flesh, (Gen. ii. 23.) The spiritual body of the disci- ple’s righteousness being taken out of that of his Redeemer’s, as the woman was taken out of man. The teachers spoken of as holding or wielding the doctrine of Balaam, in the Pergamean Church, we suppose to symbolize principles leading the disciple astray from views of faith requisite to the true worship of God, and to an undivided reliance upon the merits of Christ: principles personified as teachers, professing, no doubt, to hold the name and not to deny the faith, while the tendency of their doctrine is that here described. Tn allusion to errors of this kind, apparently, the apostle Paul speaks οἱ those who cause offences, (τὰ σκάνδαλα, stumbling-blocks,) Rom. xvi. 17, 18, as persons serving not the Lord Jesus Christ, but their own belly ; making use of good words and fair speeches to deceive the simple—teachers actuated by selfish and mercenary views, and probably inculcating principles of a corres- ponding character ; self-righteous principles, perhaps, sustamed by literal con- structions of the language of revelation—teachers, forsaking the right way and going astray, as it is said, 2 Peter ii. 15, following the way of Balaam, who INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ‘ aii loved the wages of unrighteousness—principles diverging from the line of truth, and representing the divine plan of salvation as an economy of wages, instead of an economy of grace. V. 15. So hast thou also them that Οὕτως ἔχεις καὶ σὺ κρατοῦντας τὴν διδαχὴν hold the doctrine of the Nicolaitanes, τῶν "γικολαϊτῶν ὁμοίως. Or, according to which thing 1 hate. ae c ᾿ τὰ the common editions, 0 μισῶ. § 63. This last ὁ μισῶ, is probably the most correct reading; as it corresponds with the expressions before made use of on occasion of mention- ing the same doctrine. The word ὁμοίως, on the contrary, after the χαὶ at the commencement of the verse, would appear almost a pleonasm ; unless we suppose it is intended to refer us back to what is said of this doctrine in the address to the Ephesian angel. The result in such case would be the same as if we adopted the expression, I hate. We have already noticed the character of this Nicolaitan doctrine, (5 45,) that it was probably something seducing the mind from the true faith, as the appellation signifies something overcoming the people. We have also noticed that the verb translated hold, signifies also to wield ; as in the use of a weapon of offence or defence. The holders of this doctrine being, not merely passive believers, but those who taught its principles polemically—or if principles themselves are spoken of, they are such as maintain these Nicolaitan views. ‘Which thing I hate.’-—Some light is thrown on this expression by com- paring it with Jude 23, ‘“ Hating the garments spotted with the flesh.” μισοῦντες καὶ τὸν ἀπὸ τῆς σαρκὸς ἐσπιλωμένον χιτῶνα. Flesh, as we have before noticed, is a figure of moral perfection ; as, in the human form, it is essential to physical perfection. The flesh of Christ represents his righteous- ness; flesh generally, as of created beings, represents human pretensions to righteousness—the supposed or pretended moral perfections of man. The garments spoken of by the apostle, are without doubt garments of salvation— means of salvation to protect the soul and cover the shame of guilt, as the literal garment protects and covers the human body. The only garment of this spiritual kind without spot, is the perfect robe of divine righteousness obtained by imputation. A garment of salvation, spotted by the flesh, is a supposed robe of divine righteousness, intermingled or spotted with a certain portion of pretended human perfection—a robe partly of Christ’s righteousness, and partly of man’s merits. This pretension of dividing with Christ the glory of redemption, must be peculiarly hateful to him, who has declared that he will not give his glory to another, Is. xlii. 8, and xlviii. 11, and it should be equally hateful to every disciple jealous of the honour of his Master. The Christian is thus especially called upon to hate this garment spotted by the flesh: while the doctrine xiv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. represented by this garment is declared to be peculiarly hateful to the Holy Spirit. This peculiar error of mixing up our own merits with those of our Saviour, and claiming, as it were, at least a part of the honour due to him, seems to partake of the robbery for burnt offering spoken of, Is. lxi. 8. It may also be typically alluded to in the prohibition, Lev. xix. 19, “Thou shalt not sow thy field with mingled seed: neither shall a garment mingled of linen and woollen come upon thee.” Vs. 16, 17. Repent; or else I will come unto thee quickly, and will fight against thee with the sword of my mouth. He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith unto the churches. To him that overcometh will I give to eat of the hidden manna, and 1 will give him a white stone, and in the stone a new name written, which no man knoweth, saving he that receiveth it. Ἱετανόησον οὖν" εἰ δὲ μή, ἔρχομαί σοι ταχὺ καὶ πολεμήσω MET αὐτῶν ἐν τῇ ῥομ- φαίᾳ τοῦ στόματός μου. “O ἔχων os ἀκου- σάτω τί τὸ πνεῦμα λέγει ταῖς ἐκκλησίαις" TH γἰκῶντι, δώσω αὐτῷ τοῦ μάννα τοῦ κεκρυμ- μένου, καὶ δώσω αὐτῷ ψῆφον λευκὴν καὶ ἐπὶ τὴν ψῆφον ὕγομα καιγὸν γεγραμμένον, ὃ οὐδεὶς οἶδεν εἰ μὴ ὃ λαμβάνων. ᾧ 64. “ Repent.’—This term we have already noticed (ᾧ 44) as signifying a change of mind or views ; and this we may add, not merely with regard to one general view of matters of religion, but with regard to a view, or views, of any particular subject. ‘The angels of the churches do not repre- sent the heathen, or the unconverted, or opposers of Christianity. On the contrary, they are addressed as professors of Christian faith, as those holding fast the name of Jesus, and not denying his faith—as those who have borne, and have been patient, and have laboured for his name’s sake, and yet they are called upon to repent; that is, to change their minds, or views, in respect to certain points of doctrine, or, as systems to expurgate their sys- tems of certain errors. They are not threatened with the loss of their souls, or with eternal perdition, if they do not repent, or thus change their views ; but they are threatened in one case with the removal of the candlestick, or church, with which the angel is connected; and in the other, with the speaker’s coming and contending against them with the sword of his mouth. As a general rule, therefore, we may say that repentance, μετάνοια, is a change of mind; but to understand in what respect it is spoken of asa change of mind, we must take into consideration the circumstances of each case under which the term is used. In the present case, the angel, or system of Pergamos, was to change in respect to the errors represented by the teachers of the Balaam and Nicolaitan doctrines. “1 will come unto thee quickly,’—that is, suddenly, ($ 4,) intellectually equivalent to a sudden development of truth. ‘ And fight against thee. —The contention of truth with error. The instrument—“ the sword of my mouth,’’—the sword of the Spirit, which is the word of God, with its twofold interpretation, the two-mouthed sword of the mouth of God. The weapons of our warfare, says the apostle, are not wa INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ιχν carnal, (2 Cor. x. 4,) they are not material, of course ;—not only so, they are not literal—* They are mighty to the pulling down of strong holds,” but their might is not in the letter, but in the spirit of revealed truth. § 65. “Τὸ him that overcometh will 1 give to eat of the hidden manna.’ To the overcoming principle, as we have supposed it to be, will be given the manifestation of its participation in the element of eternal life, designated as the hidden manna. “Iam the bread of life,’ said Jesus, “I am the bread which came down from heaven. Your fathers did eat manna in the wilderness and are dead.”’—The literal manna could not preserve them from death, it could prolong life only for a time, but the hidden or spiritual manna secures eternal life. ‘ ‘The.bread which I give is my flesh, which I give for the life of the world.”—The moral perfection, the righteousness of Christ, are given for the salvation of the world. “ Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man and drink his blood, ye have no life in you:’’ equiv- alent to the declaration, Except ye participate in the righteousness and atonement of Jesus Christ, ye can have no hope of eternal life. “ Whoso eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood hath eternal life, and I will raise him up at the last day.” —To whomsoever the merit of Christ’s righteousness and of his atonement is imputed, to them the assurance is given of a new existence. “ For my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed.”"—The right- eousness of Christ, enjoyed by imputation, is a means of sustenance for eternal life, as his atonement is the means of saving the sinner from eternal perdition. ‘“ He that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him.”—The disciple participating by imputation in these merits of Christ, is identified or counted identic with him in the sight of God ; they in him, and he in them. This is the bread that came down from heaven, and those that participate in this bread shall live for ever. Here three substances, manna, bread, and flesh, are severally spoken of as figures of the means of eternal life. God so loved the world that he gave his own Son, that whosoever believeth on him should not perish, but should have eternal life, (John iii. 16.) Jesus Christ gave himself, we are also told, (1 Thess. v. 10, and Gal. i. 4,) that we might live together with him. Christ himself, therefore, must be the hidden manna, as he is the spiritual bread of life, to be participated in by the overcoming principle (ὁ νικῶν). He gave himself, his flesh and blood—But we know that literally his body saw no corruption ; although the spirit separated from the body on the cross, that spirit and that body, on the third day, were again reunited. Jesus reassumed the same material body, the same flesh, and the same bones ; consequently we must presume that when he speaks of giving his body, and of the eating of his flesh, he alludes to something else than the material objects bearing these names ; and this something else we suppose to be, the 6 Ixvi INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. body of his merits. His flesh representing his righteousness or moral per- fection, and his blood being the figure of his virtual propitiation in behalf of the sinner—as the physical blood is the essential of natural life; and flesh, not only as an article of food, like bread, is a means of sustaining life, but is also essential to the beauty of the natural body. The beauty of the Lord consisting in the flesh of his moral perfection, his righteousness ; in allusion to which it is said, Is. xxxii. 17, Thine eyes shall see the King in his beauty ; and Ps. xc. 17, Let the beauty of the Lord our God be upon us: and as the want of this nghteousness on the part of the disciple is spoken of by the prophet under the figure of leanness—Is. xxiv. 16, “ From the uttermost parts of the earth have we heard songs, glory to the righteous ; but J said, My leanness, my leanness, wo is me !” Such is the hidden manna—typically represented by the literal manna under the old dispensation, and symbolically set forth under the new dis- pensation in the bread of the last supper :—that bread representing literally the physical flesh of Christ ; but spiritually, his righteousness, which, as imputed by sovereign grace to those who are made participators of it, may in the strongest sense be pronounced the true bread, or hidden manna, which comes down from heaven. This hidden manna, it is said, will be given to him that overcometh ; that is, we suppose, ὁ 0, the principle overcoming the requisitions of the law, will be manifested to be a part of this arrangement by which the righteous- ness of Jehovah is imputed to the disciple ; for, in fact, it is this which gives to the overcoming, the power to overcome. ᾧ 66. ‘ And will give him a white stone.’—This is supposed to be an allu- sion toan ancient custom of delivering a white stone to such as were acquitted on trial, in token of a full and public pardon, or absolution, or justification. Stones, it is also said, were used by the ancients in criminal processes as votes or ballots ; a white stone implying acquittal, and a black one condemna- tion :—corresponding as a token with the result ascribed, to a participation of the hidden manna .The means of obtaining forgiveness, and those of obtain- ing eternal life, are generally coupled together in the Scriptures, showing two things to be essential to future happiness: an atonement to save from the punishment of actual transgression, and a positive righteousness to furnish a title to reward. Christ died for our sins ; but propitiation alone would only save from punishment. Our great mediator and advocate has done more. He offers his own righteousness in our behalf, that we may inherit eternal happiness as the reward of his merits—a reward apparently alluded to, Col. ul, 24. Of this process of justification, as well as of pardon, the white stone may be the token. It is scarcely correct, however, to represent a person charged with crime as both acquitted and pardoned. For he that is acquitted, or pronounced INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixvii innocent, needs no pardon ; as it is only after actual condemnation that the accused can be said to be an object for the exercise of mercy. Justification and pardon have nothing in common with each other; accordingly, in the Scriptures, these are two distinct views of the same act of divine goodness— two distinct processes of the same exercise of sovereign grace. The sinner in himself, standing on his own merits, and obnoxious to the rigour of the law, is condemned—even the sentence of his execution is pro- nounced. In this position he is an object of mercy ; this mercy may be exhibited as a pardon, forgiving all his iniquities—blotting out his transgres- sions as a cloud, and as a thick cloud his sins (Is. xliv. 22) : or as a ransom, in allusion to the fate of a captive or rebellious subject whose life is about to be taken from him, unless ransomed or bought off by some friendly power, or by a propitiation reconciling the offended sovereign to the guilty rebel ; or as an atonement, in which the punishment to be suffered by the criminal is borne by another party in his behalf. If, instead of this, we contemplate the disciple as justified, we must sup- pose him innocent, not guilty—innocent even in the sight of a heart-search- ing God. This can only be imagined by supposing the sinner taken as it were out of himself, and adopted, and substituted in the place of one who is perfectly righteous. Such is the process with the disciple, when in divine judgment he is accounted one with Christ—identified with him ; the right- eousness of Christ and the merit of Christ being accounted that of his fol- lower. Here justification takes place of condemnation ; as it is said, (Rom. viii. 1,) there is therefore no condemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus. In this view, the figures of pardon, atonement, or propitiation, or ransom, are not called for. ‘The disciple is supposed in Christ to be tried, and to be found perfect, wanting nothing: not only exempt from guilt, but even hav- ing that righteousness which entitles him to the reward of eternal life. It is evident that both these views exhibit the same action of divine mercy, and the same instrument by which that mercy is exercised. ‘God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Son.’—Here is the one gift, or act of grace. ‘God was in Christ reconciling the world unto himself.””—Here is the one instrument, Christ, by which this grace is exercised. “Ηρ, Christ, died for our sins, according to the Scriptom re ‘He was wounded for our transgressions, and bruised for our iniquities.”— Here is one mode in which the gift of God’s only begotten Son is repre- sented as operating—one mode in which the reconciliation spoken of is effected. He, Christ, ‘‘ who knew no sin, became sin for us, that we might become the righteousness of God in him.”—Here is another mode of illus- trating the benefit of the same gift, and of explaining the process of the same reconciliation.* * Some further illustration of this exercise of divine mercy may be found in the Ixvin INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. The gift of the white stone may correspond with either of these repre- sentations :—in the one case being a token of pardon; in the other, of acquittal. White appears to be a general figure, in the Apocalypse, for moral per- fection or righteousness. Stones, amongst the ancient Hebrews, were em- ployed as weights, as we find from Prov. xi. 1, where the word translated weight, signifies a stone. Christ, himself, is repeatedly spoken of as a stone, a tried stone, a precious corner-stone, &c. It would seem, therefore, that this white stone is but another figure for Christ himself, or his righteousness. The giving of the white stone, is thus a consequence of the giving of the hidden manna; the one being a token of the other; the hidden manna representing the means by which the judgment against the criminal has been satisfied, and the white stone occupying the place of what is technically termed a ‘satisfaction piece. So, obtaining the crown of life, Rev. τ. 10, may be viewed as a consequence of participating in the fruit of the tree of life, Rev. ii. 7; the enjoyment of one benefit involving that of the other. § 67. ‘And in the stone a new name written, which no one knoweth saving he that receiveth it.—According to the Greek, the reading should be upon (ἐπὶ) the stone. The name is not concealed in the stone. It may be imprinted upon the surface ; but no one knows or understands the impres- sion, except the recipient. The verb translate know, from Eide, signifies, primarily, to see. So the name on the surface of the stone, may be plainly written, or inscribed ; but no one can see it, whose eyes are not opened to a spiritual discernment of it. This new name is no doubt the same as that promised to the conquering, (τῷ νικῶντι,) in the address to the angel of the church of Philadelphia, where it is spoken of as the name of the speaker, ‘my new name.”” Applying this to the passage under considera- tion, we should read, and to him that overcometh, or to the overcoming, I will give a white stone, and wpon the stone my new name, which no one knows but the recipient. If we suppose the stone to be a token of justifi- cation under the figure of a sealed weight, the name upon the stone may be considered the name of him who vouches for the correctness and suffi- ciency of the weight ; and, consequently, it is the name which gives to the form of petition prescribed, Matt. vi. 9: Forgive us our debts, or trespasses, as we forgive those indebted, or who have trespassed against us. We do not forgive where the party indebted is able to pay, or where the trespasser is able to compen- sate—we forgive only where the debtor is unable to pay, which is all that we are required to do. So, we are taught to ask the divine forgiveness on the same prin- ciple—that is, because we are wholly unable to pay. So, if the debtor or trespasser have a friend able and willing to respond in his behalf, we accept the satisfaction made by the surety, and discharge the debtor ; and accordingly, in praying God to for- give us as we forgive others, we virtually pray him to accept the satisfaction Christ, our surety. has made in our behalf, and to forgive us for his sake. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixix stone its peculiar importance. So, he who knows the name with which the weight is sealed, or certified, places his confidence accordingly in it. In the same manner, the disciple, recognizing the name of his Saviour in the token of his justification, places his faith and confidence in its sufficiency, while to others who do not know this name, such confidence is altogether incompre- hensible. As it is said, Ps. ix. 10, “ And they that know thy name will put their trust in thee.” Or, we may say, the name upon a stone is the name of the stone. So, as we have supposed this white stone to represent Christ, or his righteousness, his name, or a name corresponding thereto, we may expect to find imprinted upon the stone. The name itself will thus show us what it is that the stone represents. It is predicted of the Brancn, Jeremiah xxiii. 6, This is bis name, whereby he shall be called, THe Lord our RIGHTEOUSNESS, or rather JEHOVAH OUR RIGHTEOUSNESS ; and, in speaking of the same branch, (Zech. iii. 8, 9,) mention is made of a stone as a token or evidence of the removal of iniquity,—the stone and the branch being apparently equivalent symbols. It is true that it is also said of Jerusalem, Jer. xxxiil. 16, “She shall be called the Lord our righteousness ;” but this it is evident must be in the same manner as a wife is called by the name of her husband, corresponding with the declaration, Is. liv. 5, “Thy Maker is thy husband, the Lord of Hosts is his name.” There are other names by which, according to the prophets, Christ is to be called, but perhaps none may be so safely denominated his new name, as this, JEHOVAH OUR RIGHTEOUSNESS. Of no other appellation given to the Saviour can it be said, perhaps, so especially, that it is a name known or appreciated only by those, whose enlightened faith enables them to rely upon this name, and upon all that is indicated by it. As it is said, Ps. ix. 10, And they that know thy name will put their trust in thee; and Ps. v. 12, Let those that love thy name be joyful in thee :—the trusting in this name importing the faith alluded to in the prediction, Is. xlv. 24, ‘Surely shall one say, In Jehovah have 1 righteousness and strength.’’* * This construction of the white stone supposes, it will be said, the speaker, Christ, to promise the giving of himself to the overcoming. Admitting this, the promise finds a parallel in that made in the epistle to the angel of Thyatira, (Rev. ii. 28,) in which the morning star is promised to him that overcometh ; while, at the close of the Apoc- alypse, we find Jesus himself expressly declaring, that he is the bright morning star, (Rev. xxii. 16,) ὃ ἀστὴρ ὃ λαμπρὸς ὃ πρωϊνός. Ixx INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Epistle to the Angel of the Church of Thyatira. Vs. 18, 19. And unto the angel of the Καὶ τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Θυατείροις ἐχκλη- church in Thyatira write: These things gjyq γράψον" τάδε λέγει ὃ υἱὸς τοῦ ϑεοῦ, € saith the Son of God, who hath hiseyes νον τοὺς ὀφθαλμοὺς αὑτοῦ ὧς ολόνα πυ- like unto a flame of fire, and his feet are “4” TOUS CPU GAMOUS AUTOU ὡς PLoye 7 like fine brass. I know thy works, and 906, καὶ οἱ πόδες αὐτοῦ ὅμοιοι χαλκολιβάνῳ charity, and service, and faith, and thy οἶδά σου τὰ ἔργα καὶ τὴν ἀγάπην καὶ τὴν patience, and thy works; and thelast(to πέστιν καὶ τὴν διακονίαν καὶ τὴν ὑπομονήν be) more than the first. σου, καὶ τὰ ἔργα σου τὰ ἔσχατα πλείονα τῶν TEO OT OW. § 68. ‘ These things saith the Son of God.’—Here is wherewith to iden- tify the speaker with the form seen amidst the golden candlesticks,—dis- tinctly pomting out to us the one like unto the Son of man, to be, in fact, the Son of God. At the same time, the words at the close of the address, ‘He that hath an ear, &c, let him hear what the Spirit saith,’ show us that what is said by Jesus, the Son of God, is equivalent to what the Spirit saith; the revelation throughout emanating from the same source. The difference in the form of expression is worthy of notice : “‘ The Son of God,” not one like unto the Son of God ;—in the first instance, under a human form assuming a human character, (Phil. ii. 6, 8;) but now announcing him- self to be what he really is, the Son of God, with power, (Rom. i. 3 and 4.) ‘I know thy works, and charity,’ (love,) ‘and faith, and service, and thy patience, and thy last works to be more than thy first works.’-—Such seems to be the sense of the passage. There is first a general declaration of a knowledge of the works of the system, such as is made to all the angels, and then a varticular declaration of what is known in respect to these works. The angel, or system, has even increased in works, or in a zeal for works ; and there seems to be a degree of praise bestowed for its love, and faith, and service, and patience. It is not reproached with having forsaken its first love, as was the case with the Ephesian angel ; neither are we to suppose, on the other hand, that it was perfect in love, or that it excelled in the other qualities named. It evidently was not entirely wanting in them. It had faith, but this faith was not without its blemish, or its deficiency, as a matter of doctrine. Its. service would seem to be a part of its works ; but the word διακονίαν prob- ably refers more particularly to the ministry of the angel, or the influence of the system in the work of evangelization. Its patience, ὑπομένα, we sup- pose to be its firmness in the polemical contest in which it is engaged, as a Ps system, or messenger of the Gospel. The term ὑπομἔνᾳ, translated patience, from the verb ὑπομένω, signifying primarily the sustaining of a hostile attack, —hbearing up, as under a shield against the shock of the enemies’ weapons: sustentatio qui impetus et incursus alicujus rei sustinetur, (Suiceri Lex.,) an endurance to the end, spoken of in the Gospels of Matthew and Mark,—the patience, in which the followers of Jesus are directed to possess, or to build INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. lxxi up (edify, condo) their souls, or minds, Luke xxi. 19. Here is a great deal of praise implied, while the closing declaration, ‘I know thy last works to be more than the first,’ shows that whatever error the angel, or system, has fallen into, it has not diminished in its activity, or zeal, as to works. It may be, however, that the words τῶν πρώτων apply to all the preceding qualities —under either construction, the angel seems to be distinguished for works. V.20. Notwithstanding, Ihave afew 7AAX ἔχω κατὰ σοῦ, ὅτι ἀφεῖς τὴν γυναικά things against thee, because thou suffer- σου Ἰεζάβελ, ἣ λέγουσα ἑαυτὴν προφῆτιν καὶ est that woman Jezebel, which calleth 5 δάσκει καὶ πλανᾷ τοὺς ἐμοὺς δούλους πορ- herself ἃ prophetess, to teach and to β΄ οτος’ - ae ΤΣ γεῦσαι καὶ pays sidwhoduta. duce my servants to con mit fornication, and to eat things sacrificed to idols. § 69. ‘ Notwithstanding, or but, I have against thee that thou sufferest,’ &e.—The term ὀλίγα, rendered a few things, is not in all editions of the Greek. With it, the idea conveyed is, that there may be more than one thing to be complained of—without it, the complaint seems to be confined to this « Jezebellian influence. According to the reading of some editions, as above, this Jezebel would seem to be figuratively spoken of as the wife of the angel—ziv γυναικά cov, thy wife, or thy woman—whether this be correct or not, the allusion must be 10 the wife of Ahab, King of Israel ;—there being something analogous between the influence of this woman over her husband, and the influence of that which is here represented by her over the system of doctrine figuratively addressed as the angel of a church. The word translated seducef signifies primarily, to cause to err—to turn from the right way, to pervert/ (in errorem impello.) This Jezebel being suffered, not only to teach the elements of falsehood, but also to carry out her doctrines, in a general perversion of truth. The term prophet, or prophetess, was originally applied to those who professed to interpret the things uttered by the oracles, as coming from the gods, (Rob. Lex. 656,) not so much the foreteller of future events, as the inter- preter of the foretellery (ὁ μάντις.) In this sense the term was probably understood by the Greeks and Romans in the times of the apostles, and was thence applied amongst Christians to their religious teachers, as interpreters of the sacred writings; and even to the doctrines themselves, as deduced from those writings.* Accordingly, we suppose this Jezebel to represent a professed interpreter of revealed truth ; or rather, a principle of such inter- pretation—a construction—not of a single individual, but of a sect per- haps, or, as we sometimes say, of a school. The construction, however, and not the school of human individuals literally, is represented by this mis- chievous woman. As the angel represents a system of doctrine, so here is * Apud veteres, προφήται dicebantur fanorum antistites, oraculorumque interpretes. In Nov. Test. προφητεύειν de eo dicitur qui scripta sacra interpretatur seu enarrat, (Suiceri Lex.) Ixxil INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. a false construction permitted to insinuate itself into the system, and thus to pervert, or lead away, the true principles (my servants) to the formation of false doctrines, or erroneous views. ‘The error in contemplation, had, it seems, the same tendency as that of the doctrine, or school, of Balaam, already noticed—something hostile to an implicit dependence upon Christ, as by a spiritual union with him ; idolatrous, also, as in effect serving some other object of worship than God, the only Saviour, (ὃ 61.) The action of the spiritual Balaam seems to be less direct, or more insid- ious than that of Jezebel. He gains his object by throwing a stumbling- block in the way of truth. The disciple is offended, or shocked, at the enunciation of some principle which he does not understand, and falls, in consequence, into an opposite error; or he is captivated by some plausible appearance of religious principle, which in its tendency leads him away from the true means of salvation. Jezebel, on the contrary, assumes to be an interpreter, and in this capacity openly and authoritatively promulgates error, (ex cathedraé.) As a false construction, or system of construction, employed in the interpretation of the word of God, coerces all adopting such construction into the erroneous views resulting from it. The infamous woman whose name is here typically used, was the daughter of a heathen prince; and by her coming into power, in the king- dom of Israel, the whole body of the people was led into idolatry. She, accordingly, furnishes an appropriate figure of some foreign principle, or mode of construction, pretending to favour a purer worship of the Deity, but in reality tending to rob God of the honour and service peculiarly his. We say pretending, for we may take it for granted, that the advocates of idolatry did not introduce their false Gods amongst the Hebrews as false. They pre- tended, of course, that their idolatry was the only true worship, and as their idolatrous rites favoured the licentious inclinations of the worshippers, these | last were easily led to believe what they wished to be true. So the advo- cates of idolatry, in later times, under pretence of being themselves the upholders of the true worship, persecuted the early Christians—even the apostate Emperor Julian, professing to be a convert from Christianity to Paganism ; so, too, the Grecian philosopher, Socrates, was condemned to death as an infidel, because he treated the mythology of his day with the contempt it deserved. Vs. 21, 22. AndI gave her space to Καὶ ἔδωκα αὐτῇ χφόνον ἵνα μεταγοήσῃ, repent of her fornication, and she repented “αὶ οὐ ϑέλει μετανοῆσαι ἐκ τῆς πορνείας αὖ- not. Behold, I will cast her into a bed, ; : ' εἰς κλίνην τοὺ and them that commit adultery with her ria ᾿Ιδού, βάλλω αὐτὴν a lipegligiioton into great tribulation, except they repent μοιχεύον τοϑ μετ' αὐτῆς εἰς ϑλῖψιν μεγάλην, of their deeds. ἐὰν μὴ μετανοήσωσιν ἐκ τῶν ἔργων αὐτῆς. ᾧ 70. ‘I gave her time to repent, and she is not willing to repent.’ —The last verb is in the present tense, in our edition of the Greek, remind- INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixxiii ing us, if correct, that we are to transport ourselves forward in the reading to the final development of truth—the day of the Lord—when error, having prevailed for a season, is overthrown ; corresponding with what is said of the mystery of iniquity, 2 Thess: 11. 7: And she will not change, or she has not changed,—not merely in the time of the apostle, but up to the time con- templated in the revelation. The term repent, we have before noticed (ὃ 44) as signifying a change of mind or views. This error has had space to operate its own change, but it is not in the nature of error to change — itself. Such a result must be brought about by some external action upon it. ‘Behold I will cast her into a bed,’ εἰς κλίνην, or upon a bed. This is supposed to be a bed of sickness, (Rob. Lex. 379.) But we find by the Septuagint that the word translated bed, sometimes signifies a bier; as 2 Sam. ii. 31, “ And King David followed after the bier, (ὀπίσω τῆς κλίνης,) and they buried Abner in Hebron.” ‘The menace is therefore equal to the threatening of death :—I will cast her upon a bier—I will bring her to the grave ;—she has had space to repent; she has not repented, or will not repent ; I will now finally destroy her. ‘ And them that commit adultery with her into great tribulation..—This figure of illicit intercourse we have already supposed to represent the opposite of a simple reliance upon the merits of Christ; as adulteration, or mixture, is the opposite of that which is pure, or unmixed, (¢ 62.) The false construction represented by Jezebel, is to be entirely destroyed ; but the principles influenced by this construction are capable of being reclaimed, and restored to their original and legitimate use,—a change spoken of under the figure of repentance: meantime, till this change takes place, these principles will be brought into a state of extreme compression (ϑλῖψις), so as to incapacitate them from doing further injury by their perverted action. ‘The false construction, or interpretation, being arrested—Jezebel being destroyed—the elements of truth (my servants) are no more perverted —no more made to participate in the promulgation of idolatrous doctrines. They must now be employed in the cause of truth, in which cause only they are capable of action; or they must be like persons in prison, and even in chains: but they are not cast upon a der, or brought to entire destruction. ‘Except they repent of their deeds.’-—Principles being personified as persons, the operations of principles in the promulgation of false views are spoken of as deeds, or works : being in fact the works of principles in matters of doctrine. In their perverted state, they have been operating as persons deprived of their reason, and their restoration to their proper use is accord- ingly spoken of as a change of mind, μετάνοια, or as the change taking place in the intellect of one who, having been deranged, is subsequently restored to his right mind, (¢ 44.) This construction of the terms deeds and lxxiv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. doctrines, is confirmed by comparing together the 6th and 15th verses of this chapter, as also the 22d and 24th. The deeds and doctrine of the Nicolaitans, and the deeds and doctrine of Jezebel, evidently signifying in both cases elements of doctrine, or doctrinal views. So by comparing verse 20 with verse 22, we perceive that what is called adultery in one, is termed fornication in the other; the terms, for the purpose of illustra- tion, being used as equivalents. V. 23. And I will kill her children with Καὶ τὰ τέχνα αὐτῆς ἀποκτεγῶ ἐν ovate death ; and.all the churches shall know so) sodigoucnsiectcaacheus dain, stu does = = L Ob EXKANHOLHL, OTL EYW that lam he which searcheth the reins χ " ῥ 4 > ue ~ 1 \ , Ν 4 δ τος εἰμι ὁ ἐρευνῶν νεφροὺς καὶ καρδίας, κ - and hearts; and I will give unto every τε ἐν τ PEpQOUS κὰν HAQCIUS, Hab oy one of you according to your works. pad i sili 6 Bi Bi csi ah BS ge ck ᾧ 71. “1 will destroy her children with death,” would be, perhaps, a better rendering.—These children we may presume to be, figuratively speaking, illegitimate children, the offspring of the illicit connexion between Jezebel and those denominated “my servants.” In other words, they are the issue of the false construction put upon true principles, or something equivalent thereto—erroneous deductions from these perverted elements of truth, and consequently, like the false construction itself, to be destroyed. ‘Children are an heritage of the Lord.’’—So are righteousnesses or merits; those of Christ being the inheritance left by him to his followers. Children are thus figures of merits, or supposed merits; legitimate children being one of the figures of the righteousness, or merits, resulting from a union with Christ. ‘Happy (Ps. cxxvii. 5) is he who hath his quiver full of them: he shall meet his adversary in the gate.’ Illegitimate children represent supposed righteousness, pretended merits, causes of shame and reproach. The children of Jezebel we may suppose, ac- cordingly, to be the pretended merits or righteousnesses of human invention, resulting from the erroneous interpretation given to certain doctrines, or elements of revelation. ‘These are said to be destroyed by death; death being, in a spiritual sense, the result of the action of the law upon every work, or principle, subjected to its action, and incapable of meeting all its requirements. The pretensions to merit, or grounds of justification, drawn from the Jezebellian construction, are of this character. They will be manifested to be incapable of meeting the requisitions of the divine com- mand; and consequently, as soon as subjected to this test, they are de- stroyed with death :—children, in a spiritual sense, destroyed by death in the same sense—pretensions to merits destroyed by legal condemnation. § 72. ‘ And all the churches shall know that I am he which searches the reins and the heart.’—Here is a manifestation resulting from the opera- tion just described. The Jezebellian construction supposes the production INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixxv of certain merits, or righteousnesses, equal to a fulfillment of the requisitions of the law. The law, spiritually discerned, is therefore brought to act with all its power upon them—they are tried and condemned. They are tried by examining into the secret springs of action. 'The motives whence these works or merits, as they are supposed to be, emanate, are sifted, and are all found to originate from an impure source. ‘There is no love of God in them—not one of them has proceeded from love to him,—they are all selfish, and mercenary, and vain-glorious ; or they are amalgamated with principles of this character, contaminating the whole mass. This trial is supposed to be public. The Churches are spoken of as spectators. They discern the process; they notice the nature of the investigation ; and hence they perceive that he who has conducted the whole, or rather who presides as judge over the whole, is He who searcheth the reins and the heart :——‘ The searching,’—the operation continually going on. The idea is thus suggested that this revelation itself may be an instrument of exhibiting the fallacy of all human claims to righteousness, by showing the connection between the works upon which these claims are founded, and the motives whence they originate. The words, I am he, at the same time remind us that the speaker,—the Son of God, in form like the Son of man, —the Spirit speaking to the churches, is also the Righteous God spoken of, Ps. vii. 9, “ Who trieth the reins and the heart.” I, Jesus, who am addressing the angels of the churches, preparatory to unveiling myself, am he who looketh upon the heart, as it is said, John ii. 25, “‘ He needed not that any should testify of man: for he knew what was in man.” [ also am He who, in this unveiling of myself, am about to show the real character and motives of the human mind, and to exhibit the fallacy of all human pretensions to merit. ᾧ 73.‘ The reins and the heart.’—The heart is usually taken for the seat of affection, passion, or desire, both in a good and bad sense, in contradistinc- tion to the mind; as if the. latter were something which decided coolly and dispassionately, while the former was governed only by a sort of animal impulse. This, however, does not appear to be the use of the figure designed in the Scriptures. The heart and mind are there, perhaps without exception, almost interchangeable terms; at least the former is frequently put for the latter, as a tree may be put for the fruit of the tree—the thoughts of the heart must constitute the mind. The heart seems to be spoken of rather as the fountain of thought, however, and the mind as the reservoir formed from the fountain. The difference appears to be princi- pally this: that the mind is entirely an immaterial term ; while the heart is a material term, employed as the figure of something immaterial—the heart represents the mind. A physical organ, the functions of which are known, is employed to represent an intellectual organ, whose functions are not so ]xxvill INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES contemplation requires. As the physical heart is the source whence the blood circulates, so, analogous with this, the metaphysical heart may be taken for the fountain of motives directing the whole current of our thoughts. Out of the heart, it is said, (Matt. xv. 19,) proceed evil thoughts, such as murders, adulteries, &c. If we trace back the evil thoughts originating these crimes, we shall find their source in the love of self, the desire of self- gratification : whether this gratification be attainable in the shape of sensual indulgence, avarice, or self-aggrandizement, the imagination of man’s heart is only evil, and that continually ; because the rulmg motive of his conduct is selfishness—the desire of serving, pleasing, and glorifying self. § 76. In the animal, the heart performs all its functions solely for and within the body in which it is placed; the blood going out by the arteries, and returning by the veins, ina routine of its own. So the thoughts and desires of the human mind, emanating as they do from the love of self, go out and return, as we may say, with no other end in view than that of self-gratification. Nor is this confined to matters of the present life. If the motive of a man’s actions, even in his religious conduct, be to secure his own eternal happiness, such a motive must be as selfish, and as much con- fnned within the routine of self-seeking, as if his views were directed to objects of present gratification ; although there is more wisdom in his choice, his motive of action is equally selfish. The heart of man is deceitful, and desperately wicked (Jer. xvii. 9) ;—and this, not so much in those whose recklessness prompts them to acts of open fraud and violence, for there is not much deceitfulness with them; but the deceitfulness of the heart is in him who thinks he is serving God, when he is only serving himself—who counts himself acting for the glory of his Creator and Redeemer, when he is only going about to secure his own eternal well-being, and to promote, as he supposes, his own future glory. He may be diligent in prayer and fasting, scrupulous in the observance of every moral obligation, of every rite, and ceremony, and of every holy day ; he may be unremitting in his zeal ; he may be distinguished for the excellence of his doctrinal views ; he may give all his goods to feed the poor; and yet, if the secret motive of his whole conduct be to secure his own eternal felicity, self-gratification 15 his object— he has not the love of God in him; and if he thinks it to be otherwise, this is only a’ further proof that his heart is deceztful above all things. He does not know it—the difficulty consisting not in the desire of unlawful indulgence, for this he can detect, this he knows to be wrong, and here he is not deceived ; but in his ignorance of the selfishness of his own motives, he is deceived, because he thinks he is serving God, when he is really serving mammon. Self-interest enters into all his motives, combines with them, contaminates and adulterates them, and thus renders them all impure and unclean in the sight of Him from whom no secrets are hid ; so the same {INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ΙΧΧΙΧ selfishness, proceeding from the heart or fountain of motive, like the circu- lation of the blood, pervades the whole moral system ; and the whole man, in the sight of a heart-searching God, has reason to cry within himself, Unclean, unclean! § 77. By the same rules of analogy, the reins, or kidneys, as some of the inmost organs of the material body, may be, and indeed are, usually considered figures of the most secret thoughts and purposes; but as_ the mention of these in Scripture is frequently coupled with that of the heart, it seems more reasonable to suppose the different figures to refer to different objects of the same class, than to view them both as referring precisely to the same thing or things. The reins are located in the region of the loins, and the two seem to be used occasionally in Scripture, one for the other: as it is said of the Mes- siah, Is. xi. 5, ““ Righteousness shall be the girdle of his loins, and faithful- ness the girdle of his reins.” The Septuagint has the words τὰς πλεύρας, (the sides,) instead of reins. ‘The difference, however, seems to be princi- pally that the reins apply to the internal part, and the πλεύραι, or sides, to the external part ; the loins comprehending both, and both requiring the same girdle,—as justice, or righteousness, and faithfulness, or fidelity to one’s engagements, are moral qualities involved in each other. The impor- tance of the loins, in the animal structure, is derived from both the external and internal economy. The loins are scripturally spoken of as the seat of strength; and the strength of man, in a spiritual sense, is his ability to meet the responsibility of a position under the law—to furnish merits equal to the requisitions of the law. The real strength of the disciple, in this particular, is the righteous- ness or merits of Christ—Strong in the Lord and in the power of his might, (Eph. vi. 10, Is. x]. 10); the whole community of the redeemed being sustained, in this spiritual sense, by the loins, or sides, of the Almighty Redeemer, (Is. Ixvi. 12.) But there is a pretended strength supposed to be derived from some- thing meritorious in man. The self-righteous disciple considers himself possessed of a strength, in his own loins, and in his own reins, capable of sustaining the burden of his own transgressions of law, and of bringing forth merits of his own to meet its requirements; and it is not ull he is convinced of sin, and his eyes are opened to the deceitfulness of his own heart, that he perceives his reins to be consumed within him, (Job xix. 27,) and his loins to be filled with a loathsome disease, (Ps. xxxviil. 7.) No sooner are the motives of all his actions exposed, than the folly of his pre- tensions to righteousness, or merit, is equally exhibited-—his inability to meet the law is manifested. He that searcheth the reins, is he that investi- gates the pretensions to this ability: He tries us as silver is tried ; and in Ixxx INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. doing so, he necessarily lays affliction (compression) upon our loins, Ps. Ixvi. 10 and 11. To search the reins is equivalent, therefore, to searching into the soundness of all pretensions to righteousness; as trying, or searching, the heart, is é¢quivalent to searching into the secret motive, the primum mobile, of conduct. § 78. ‘ And I will give unto every one of you according to your works.’ —A similar declaration is made by God himself, Jer. xvii, 10: “1, Jehovah, search the heart, I try the reins, even to give to every man according to his ways, and according to the fruit of his doings.” ‘This is the language of the law, as it was set forth by Moses and the prophets under the old dispen- sation; as it was commented upon by Jesus, in the sermon on the Mount ; and as it is appealed to by Paul, in the introductory portion of his Epistle to the Romans, (Rom. ii. 6-10.) But these churches, in the ordinary ac- ceptation of the term, were not under the law, but under grace. We can- not suppose any individual of the Christian community, in a literal sense, to be capable of abiding this test; for which reason, it is said, 2 Tim. i. 9, of the same God, that ‘ He hath saved us and called us with an holy calling, not according to our works, but according to his own purpose and grace, which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world began.” We must bear in mind, therefore, that works, in the apocalyptic sense, (τὰ gya,) are principles, or elements of doctrine, (ὃ 70.) These are to undergo the scrutiny in question, and as they are true or false, such will be the manifestation concerning them. This construction appears to be con- firmed by the subsequent verse. Vs. 24,25. But unto you I say, and “Tui δὲ λέγω, τοῖς λοιποῖς τοῖς ἐν Ova- unto the rest in Thyatira, as many a8 μείροις, ὅσοι οὐκ ἔχουσι τὴν διδαχὴν ταύτην, have not this doctrine, and which have « >» ι of ὦ οἵτινες οὐκ ἔγνωσαν τὰ βαϑέα τοῦ σατανᾶ, ay ne will bed eae eS Pi (ὡς λέγουσιν") οὐ βάλλω ἐφ᾽ ὑμᾶς ἄλλο Ba- burden; but that which ye have already, 05° πλὴν ὃ ἔχετε, κρατήσατε ἄχρις οὗ ἂν hold fast till I come. ἥξω. § 79. “Τὸ you, the rest in Thyatira.’—The conjunction and is not in all editions of the Greek. Without it, the rest in Thyatira is in apposition to you : signifying, not to the rest besides you, but to you, the rest. The angel of this church, or, as we suppose it, the system, is lauded for its doctrines, or principles, with one exception : that of this Jezebellian doctrine, or the influ- ence which this false construction, or interpretation, has upon certain ele- ments of the system. This is implied in the general tenor of the address, and is here confirmed. All the elements of this system not influenced by the Jezebellian error, being subjected to no further constraint; they are only required to hold fast, or to continue as they are. ‘As many as have not this doctrine.’—Here, the subject of animad- version is expressly declared to be one of doctrine. The works spoken of INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixxxi are consequently, works of doctrine, as we have just now supposed ; and these works of doctrine, not members of the church, in a literal sense, are to _ be treated according to their merits or demerits. Those which have not this doctrine, we suppose to be principles unperverted by this false interpreta- tion of the false prophetess—* Which have not known the depths of Satan ;” —having the doctrine of Jezebel, and knowing the depths of Satan, being nearly equivalent terms. The depths of Satan we may suppose to be the deceitful errors, tending to place the disciple in the position (abyss) subject- ing him to the power of the accuser ;—the doctrine of Jezebel, and these deceitful errors of Satan, both having the tendency alluded to by the Psalmist, when he says: “TI sink in deep mire, where there is no standing,” (Ps. Ixix. 2;) or according to the Septuagint, “I sink into the mire of the deep.” So Ps. cxxx. 1,3, “ Out of the depths, (ἐκ βαϑέων) have I cried unto thee, O, Lord: Lord, hear my voice.” “If thou, Lord, shouldst mark ini- quities, O Lord, who shall stand ?” Not to have known these depths, or these artifices of the legal adversary, is apparently not to have been contaminated by them—not to have been under their influence ; the sense of the word translated know, being that gathered from its use as a euphemistic expression, (Rob. Lex. 126, γινώσκω 8.) Principles not affected by these satanic errors, as spoken of, are those which have not known them. “ΑΚ they say,’ uti dicunt, or, as it is said; or, as it is sometimes said ; referring to this peculiar use of the term know. The rendering of the words ὡς λέγουσιν by, “as they speak,” seems to imply that these depths speak, and that the Thyatirans are praised for their ignorance of what is spoken, which does not seem so consistent with the general tenor of the address. “1 will put upon you none other burden,’ &c.—The language reminds us of that of the apostolic epistle to the disciples at Antioch, Acts xv. 28, in reference to the conduct of some teachers, who were for enforcing an observance of circumcision, and the keeping of the law: “It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us, to lay upon you no greater burden than these necessary things.” So we suppose the burden in this case to be a matter of doctrine; the burden in each of these cases being that spoken of in the subsequent part of the sentence: “ No other burden than these necessary things,” to wit, “ that ye abstain from,” &c.—“ No other burden than that which ye have,” to wit, “ hold fast till I come ;” equivalent to the charge elsewhere—“ Be thou faithful unto death ;” or equal to what is sometimes said to be a patient waiting for Christ. The verb translated hold fast, may signify, however, a wielding of power. In Latin, imperium obtineo, impero, dominor, (Suicerus.) Hence it may signify here, continue to use your influence—operate as heretofore ;—not as though the angel were already 7 ΙΧΧΧΙΙ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. perfect, (Phil. iii. 12,) but that, such as he is, he is to continue—occupying the same position—to keep his post, till the period for the perfect develop- ment of truth. Vs. 26, 27, 28. And he that overcom- eth, and keepeth my works unto the end, to him willI give power over the nations: (and he shall rule them with a rod of iron; as the vessels of a potter shall they be broken to shivers:) even as I received of my Father, and I will give him the morn- ~ ~ ” 1 Kai ὃ νικῶν καὶ ὃ τηρῶν ἄχρι τέλους τὰ ἔργα μου, δώσω αὐτῷ ἐξουσίαν ἐπὶ τῶν > τῳ \ αἱ By ‘ oO ἐνὶ ἐθνῶν: καὶ ποιμανεῖ, αὐτοὺς ἐν ῥάβδῳ σι- - ‘ ‘ δηρᾷ, ὡς τὰ σκείη τὰ κεραμικὰ συντρίβεται, c ” 3 ~ , ὡς κἀγὼ εἴληφα παρὰ TOU πατρός μου" - ‘ ' ‘ - , καὶ δώσω αὐτῷ τὸν ἀστέρα τὸν πρωΐνον. ing-star. He that hath an ear, &c. Ὃ ἔχων οὖς, κιτ.λ. ᾧ 80. He that overcometh, or the overcoming, ὁ νικῶν---γθ suppose to be an overcoming principle of faith figuratively spoken of, as a disciple hav- ing such faith, (ᾧ. 46.) He that keepeth, or the keeping my works—he that keepeth or adhereth to my doctrine. ‘The principle, or the system of faith, in which all the elements of doctrine peculiar to the work of redemption, are perfectly, or faithfully found. This system shall triumph, or shall be manifested to be triumphant. Here we find the term works (ἔργα) especially applied to matters of faith. We can understand it in no other sense. “1 will give power over the nations..—No one can suppose each indi- vidual disciple of Jesus Christ, however favoured, or however excelling in faith, to have here the promise of a political or ecclesiastical power over the nations of the world; nor can we suppose the term nations, as here used, to signify literally political bodies, or assemblages of human beings. The word translated nations, is the same that is rendered Gentiles, Rev. xi. 2; the translators of our common version having almost indis- criminately rendered the same Greek word sometimes Gentiles, and some- times nations. The difference in fact is not material, and would not be worthy of notice, were it not that with the term Gentiles, we are accus- tomed to associate the idea of something opposite to Jews ; while with the term nations, we lose sight of this association. In the Latin, as in the Greek, the appellation is the same (gentes ) in both cases; so also in the Spanish and Italian. We must be governed therefore by the context, and not by these two different words, in the ideas we associate with the terms. In this passage we might read, [ will give him power over the Gentiles, perhaps with as much propriety as we read (Rev. xi. 2) that the outer court of the temple was to be given to the Gentiles. There is another difference in the ideas we associate with these terms, which is not sanctioned by such difference in the original term, either Greek or Latin. We suppose the word nations to be the appellation of a number of different bodies, or collections of persons ; while to the term Gentiles, we attach only the idea of one common mass of human beings—the aggre- INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixxxiii gate of all persons not Jews or Christians, (Webster.*) In the first case, the nations, as separate and independent political powers, represent corres- ponding separate and distinct spiritual powers—so many powers of the earth, or, as we suppose, of the system or economy represented by the earth. In the last case, the term Gentiles would be supposed to express the aggre- gate power of all principles opposed to the Economy of Grace. The result is nearly the same: the nations, as a figure, corresponding with the tribes of the earth; and the Gentiles, as we ordinarily understand the term, cor- responding, as a figure, with the inhabitants of the earth: both represent- ing the collected power of earthly, anti-evangelical principles arrayed against the truth, but finally brought into subjection to it. § 81. If the nations or Gentiles, whether in the aggregate or as dis- tinct bodies, be considered a figure of something opposite to that which is represented by the Jewish people, then we are to associate with this idea of anti-evangelical, or hostile principles, the peculiar character of uncircumcis- ion ina spiritual sense ; elements of self-righteous doctrine being figura- tively spoken of as human beings, vainly depending upon their own moral goodness, or upon something meritorious in themselves, as a covering of their guilt, and asa shelter from the wrath to come. Whether we view the nations as saving powers of divers earthly systems, or the Gentiles as the saving power of the earthly system; they both belong to the same uncir- cumcised class of self-righteous elements, opposed to that system of grace, by which God alone can have the glory of man’s salvation. These all, * however, are to be manifested as subordinate, and subject to the overruling, overcoming principle: the principle of salvation through grace (ὁ νικῶν) being manifested to predominate over every other ; that is, to have power over the Gentiles or nations. ‘ And he shall rule them with a rod of iron,’—despotically—an ascend- ancy admitting of no dispute, either as to right or as to power—something irresistible ; as the principle of sovereign grace sets aside every other prin- ciple. God is a sovereign—He has a right to do as he pleases with his own, and every thing is his; He gives freely, and when he does 50, the question of merit does not at all come under consideration. The rod of iron, we suppose to be the revealed word, in its proper sense. § 82. ‘ As the vessel of a potter shall they be broken to shivers.’— Strange language this, if to be applied to human beings, from the mouth of Him who came “not to destroy men’s lives, but to save them.” The nations in the sight of the Most High are but as grasshoppers—man is but GFA * This lexicographer supposes the term Gentile to be derived from the Latin gentilis, civilized. But it is certainly much more easy to trace it directly from the root gens, gentis, plural gentes—nations in general. Ixxxiv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. a worm. God sendeth forth his Spirit, and the inhabitants of the earth are created, in the order of their generation; He withdraweth his Spirit, and they return to their dust. Literally, generation after generation of nations has been broken in pieces, since the utterance of this declaration ; but this we do not suppose to be the subject under contemplation. The figure here employed—the vessels of a potter—reminds us of the illustration given to the prophet, (Jeremiah xviii. 2-4,) “Arise and go down to the potter’s house, and there I will cause thee to hear my words. Then I went down to the potter’s house, and behold, he wrought a work on the wheels. And the vessel that he made of clay was marred in the hand of the potter: so he made again another vessel, as seemed good to the potter to make it.” And now, says another prophet, (Is. Ixiv. 8,) “Ὁ Lord, thou art our Father, we are the clay, and thou our potter: and we are all the work of thy hand.” “‘ Hath not the potter power over the clay ?” says an apostle, (Rom. ix. 21,) or, as the Most High himself expresses it, (Jer. xviii. 6,) in the passage just now quoted—“ O house of Israel, cannot I do with you as this potter? Behold, as the clay is in the potter’s hand, so are ye in my hand.” The house of Israel, we suppose to be put typically for the Legal Dispen- sation ; a figure exhibiting what may be called the first experiment of the plan of salvation. Here was the first potter’s vessel: it was marred—it proved to be insufficient—it was destroyed, broken ito pieces, as the sovereign Maker had a perfect right to do with it ; while in the economy of grace he makes another in its place, as it seemed good to him. The break- ing of these nations into pieces, by the rod of iron, corresponds with the sovereign action of the potter in destroying the first vessel, and making a new one. The legal dispensation is set aside—its elements* are destroyed, broken in pieces—and this by the irresistible action of the principle of sovereign grace. ‘The marred vessel, intended only for a temporary pur- pose, is broken to pieces, and a new one is formed. Here there is despot- ism; but it is the despotism of divine mercy. There is nothing here incon- sistent with the character of Him, who came to seek and to save them that were lost. ‘The enemies of the sinner’s soul, and not the sinner himself, are thus broken into shivers, at least in the apocalyptic sense. § 83. ‘ As I have received of my Father.’—This carries us back to the remarkable passage, Ps. ii. 8, 9, “ Ask of me, and I shall give thee the heathen for thine inheritance, and the uttermost parts of the earth for thy possession. ‘Thou shalt break them with a rod of iron; thou shalt dash them in pieces like a potter’s vessel.” Or, as it is expressed in the Septua- * That is, the elements of self-righteousness peculiar to the legal system,—the house of Israel, as a figure, in the prophecy, being equivalent to the nations of the Apocalypse.—See Romans ii. 28, “ He is not a Jew,” &e. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ‘ Ixxxv Zint, δώσω σοι ἔϑνη τὴν κληρονομίαν σου, καὶ τὴν κατάσχεσίν σου τὰ πέρατα τῆς γῆς, ποιμανεῖς" αὐτοὺς ἐν ῥάβδῳ σιδηρᾷ, ὡς σκεῦος κεραμέως συντρίψεις αὐτούς :—the word rendered nations in the Apocalyse, being the same in the Septuagint as that translated the heathen in our version of the Psalms ;—the nations, gentiles, or heathen, being understood to be something in contradistinction to the Jews, or to the chosen people of God; and both passages being susceptible of the same spiritual understanding. The words—even as I received of my Father—are supposed to be imme- diately connected in sense with the latter part of the 26th verse, the inter- mediate matter being thrown into parenthesis. Whether this be so or not is immaterial, if the construction just given to the passage be correct. We have no occasion for supposing the disciple, still less every disciple, to pos- sess power over the nations in a literal sense ; and still less, that he is to exercise this power, by breaking these nations, over whom he is placed, into pieces. We must take the whole passage to refer to the ultimate predomi- nance of a certain principle of evangelical truth, over a multitude of opposing errors. However defective our mode of analysis may be, the result, we think, cannot vary far from the true meaning of the passage. ‘ And I will give him the morning-star..—We find, at the conclusion of the book, Rev. xxii. 16, that Jesus Christ expressly declares himself to be the bright and morning star. ‘The promise of the speaker is thus to give himself to the overcoming principle. The giving of the star, however, may, by a figure of speech, be the giving of the benefit—the general influence of the star ; as it is said, apparently in allusion to the same star, the star of day, or day-star, (Mal. iv. 2,) “ And to you that fear my name shall the sun of righteousness arise with healing in his wings.” The disciple, in the exercise of faith, in his heart or mind, perceives the day to dawn and the day-star to arise, in proportion as he is enabled to appropriate this sun or star to himself, as the Lord Ais righteousness. In the apocalyptic sense, however, we do not suppose it to be the dis- * motwarsis—this rule or sway, as the Greek term implies, is that exercised by a shepherd over his flock. “The Lord is my shepherd,” (Sept. Κύριος! ποιμένει με) Pe Sees de. Fh: “Yea, though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil, for thou art with me. Thy rod (ῥάβδος) and thy staff they comfort me.” Here the same instrument, (the shepherd’s rod or crook,) spoken of as an object of dismay to the heathen, affords matter of comfort to one in the position of the psalmist. The valley of the shadow of death being, as we suppose, the condition of the disciple under the threatening of the law—the overshadowing of Sinai. The rod and staff necessary to sustain all passing through this valley, must be the revealed word of God, or the promised way of salvation revealed in that word. This brings us to the knowledge of Jehovah, as the Lord our righteousness—the predominating principle of our faith. This same revealed word, in its proper sense, must be the rod of iron breaking in pieces every principle of doctrine, or element of error, opposed to the system of sovereign grace. Ixxxvi INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ciple himself directly, that receives this promise. The overcoming principle of faith, or doctrine, is to be manifested as comprehending a reliance upon the imputed righteousness of Christ. This doctrine of imputation of Christ’s merits, is to be manifested as belonging to the predominating principle, or system—the one eventually to be exhibited as identified with the other. So, the doctrine of salvation by grace, through faith, comprehends the principle of the substitution of Christ, in the place of the sinner; and so the imputed identity of the disciple with his master, is comprehended in that power of adoption, by which, in the sight of God, the follower of Jesus is contemplated, or appears as in the beloved. Such is the principle, we may suppose, upon which the Christian’s faith is to be formed; and of which it is said, 1 John v. 4, This is the victory that overcometh the world—our faith. The earnest subject of inquiry being this: Do I possess the faith here set forth /—do I depend upon this predom- inating principle? Not, Am I hereafter to rule over the nations, or am ἢ to break them in pieces as a potter’s vessel. ‘He that hath an ear to hear, let him hear,’ &c., ($ 46.) INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Ixxxvil CHAPTER IIL Epistle to the Angel of the Church in Sardis. _ V.1. And unto the angel of the church Καὶ τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Σάρδεσιν ἐκκλη- in Sardis write: These things saith he σίας γράψον: τάδε λέγει ὃ ἔχων τὰ ἑπτὰ that hath the seven Spirits of God, and , τ fics ah be Pe Ce aa ae τ the seven stars; I know thy works, that fe de perl del adie andi! id hap ian a thou hast a name that thou livest, and art οἷδά σου τὰ ἔργα, ὅτι ὁνομὰ ἔχεις OIL ζῇς, dead. καὶ νεκρὸς εἶ. § 84. ‘He that hath,’ &c.—Here the speaker, as having the seven Spirits of God, is identified with him which is, and which was, and which is to come; with the Alpha and Omega, declaring himself to be the Almighty, and having the seven stars; also, with the one “like unto the Son of man,” (Rev. i. 4-16;) and consequently he is the same who declares himself to be the Son of God, (Rev. ii. 18.) Having, or holding, the seven stars, he appeals to his right of control over the seven angels, or systems ; an appeal apparently the more called for, in this address, as its language is almost altogether that of rebuke; while the reference to the seven spirits recalls to our minds, that he is also the source of grace and peace, (ᾧ 8.) ‘1 know thy works.’—The declaration implies, as we have before sup- posed, something equivalent to that of the knowledge of a person’s charac- ter, whether good or bad,—I know thy character—I know the character and tendency of thy whole system ;—the works of the angel being the opera- tions of its doctrinal principles. On former occasions something good was known of the works of the angels; here they are known, as it subsequently appears, to be deficient. ‘That thou hast a name that thou livest, and art dead.’-—Some editions read τὸ ὄνομα, the name, which seems to be the sense; as if it were said, «1 know thy whole character: thou hast the name of living, or of being alive—such is thy reputation—but thou art really dead.” The system of faith of this church, we may suppose to be of such a character, as to be in high repute amongst men: but “God seeth not as man seeth; for man looketh upon the outward appearance, while God looketh upon the heart.” The work of God, is to believe on him whom he hath sent, (John vi. 28 ;) and this belief we may presume to imply confidence and trust. _ If he, whom God has sent, comes as a Saviour, to believe in him, is to trust in his ability and willingness to save. “ΤῸ believe in him, is to believe all that he Ixxxvill INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. declares of himself. It is placing implicit confidence in him ; as a traveller about to cross a stream will not trust himself upon a bridge, unless he believe in its sufficiency. We may imagine a system of faith, in which there is much appearance of Christian profession, or of adherence to Christ as a teacher or example, but in which there is an entire deficiency of this confi- dence or trust in him for salvation. ‘That thou livest and art dead.’—* I am the resurrection and the life,” said Jesus ; “‘ he that believeth on me, though he were dead, yet shall he live ; and whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never die,” (John xi. 26.) Here we are told what it is to five. On the other hand, it is said by an apostle, Rom. vii. 9, “ I was alive without the law once, but when the com- mandment came, sin revived, and I died.” Here, again, we learn what it is to be dead. To be under the law, is to be in a state of death; not to be under the law, is to live, or to be in a position, or state, of life. "ΤῸ believe in Christ, therefore, in the proper sense of the term, is equivalent to being delivered from this state, or position, of legal death. This kind of faith we may presume to be that in which the angel of the church of Sardis is want- ing ; or rather, the system, personified as an angel, is wanting in this work, or tendency, of placing the disciple in such a position in Christ—not under the law, but under grace, (Rom. vi. 14.) The principles of this system, for the most part, have a tendency, probably, to bring the disciple back to his position under the law—dependent upon his own merits, and consequently obnoxious to the sentence of condemnation, (Rob. Lex. 63 ;) while, accord- ing to man’s judgment, we may suppose it to have the name or reputation of being the true way of life, or of salvation. Vs. 2, 3. Be watchful, and strenethen the things which remain, that are ready to die: for I have not found thy works perfect before God. Remember therefore how thou hast received and heard, and hold fast and repent. If therefore thou shalt not watch, I will come on thee as a thief, and thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon thee. § 85. ‘ Be watchful.’—Rouse from this state of deadness. Tivov γρηγορῶν, καὶ στήρισον τὰ λοιπὰ ἃ ἔμελλον ἀποϑανεῖν. οὐ γὰρ εὕρηκα σου τὰ ἔργα πεπληρωμένα ἐνώπιον τοῦ ϑεοῦ μου. Πνημόγνευε οὖν πῶς εἴληφας καὶ ἤκου- σας, καὶ τήρει χαὶ μεταγόησον. ἐὰν οὖν μὴ γρηγορήσῃς, ἥξω ἐπὶ σὲ ὡς κλέπτης, καὶ οὐ μὴ γνῷς ποίαν ὥραν ἥξω ἐπὶ σέ. The verb rendered watchful, signifies the opposite of lying down, or sleeping. As it is said, Eph. v. 14, ‘‘ Awake, thou that sleepest, and arise from the dead, and Christ shall give thee light.” Watchfulness, and rising from the dead, being here equivalent terms. ‘Strengthen’ the remaining things which are about to die, or perish.— Alluding, we suppose, to certain principles, or parts of the system, in dan- ger of perversion, and which need strengthening by farther knowledge of the truth ;—corresponding with the desire expressed by the apostle, Rom. i. 7 INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ΙΧΧΧΙΧ 11, “ For I long to see you, that I may impart unto you some spiritual gift to the end ye may be established.” ‘The things that remain,’ &c.—The word things is not in the original, but the words τὰ λοιπά, (the rest,) in the neuter plural, imply things, not persons; not the disciples that remain and are ready to die, but principles tending to that position in matters of faith, already described as a position of death, (ὁ 71.) ‘For I have not found thy works perfect’—completed, complete, or ful- filled, as the original purports ; in allusion, perhaps, to a full, or just meas- ure: the matter under consideration being, not a moral perfection of char- acter, but a correctness of doctrine, according to the measure, or standard, of Christ—* the perfect man, the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ,” Eph. iv. 13; with which standard every system of doctrine is to be compared. ‘ Remember, therefore,’ &c.—This is an admonition to go back to first principles ; equivalent to that remarked upon in the address to the angel of the Church of Ephesus, (ᾧ 43:)—the holding fast the truth, and the repentance, or change of mind, as to that which is false, being particularly with reference to the erroneous views of the system, constituting its dead- ness. ‘If, therefore, thou shalt not watch, I will come upon thee as a thief,’ &c.—If thou dost not change in respect to this tendency towards the position of being dead, I will come as a thief, that is, suddenly, unex- pectedly. The Lord will come to all; to the disciple fully prepared he comes as expected and desired, but to those unprepared he comes as a thief, that is, at a moment when least expected. The distinction arises from the nature of the case. The disciple in Christ is in a position at all times prepared for his Master’s coming ; out of Christ he is never prepared. So to those who are alive in Christ, he cannot come as a_thief—they cannot be taken by surprise; while to those who are in the position opposite to this, that is, to those who are dead, (dead in the law,) to such, when he does come, he must come as a thief. This angel, or system, is thus personified as a disciple; its watching, or waking state, being equivalent to that of an enlightened faith, enabling the believer, trusting in the merits of his Saviour, to be at all times ready for his coming: as it is said, 1 Thess. v. 4, “ But ye, brethren, are not in darkness, that that day should overtake you as a thief.” It may overtake you; it will over- take you ; but will not do so as a thief. ΧΟ Vs. 4,5.6. Thou hast a few names even in Sardis which have not defiled their garments ; and they shall walk with me in white; for they are worthy. He that overcometh, the same shall be cloth- ed in white raiment; and 1 will not blot out his name out of the book of life, but I will confess his name before my Father, and before his angels. He that hath an ear, &c. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. PAAR ἔχεις ὀλίγα ὀνόματα ἐν Σάρδεσιν, ἃ οὐκ ἐμόλυναν τὰ ἱμάτια αὑτῶν καὶ περι- πατήσουσι μετ᾽ ἐμοῦ ἕν λευκοῖς, ὅτι ἄξιοί εἰσιν. “Ὁ νικῶν, οὗτος περιβαλεῖται ἐν ἵἱμα- τίοις λευκοῖς" καὶ ov μὴ ἐξαλείψω τὸ ὄνομα αὐτοῦ ἐνώπιον τοῦ πατρός μου καὶ ἐνώπιον τῶν ἀγγέλων αὐτοῦ" “O ἔχων οὖς ἀκουσάτω τί τὸ πνεῦμα, κιτ.1. ᾧ 86. ‘But thou hast a few names,’ &c.—Notwithstanding the general deadness of the Sardisean system, there are a few principles in it which have not been affected by the perversion calling for this strong animad- version :—the term names being put for principles possessing a certain power; as a thing done in the name of a prince, or ruler, is something done by his authority. ‘There is but one name or power whereby we can be saved, but there may be subordinate names, or powers, or principles, entering into the composition of the plan of salvation ; as there are opposite names, pretended powers, or false principles, typically spoken of, Zech. ΧΙ]. 2, as the names of the idols to be cut off out of the land, m the day when the fountain is opened for sin and uncleanness; that is, in the day when the true means of salvation shall be fully manifested. ‘Which have not defiled their garments,—Garments of salvation— righteousness, or merits, or means of propitiation. The only unspotted garments of this kind are those of the merits of Christ. | Principles holding forth means of salvation, partly of Christ’s merits, and partly of man’s, are represented as disciples wearing spotted or defiled garments, (ἢ 63 ;) whereas doctrinal principles, exhibiting the imputed righteousness of Christ, as the only robe or garment of salvation, are personified as disciples depending upon no merits but those of their Saviour. Principles of this character and tendency are said to walk with the speaker; that is, they are to be manifested, in accordance with him; for, as it is implied, Amos ii. 3, Two cannot walk together except they be agreed. They shall walk, too, with him in white. Their character and tendency being in conformity with the truth, they shall wear its livery; they shall be manifested as belonging to the system of salvation, by imputed righteous- ness ;—this imputed righteousness being that which is pre-eminently distinguished for its whiteness. ‘For they are worthy.’—This it is evident could not be said literally of any disciple ; there is not one that is worthy of the least of the mercies of God, Still less can there be a human being worthy, in himself, of walking in a splen- did array by the side of him who is the first and the last—the Almighty ; but a true principle, or true element of doctrine, is worthy of the system of truth to which it belongs. These principles are worthy, because they are com- patible with the leading, predominating truth ; and they are thus compatible INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ΧΟΙ because, in the garments of salvation proffered by them, there is no amalgamation of human merit with divine. ‘He that overcometh shall be clothed,’ &c.—Here the overcoming, and those not having defiled their garments, appear to have the same promise ; one to walk with Jesus in white, the other to be clothed, or wrapped about in white ;—the word translated garment in the first instance, and ratment in the last, being the same in the original. The intimation seems to be that the doctrinal principles containing, or inculcating, nothing inconsistent with the truth of salvation by Christ’s righteousness alone, shall overcome ; and thus overcoming, they shall be manifested to belong to this great system of truth ; clothed or wrapped about with his imputed righteousness—a robe white as the light. § 87. ‘And I will not blot out his name out of the book of life.’—Not, we may presume, that the name of a disciple, once in the book of life, as an object of divine favour, elect, according to the fore-knowledge of God, (1 Pet. i. 2,) can be afterwards blotted out. Paul speaks of those “whose names are in the book of life,” Phil. iv. 3, apparently as having evi- dence of their true discipleship, and ultimate salvation ; but Paul’s language is not like that of the Apocalypse, professedly the language of vision. He may be speaking of disciples, while the Spirit, in this revelation, employs the same figure in speaking of principles. 'The Apocalyptic book of life we suppose to be the divine plan of redemption, with all the elements of truth belonging to it. Certain doctrinal principles have the name, or reputation, in human estimation, of belonging to this book or plan. Like the angel addressed, they have the name of living; eventually, however, they will be manifested as not belonging to this plan, which manifestation is spoken of as .an erasure of their names. So, although the angel, or system, is generally so perverted as to be in a manner dead, yet it is not so dead as to be past recovery, otherwise, the admonition would be useless. It has some true principles, “ things which remain,” &c.—unperverted truths, really belonging to God’s plan or book of life—elements of truth destined to be the means of resuscitating the whole system. The manifestation of the correctness of these uncontaminated principles, and the means of strengthening the others, we may suppose to be part of the design of the subsequent revelation, although not expressly so stated. ‘But I will confess his name before my Father, and before his angels.’ —Corresponding with this is the declaration of Jesus, recorded Luke xii. 8, 9, « Also I say unto you, whosoever shall confess me before men, him shall the Son of Man also confess before the angels of God. But he that denieth me before men, shall be denied before the angels.” Whatever construction we may put upon these words, the same distinction is to be observed heie as just now noticed. ‘The language in Luke is not, like that ΧΟΙΪ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. of the Apocalypse, professedly the language of vision. In this revelation accordingly, principles personified are spoken of in the same terms as those employed in reference to disciples in the gospels: this confession on the part of the divine speaker being a figurative term for ultimate manifestation ; as if we should say, When the truths of salvation are fully and perfectly developed, then will be manifest what principles belong to God’s plan or economy of grace, as well as what disciples are the peculiar subjects of his favour ;—this final exhibition constituting a virtual, not an oral confession of the fact. Epistle to the Angel of the Church in Philadelphia. V.7. And to the anvel of the church Καὶ τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Φιλαδελφείᾳ ἐκ- in Philadelphia write: These things saith he that is holy. he that is true, he that hath the key of David, he that openeth, yg nts ἃ » : ἀμ ee and no man shutteth; and shutteth, and "αὶ οὐδεὶς κλείει, καὶ “deter καὶ οὐδεὶς ἀνοί- no man openeth. γει" Π if 7 Γ᾿ chan “Er: ) πλησίας γράψον tude λέγει ὃ ἅγιος, ὃ ἀλη- , εν» ‘ ~ ina = rae , ϑινὸς, ὃ ἔχων τὴν κλεῖν τοῦ ΖΙαυΐδ, ὁ ἀνοίγων ᾧ 88. ‘ He that is Πο]γ᾽----ὖ aytos—The set apart, as the Greek term strictly signifies. An appellation of office, or position, rather than of quality. The Greek word ὅσιος, also rendered holy in our common version, seems to be expressive of quality only ; as, Rev. xv. 4, where God is spoken of as the only holy being. The word ἅγιος, on the contrary, with its derivatives, is applied to a great variety of objects—as in the appellation saints, or holy ones, given to those who are in themselves sinners, and who are only clean, or holy, or saints, as being se¢ apart in Christ. So the verb ἁγιάζω, rendered sometimes sanctify, and sometimes hallow, is applied (Matt. xxiii. 19) to the gift, or offering, upon the altar, sanctified or made holy by its position, and not by any change in its nature. The noun ἁγιασμός, holiness, or sanctifi- cation, in like manner must express a character of positzon, not of intrinsic quality :—the sanctification of the disciple consisting in his being set apart by adoption in Christ ; when otherwise, out of Christ, he would be unholy. Jesus Christ was especially set apart to the work of redemption, in refer- ence to which we may suppose he here styles himself ὁ ἅγιος, the holy. He is the holy in quality also,as God manifest in Christ ; but this is not what is under contemplation in this place. In like manner, when the Holy Spirit or Holy Ghost is spoken of, τὸ πνεῦμα τὸ ἅγιος, we are not to suppose the existence or action of two spirits of God—one holy in quality, and the other not holy ; but the Holy Spirit seems to be the appellation of that peculiar agency of Almighty power, which is set apart to the work of redemption— that exercise of the power of God, by which all things are made to redound to his glory. The holiness of this Spirit is an appellation of office. The Spirit of God in the beginning moved upon the face of the waters, Gen. i. 2,—He divideth the sea by his power, and by his Spirit he hath garnished INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. £68 the heavens, (Job xxvi. 12, 13;) but these operations are not peculiarly those of the Holy Spirit. The Spirit of God hath made us, and the inspiration of the Almighty gives us understanding ; but the operation of divine power, causing all things to work together for our eternal redemption, is peculiarly to be contemplated as the spirit set apart—the Holy Spirit. So, when the speaker in this passage of the Apocalypse styles himself the Holy, we may suppose it to be equivalent to a declaration that he is the Holy Spirtt—the Comforter, ὁ παράκλητος, Whose coming is promised, John xiv. 26, and who is now about to discharge the function there ascribed to him: that of teaching the disciples of Christ, and bringing all things to their remembrance. Keeping this idea in view, we perceive a peculiar propriety and force in the declara- tion, “‘ These things saith the Holy ;’ the spirit set apart to testify of Christ, as declared, John xv. 96 ; the spirit of truth exhibited on the day of Pentecost, under the appearance of cloven tongues ; and speaking in the present revelation the two-fold language of a mystic vision—the two- edged sword from the mouth of divine wisdom, (Rev. i. 16.) ‘ He that is true..—As the appellation “ he that is holy,” seems to apply to the Holy Spirit, so He that is true, probably applies to the first person of the Trinity, manifested in the second, corresponding with what is said of the identity of the Father and Son, 1. John v. 20—‘“ And we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us an understanding, that we may know him ‘hat is true, and we are in him that is true ; (even) in his Son Jesus Christ. This is the true God, and eternal life.” § 89. ‘He that hath the key of David, &c.—The use of this key we have already alluded to, (ὃ 37,) in treating of the keys of Death and Hell, viz., that it is the instrument or means of unlocking or revealing certain mysteries. We suppose the key here mentioned, to be the same as that referred to by the prophet, (Is. xxii. 22,) speaking of Christ appar- ently under the figurative appellation of Eliakim, (the God of the resurrec- tion)— And the key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder : so he shall open and none shall shut, and he shall shut and none shall open.” A key is said to be sometimes a symbol of power and authority ; but here, if not elsewhere, it appears to represent the means of unlocking or devel- oping certain mysteries, or mystic predictions. As the key of knowledge, Luke xi. 52, we may presume to be what may be called a clue to the un- derstanding and proper interpretation of the Scriptures.—“ Wo unto you, lawyers, for ye have taken away the key of knowledge: ye enter not in yourselves, and them that were entering in ye hindered.” An intimation that those professing to discharge the function of expounding the Scriptures of the Old Testament, had been in possession of some peculiar key, of the use of which they had deprived those whom it was their duty to instruct : Xciv INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. no doubt judging that the proper use of such means of interpretation, would militate with their substitution of the traditions of men for the command- ments of God. The key of David, we suppose, accordingly, to be a key to the hidden spiritual meaning of the writings of the royal psalmist. As we have sup- posed the keys of the kingdom of Heaven (Matt. xvi. 19) to be the appella- tion of certain means of unlocking or developing the mysteries of the king- dom, so also, we may consider Eliakim’s key of the house of David, to be the steward’s key of all that is in the house, or the key of the house- holder, alluded to, Matt. xiii. 52. As the apostles, with the keys of the king- dom of heaven, were stewards of the mysteries of God, (1 Cor. iv. 1,) so Christ is the chief steward of his father’s house; but he is especially said to have the key of David, because in him the prophetic meaning of the psalms of David is revealed, or opened. As in the application which he himself makes of the remarkable passage, setting forth the divinity of the Messiah—‘ The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand till I make thine enemies thy footstool.” The book of Psalms has, throughout, a prophetic allusion to the myste- ries of salvation, the power of the law, the helplessness of the sinner, and the infallibility of the gracious remedy provided. In addition to which, Chnist may be said to have the key of David, as the king of Israel was himself, in certain important particulars, the type of him that was to come: the his- tory of the spiritual King of Israel, thus serving as a key for unlocking the mysteries represented in the history of the literal king. ᾧ 90. ‘He that shutteth, (locketh,) and no man openeth, or unlocketh,’ &c.; that is, it is in Christ, and in him only, that the mysteries of David are developed. No other possesses the Key, for there is no other key than himself; and what he has seen fit to develope, no human power can con- ceal. At the same time, we are not to expect that this development has already taken place to its full extent. As Jesus said to his disciples while he was with them, (John xvi. 12,) “1 have many things to say, but ye can- not bear them now.’ So the mysterious, the wonderful truths of God’s economy of redemption, have been and still continue to be developed to men, only as they are able to hear it, (Mark iv. 33.) In this verse the speaker appears to reveal himself in his trawne charac- ter, as the true God, and as Him of whom David in the psalms, and the prophets have spoken ; in which respect the angel of this church may be said to be particularly favoured ;—a peculiarity which may have some connection with what appears to be the comparatively unexceptionable character of this system. The name of the city, signifying brotherly love, may also be intended to indicate some of the good features of the system: as it is said, 1 John i. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ΧΟΥ 14,—“ We know that we have passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren ;” and same Epistle, ii. 10, “ He that loveth his brother abideth in the light, and there is none occasion of stumbling in him.” His conduct or character affords no occasion for taking offence at his profession, καὶ σκάνδαλον ἐν αὐτῷ οὐκ ἔστιν. » V. 8. [know thy works: behold,[have οἷδά σου τὰ ἔργα: ἰδού, δέδωκα ἐνώπιόν set before thee an open door, and no man goy ϑύραν ἀνεῳγμένην, ἣν οὐδεὶς δύναται can shut it: for thou hast a little strength, xlstous AY bet uni Gale Bae and hast kept my word, and hast not de- meray ie ἐδ κε ihadiaiens thats nied my name. καὶ ἐτήρησὰς μου τὸν λόγον καὶ οὐκ ρνγήσω τὸ ογομὰ μου. ‘I have set before thee an opened door’—a door which has been locked, but is now unlocked—in allusion to the use of a key, as mentioned in remark- ing upon the previous verse; the door being put for a certain revelation, or means of revelation, by which the views of the angel may be further enlight- ened, or confirmed. As if we were to suppose the psalms of David to have been locked,—their meaning not being understood previously to the coming of Christ,—but subsequently unlocked, by the revelation made of him in the New Testament. ‘This development of their true meaning, by the coming of Christ, showing the allusions they contain to his doctrines, his sufferings, and his works, is, virtually, an opened door—a means of access to the mysteries of Christian faith ; as the preaching of Paul and Barnabas is said, Acts xiv. 27, to have been an opening of the door of faith to the Gentiles—the door repre- senting not the truth itself, but the medium through which the knowledge of the truth is to be obtained. ‘And no one can lock it.—The coming of Christ with its attendant revelation having once furnished the means of developing the meaning of the psalms, or of the prophets, no one can prevent this development. Pre- vious to this, the key of knowledge might be taken away, and access to the truth might have been prevented ; but now the door is opened, and it is for those that desire it to make use of the privilege afforded them. ‘For thou hast a little strength, and hast kept my word, and hast not denied my name.’—On the principle laid down, Matt. xiii. 12, “ Whosoever hath, to him shall be given, and he shall have more abundance.” This angel has a little strength, therefore the means of acquiring more is given him. “The kingdom of heaven is like unto leaven, which a woman took and hid in three measures of meal, till the whole was leavened,” (Matt. xiii. 33.) 80, where there is a certain degree of knowledge of the truths of salvation, more will be added ; provided the revealed word be adhered to, as a rule of faith, and the name of Jesus as a banner ;—the denial of his name being equivalent to the admission (into a system) of principles tending to deprive him of the glory and honour resulting from the work of redemption. With respect to this keeping of the word, and regard to the name of the Saviour; a little leaven of xcvi INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. truth, we may say, will leaven the whole lump. The accumulation of knowledge, from strength to strength, will be all on the side of truth; but without this qualification, where the revealed word of God is not the stand- ard by which every principle is tested ; and where the name of Jesus, as the only name, or power, whereby we can be saved, is Jost sight of, or virtually denied the glory due to it; there, a little leaven of error, or of self-right- eousness will also leaven the whole lump, until the whole system of faith is entirely perverted. We may further add, that it is only to those who are sufficiently enlight- ened, established, and settled, that it is safe to commit further light ; as it is said, Luke xvi. 11 and 12, “If ye be unfaithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to you the true riches ;” and if ye have not been faithful in that which is another man’s, who will give you that which is your own? If when you believe yourselves about to be called to account, as depending upon your own merits, you are careless and unfaithful; how can you be trusted with the knowledge that your dependence is upon the merits of a Saviour, freely given you? If you are reckless under all the terrors of the law, how can you be trusted with the knowledge of your position by grace ? V. 9. Behold, I will make them of the “Sov, δίδωμι ἐκ τῆς συναγωγῆς τοῦ σατ- synagogue of Satan, which say they are γᾷ τῶν λεγόντων ἑαυτοὺς Ιουδαίους εἶναι, Jews, and are not, but do lie; behold, I κ 2 > # 2 1 , 3 , ἢ : χαὶ οὐκ εἰσίν, ἀλλὰ ψεύδονται" ἰδού will make them to come and worship be- 4 ¥ Sov, mor ΄ > ΄ ε 7] Ἢ , fore thy feet, and to know that 1 have %% αὐτούς, ἵνα ἥξωσι καὶ προςκυνήσωσιν loved thee. ἐνώπιον τῶν ποδῶν σου καὶ γνῶσιν, ὅτι ἐγὼ TY ENTE σε. § 92. Here we are surprised by the declaration that certain persons (bearing the name of a people expressly forbidden to worship any other being than God) shall be made, even by him who has given them this injunction, to prostrate themselves at the feet of the angel of a Church, and this in the same vision in which the apostle is charged by an angel of God to worship only the Most High, and in a vision in which the sin of idolatry is particularly, and repeatedly, held forth as one of the most reprehensible character. We cannot. get over this difficulty otherwise than by supposing, as we have done, the angel of a church to represent a system of doctrines, or the spirit, or tendency, of such a system. As we might say in the present instance, that a doctrinal system, the spirit or tendency of which is that of brotherly love, (Philadelphia,) is peculiarly an object of divine favour, to which erroneous principles or elements of doctrine of an opposite character must be made to succumb. We have already described the principles supposed to be represented by these members of the synagogue of Satan, falsely professing themselves to be of the circumcision; and have already shown what is to be under- INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xcvil stood by a Jew, in the spiritual sense, (δῷ 51-53.) We suppose these Satanic elements of doctrine to be particularly opposed to the system figured by this angel, because Satan himself is expressly denominated (Rev. xii. 10) the accuser of the brethren ; which is certainly a character opposite to that of a system peculiarly designated as one of brotherly love. The contrast, at the same time, reminds us that this brotherly love is something more than a mere kind regard, or attention to the temporal welfare of others. As the accuser of the brethren aims at the legal condemnation of the brethren at the bar of divine justice, so the opposite system of brotherly love aims at the justification, or propitiation, of the brethren at the same bar; a manifestation of the subjection of the elements of the Satanic synagogue to the system, or angel of the Philadelphian church, being equivalent to an exhibition of the ascendency of the principle of propitiation, over every element of accusation. These self-styled Jews, who are not Jews inwardly or really, representing doctrines in effect auxiliary to the spirit of accusation. ‘And to know that I have loved thee.—That is, I have loved thee,. not them; God’s purpose of mercy being that in which he delights ; and a propitiatory system, reconciling his justice with his mercy, being that which he loves. The exhibition of this preference thus coinciding with what is figuratively spoken of as the coerced prostration of members of the synagogue of Satan at the feet of the angel. Vs. 10, 11. Because thou hast kept the “Oru ἐτήρησας τὸν λόγον τῆς ὑπομονῆς word of my patience, I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come upon all the world, to try them that dwell upon the earth. Behold, I come quickly: hold that fast which thou hast, that no man take thy crown. μου, καἀγώ σε τηρήσω ἐκ τῆς ὥρας τοῦ πει- ρασμοῦ τῆς μελλούσης ἔρχεσϑαι ἐπὶ τῆς οἰκουμένης ὅλης, πειράσαι τοὺς κατοικοῦν- τας ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς, Ἔρχομαι ταχύ: κράτει ὃ ἔχεις, ἵνα μηδεὶς λάβη τὸν στέφανόν σου. ᾧ 93. ‘Because thou hast kept, &c., I also will keep thee.’-—Here we have another specimen of that play upon words before noticed, ($ 35.) The keeping of the word by the angel, in one sense, leading the speaker to advert to the keeping of the angel in another sense. This system was said to have a little strength ; nevertheless, it is an object of favour with Him of whom it was said, Is. xl. 11, “He shall carry the lambs in his bosom, and gently lead those that are with young;” a text affording encouragement to those who are yet weak in faith, having made but small advances in their doctrinal views. ‘They are not on this account to be cast off, but, on the contrary, are cherished and nourished with the greater care. ‘The word of my patience.—This must be the same word as that for the keeping, of which the angel was before praised, (v. 8,) “and hast kept my word,’ which we have supposed to signify an adherence to the revealed word as a standard of faith. The term, translated patience, 8 xeviii APOCALYPTIC INTRODUCTION. implies an endurance of suffering, and the Greek term λόγος may also be rendered doctrine. The word or doctrine of Christ’s endurance of suffering, may thus express all that relates to his suffermg for the sins of others. Speaking of a system of faith, therefore, to keep the word of Christ’s endurance of suffering is equivalent to an adherence to what is commonly called the doctrine of the atonement—the word of vicarious propitiation. The advance made by this angel in matters of faith was small: but it held to the revealed word as a standard, and especially to the portion of it setting forth the sufferings of the Redeemer as an atonement for the sins of the disciple. On this account the angel or the system of faith will be kept, or preserved in the season of trial in con- templation. This, perhaps, must be virtually the case. As with the disciple, whose views of the plan of salvation are imperfect, he is yet far from knowing the length, and the breadth, and the depth, of the love of Christ ; but he is steadfast in his belief that the sufferings and death. of Christ are the efficient means of his salvation. On this doctrine he relies, and with this reliance he is supported, when tried by a contemplation of the terrors of the law, and of an approaching judgment. So a system of faith, deficient in many respects, may be said to be preserved by the soundness of its views in this particular. § 94. ‘The hour of temptation,’ or more properly, the hour of trea, which is to come on all the world, to try the dwellers upon the earth. Literally, the hour of death is such a season of trial; it comes proverbially upon every one, and the faith and hopes of every human being are tried by it, either in anticipation, or at the moment of its arrival. We suppose, how- ever, the trial in view here, to be one of doctrinal systems and principles ; as we suppose the earth to be a figurative expression for some general basis of such systems. The world, an order of things, in a spiritual sense, cor- responding with this basis, and the dwellers upon the earth, (elsewhere styled the kindreds or tribes of the earth, and the inhabitants of the earth,) principles and doctrinal elements peculiar to such an order of things, or such an arrangement or economy. There are three different Greek words rendered world in our common version, αἰών, κόσμος, and οἰχουμενή; the two last appear to be in some cases interchangeable terms: as, by comparing Matt. iv. 8 with Luke iy. 5, and Matt. xxiv. 14 with Mark xiv. 9, we find the χόσμος of one evan- gelist to be the οἰχκουμενή of another. The term οἰκουμενή is not met with in any of the other writings of John, and it is used but in two other places of the Apocalypse, viz., Rev. xi. 9, where the old serpent is said to deceive the whole world; and xvi. 14, where the unclean spirits, like frogs, go forth unto the kings of the earth, and of the whole world, to gather them to battle. In reference to a matter INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. xcix of taxation, (Luke ii. 1,) and to a certain dearth, which came to pass in the days of Claudius Cesar, (Acts xi. 28,) and in the oration of Tertullus, Acts xxiv. 5, the signification of the term appears to be confined to the Roman empire. In Acts xix. 27, it is applied to the heathen world gener- ally, as worshippers of the great goddess Diana ; while, on the other hand, Rom. x. 18, it is applied to the people of Israel, wherever they may have been in the times of the prophets ; but in Acts xvil. 31, it has evidently a universal signification, “‘ Because he hath appointed a day in which he will judge the world in righteousness.” So Heb. i. 6, “‘ When he bringeth his first begotten into the world, he saith, And let all the angels of God worship him ;” and ii. 5, For unto the angels hath he not put into subjection the world to come ; this last being apparently an opposite of the world, or order of things, that now is; as the Jerusalem from above, Gal. iv. 25, is an opposite of the Jerusalem in bondage under the Roman power. The term κόσμος occurs but three times in the Apocalypse—twice where the foundations of the world are spoken of in reference to a certain epoch, Rey. xiii. 8 and xvii. 8; in which the use of the word corresponds with that of οἰκουμενή, Heb. i. 6 ; and once Rev. xi. 15, where the kingdoms of the world are said to become the kingdoms of our Lord. The term αἰών is employed in this book of Revelation only in the plural, expressive of eternal duration ; and probably where it is elsewhere used, it is rather appli- cable to the period of an order of things, than to the order of things itself: as, τὰ τέλη τῶν αἰώνων. ‘“'The ends of the world,” 1 Cor. x. 11, is supposed to express the point of time when the old dispensation ends, and the new dis- pensation commences, (Rob. Lex. 17,) or, perhaps, simply the point where the legal and gospel economies meet each other. ᾧ 95. The expression, all the world, amongst the Greeks, may have / commonly signified, every body, every one; corresponding with the use of the words tout le monde amongst the French at the present day. But as a figure, we may suppose the Roman empire to be an opposite of the kingdom of Judea, and the term world, in allusion to this figure, to be put for an order of things the opposite of that economy of grace, supposed to be repre- sented by the spiritual Jerusalem ; and a perverted view of which may be symbolized by Jerusalem, or Judea, in her state of subjection to the Roman power. The trial, accordingly, which is to come upon “ all the world,” in this apocalyptic sense, is a trial of the principles, doctrines, and elements of doctrine, belonging to this worldly economy, or arrangement, (of legal and self-righteous principles,) represented by the Roman world or empire ;— an order of things, or principles, involving the supposition of man’s depend- ence upon his own merits, of his continuance under the law, and of his ability to fulfil the law for himself; while the trial, or test to be administered, with its results, corresponds with the apostolic predictions, 1 Cor. iii. 13-15, and of 2 Peter iu. 10. eon’ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. We may notice in addition, that by the tenor of the verse under con- sideration, the dwellers upon the earth, and all the world, are nearly equiva- lent terms; and, as we shall find hereafter, these dwellers, or inhabiters of the earth, are the peculiar subjects of the woes and plagues, denounced and depicted in the subsequent portion of this revelation. ‘ Behold, I come quickly,’ or suddenly —This coming, and the hour of trial adverted to, we suppose to be in effect the same thing—an exhibition of Christ in his true character, operating the trial of all human pretensions to merit, trying them as silver is tried; that is, by a certain test resulting in the exposure of all false means of salvation. ‘Hold fast that which thou hast.’—Continue, in contending for the truth, to wield those elements of faith, for which thou art distinguished ; to wit, an adherence to the name of Christ, to the doctrine of his sufferimg, and to his revealed word, as a standard of belief, ($ 91.) ‘Let no one take thy crown.’—That is, the crown allotted thee ; the crown, not of thine own righteousness, but that of the righteousness of Christ, such as is declared to be laid up for all who love his appearing, (2 Tim. iv. 8.) This crown (στέφανος) bemg of the kind granted to vic- tors at the games, as distinguished from the diadem or symbol of sovereignty, (Ὁ 55.) To the angel of the church in Smyrna, it was said, Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee the crown of life—Here, the angel is sup- posed apparently to be tm possession of the same crown—perhaps virtually so, in the peculiar attainments of faith poited out. The crown, as we sup- pose, not being the reward itself, but the evidence of the claim to reward : as in the case of a condemned criminal to whom a pardon has been pro- mised, on condition of his success in a certain gladiatorial combat—he comes off victorious—the judges allot to him the crown, or garland, as the token of his success ;—this token is to him the crown of life, with which he appeals to his sovereign for the promised remission of his punishment. So we may suppose the angel (system) of this church, in the contest of faith, to obtain a knowledge of, and a firm belief in, the atonement of his Saviour. This is his crown of life, which he is exhorted not to part with, and to which he is to appeal, in the great day of account, for the blotting out of all his trans- gressions, or as respects a system of faith something analogous to this. Vs. 12, 13. Him that overcometh, will I make a pillar in the temple of my God, and he shall.go no more out: and I will write upon him the name of my God, and the name of the city of my God, (which is) new Jerusalem, which cometh down out of heaven from my God: and (I will write upon him) my new name. He that hath an ear, &c. c ~ , | ᾿ς > ~ ~ O νικῶν, ποιήσω αὐτὸν στύλον ἔν TH ναῷ ~ ~ σι > ' τοῦ ϑεοῦ μου, καὶ ἔξω ov μὴ ἐξέλϑη ἔτι" ’ > > ‘ 1 ” ~ ~ χαὺὶ γράψω ἐπ᾿ αὐτὸν TO OYOMa TOU ϑεοῦ 1 ~ , ~ ~ μου καὶ TO ὕνομα τῆς πόλεως τοῦ ϑεοῦ μου, - c , c τῆς καινῆς Ιερουσαλημ, ἡ καταβαίνουσα ἐκ ~ 2 noe ee ~ ~ τοῦ οὐρανοῦ ἀπὸ τοῦ ϑεοῦ pov, καὶ τὸ 3: ΄ ι ΄ c 2», 5 ὁγομά μου τὸ χαιγὸ»ν. Ο ἔχων ove, κιτ.}. ᾧ 96. ‘ Him that,’ &c.—The words in brackets are supplied in our com- mon version rather officiously and unnecessarily,—the reading being better INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. οἱ without them. ‘The overcoming I will make a pillar in the temple of my God, and out he or it shall no more go, and I will write upon it, (that is, upon the pillar,) the name of my God, and the name of the city of my God,—of the new Jerusalem,—the coming down out of heaven from my God, and my new name.’ The overcoming principle of faith, as we have supposed it to be, is represented as something of which a pillar may be made, in a temple—not a worshipper in the temple, but one of the columns, or supports of the edi- fice—something which, being once fixed in its place, is ta be no more removed ;—something, also, upon which the name or names of what is most important in the character of the edifice are fixed; the edifice itself, being one appropriated peculiarly to the offering of sacrifices. It is said of James, Peter and John, (Gal. ii. 9,) that they seemed to be pullars—that is, they seemed to be authorities ;—their opinions were taken as good authority. As in civil matters, we speak of the opinions or deci- sions of those high in office ;—so we say of a sound doctrine, in spiritual matters, that it is a pillar, or unquestionable authority. Accordingly the word στύλος, rendered pillar, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) is supposed to signify a most important doctrine, (Rob. Lex. 709 ;) although, in this passage, the term is evidently used in apposition to that rendered church, (ἐκκλησία,) which is also put in apposition to the house of God, elsewhere, said to express “ the whole body of the worshippers of God,’ Rob. Lex. 496. But we can hardly suppose this body of worshippers to be spoken of as the support and basis of the truth. We are more inclined to believe, even in this passage of the Epistle to Timothy, that the house, or temple, of God, the church of the living God, and the pillar and ground of the truth, are but different ex- pressions of the same doctrine, or system of doctrine ;—the house of God being put, not for the worshippers, but for that in which they worship ; and the term church, not for the human beings collected together, but for that which constitutes them a “ Church of the living God.” That is the doc- trinal system, or arrangement of principles, corresponding with the new cov- enant denominated by Paul, (Gal. iv. 26,) “ the mother of us all.” As we sometimes speak of the platform of a church ; with this difference, however, that “the church of the living God” is God’s platform of doctrine, and not man’s. So the Apostle, immediately after having used the terms, “the house of God,” “ the church of the living God,” and “ the pillar and ground of the truth,” as equivalents, appears to apply to that which it signified by these three terms, the further appellation of “the mystery of godliness ”’— τὸ τῆς εὐσεβείας protjgiov—the mystery of right veneration—a mystery, showing the way in which only God can be truly worshipped ; something involving, as it appears, the whole doctrine of Christ, as “God manifest Cli INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. in the flesh, justified in the spirit, seen of angels, preached unto the gentiles, believed on in the world, received up into glory.” This mystery we may suppose to be the pillar and ground of the truth —the authoritative doctrine ; and such we may also suppose the overcoming principle to be made ; and we may say, in Revelation, ‘ He that overcometh shall be made the pillar,” with as much propriety as it is said in ‘Timothy that the Church is the pillar ; there being, according to the original, no arti- cle, either definite or indefinite, in either of these passages. ᾧ 97. There are two Greek words, στήλη and στύλος, rendered in our common version by the term pillar. The first is said to be Doric,* and is found only in the Septuagint, where it seems to be applied to columns, or pulars, as memorials, statues, or images ; while the other is applied to pil- lars as supports, or in an ordinary sense. As στήλη is not to be found at all in the New Testament, it seems probable that, in the time of the apostles, the term στύλος was used indiscriminately for both these objects, as we use the term pillar. Admitting this to be the case, the pillar in the house of God, instead of signifying a stay, or support, or foundation, may represent, in the Apocalypse, an instrument of commemoration—something bearing testimony, or witness, or a memorial ; the pillar in the house of God cor- responding, perhaps, with the ark of the testimony in the literal temple. Jacob took the stone, upon which his head had rested in the wilderness, and set it up for a pillar; not only as a witness to what might be called his covenant ; but he even adds, “" And this stone, which I have set up for a pillar, shall be God’s house ;” or, as it is in the Septuagint, ‘* shall be to me the house of God,” ἔσται μοι οἶκος Θεοῦ, (Gen. xxviii. 22.) The people of Israel were forbidden to raise up a pillar, (στήλη;) appa- rently, as an object of trust, a representation of Deity, (Lev. xxvi. 1.)— Absalom reared up a pillar and called it by his own name, 2 Sam. xvii. 18, to perpetuate the remembrance of himself. Solomon erected two pillars of brass in the temple at Jerusalem, to which he gave names—not to sustain the edifice, but apparently to bear testimony to some peculiar attribute of the temple, 1 Kings vu. 15. So we may suppose ὁ γικῶν, the overcoming, to be made an everlasting, unceasing memorial of that to which it bears testimony ; of which we may judge better by considering the names to be inscribed upon this pillar, or column. ‘In the temple of my God.’—We suppose “the temple of my God,” * Στήλη, Dor. lapis e terra exstans, qui vel munitionis gratia, vel in signum erec- tus. Plerumque accipitur pro cippo, seu columna, que in sepulchris statuebatur, aut in qua federa inscribebatur, aut alia que posteritati mandare cuperent.—(Suiceri Lex.) INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. cil in Revelations, and the house or church of the living God, in Timothy, to be so termed in contradistinction to the temples, or houses of all other objects of worship, and as applying to a spiritual temple, in contradistinction to the temple, or house, made with hands, at Jerusalem ; which, even in Solomon’s time, was but a type of that arrangement of truth by which, and in which, those that worship the Father, are enabled to worship in spirit and in truth, (John iv. 23,) or in a truly spiritual sense. ᾧ 98. The worship of God is the service of God, and nothing can be done, strictly speaking, in his service, unless the motive of action be to serve him, ($¢ 61, 76.) If a man’s motive in performing an act of devo- tion, as it is commonly called, be to promote his own eternal well-being, he is, in this performance, only serving, or worshipping, himself: his own glory, his own happiness, are the ends which he has in view ; and to his own merit he proposes to ascribe the successful result of his efforts. There’ may be different modes of exhibiting this service of self; from the long prayers, severe fastings, punctilious observance of days, and rites, and ordi- nances of the pharisaical devotee of every land, down to the self-immolation of the most unenlightened superstition ; but in all, the character of the error is the same. A peculiarity of the gospel plan of salvation, on the other hand, is, that it not only secures the eternal happiness of the believer, while it gives the glory and praise of that happiness to God, but it likewise places the disciple in such a position of faith, that the performance of all his duties necessarily emanates from the pure motive alone, of serving his God—the God of his ‘salvation. Believing himself placed, entirely by an act of sove- reign grace, in such a position in Christ as to be dependent solely upon his Redeemer’s merits for all that he needs in this life or in the life to come, he feels himself to have no motive of action left, but that of grateful love —a pure, unmixed desire to serve, and please, and glorify his divine bene- factor—the only motive by which the blessed in heaven can be actuated throughout eternity. In this position in Christ, the disciple is set apart— sanctified—by being, in a spiritual sense, in the temple, or house of God, as contradistinguished from all other positions or temples. Here, in Christ, all that he does is made an act of worship, not by his doing it, but by the posi- tion in which it is done. Christ is pre-eminently the temple—the disciple in Christ, is in the temple; and identified, or accounted, one with Christ, is also himself the temple—corresponding with the saying of the apostle, (1 Cor. iii. 17,) “The temple of God is holy, which temple ye are.” The patriarch, as we have noticed, according to the Septuagint, said, of the stone upon which he had rested, and resting upon which he had enjoyed his beatific vision, and which he set up as a memorial—* It shall be to me the house of God ;” so Christ, the stone upon which the disciple rests, and which affords him the vision of heavenly communion, is to him the house, civ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. or temple of God. ‘To this stone he looks, as the Israelites of old looked to the temple in offering their petitions to the throne of grace, (2 Chron. vi. 21.) What the stone column is in the temple, the position of the believer in Christ is to the heavenly arrangement by which he is sanctified, or set apart ; and as the patriarch, in all his wanderings, called to mind the memo- rial which he had set up in Bethel, (Gen. xxxi. 18,) the disciple, in every trial of his faith, looks to his position in Christ, as affording the assurance that he will conquer, and more than conquer, through him in whom he is able to do all things. So we may say, ὁ νικῶν, the conquering, or over- coming principle, is manifested to be the column in the spiritual temple of God: a column, in effect, identic with the temple ; the promise corres- ponding with that of the giving of the white stone, (δῷ 66, 67,) and of the gift of the morning star, (ᾧ 83.) § 99. ‘ And he shall go no more out.’—As the disciple, once in Christ, never afterwards loses this position. The two brazen pillars in Solomon’s temple, Jachin and Booz, were broken in pieces and taken to Babylon at the time of the captivity. Whatever they represented, it must have been some- thing of a transitory character—something like the elements of the legal dis- pensation—to continue only for atime. But here is a pillar never to be moved. As the glory of this latter house, (Christ,) is to exceed the glory of the former, so the permanency of this position in Christ, or of this principle of identity with him, once manifested, is to continue, not merely for a time, but for eternity. ‘ And [ will write upon him the name of my God, and the name of the city of my God—of the new Jerusalem—the coming down out of heaven from my God, and my new name.’—Here we are reminded of the new name to be written in, or upon, the white stone, Rev. ii. 17. Our remarks upon that stone applying, perhaps, even more directly here, ($$ 66, 67.) Different reasons may be assigned for giving names to certain objects, such as showing proprietorship, or selection ; but in placing an inscription upon a pillar, or column, in a public edifice, the usual design is that of making the pillar an instrument of magnifying and giving distinction to that which is put upon it. As edicts and Jaws were made public in ancient times by affixing them toa column in some public place of resort; and as Absalom erected a pillar, and gave his own name to it, to perpetuate, as he vainly supposed, his own glory ; so the distinction given to this pillar in the temple of God is that of constituting it an instrument of proclaim- ing the glory of God: as it was said to the favoured people of God, Ezek. XXXvi. 22 and 23, “Thus saith the Lord God: I do not this for your sakes, O house of Israel, but for mine own holy name’s sake, which ye have pro- faned amongst the heathen whither ye went, and I will sanctify my great name.” INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ev On a first reading, we are inclined to suppose three several names to be alluded to here ; but the whole tenor of Scripture teaches us that all glory, honour, and power, are to be ascribed to one name alone ; and that whatever variety there may be in the instruments, by which this great name is held up for our contemplation, the employment of all of them must result in magnifying the one name of the sovereign God, Zech. xiv. 9. The name of my God, the name of the city of my God, and my new name,—must be in effect, therefore, one and the same name. The Supreme Being is called, and calls himself in Scripture, by different names ; the holy city has also different names ; and to the speaker in this revelation, Jesus Christ, several appellations are given, and this even in the same passage, (Is. ix. 6.) If, however, we can find a name applied, or predicted to be applied, in the sacred writings, to all three of these distinguished objects, we may suppose this to be the new name to be inscribed upon the pillar. § 100. The essential and peculiar name of the Supreme Being is Jehovah ; it is rendered in a multitude of places in our common version by the term Lorp, in capitals ; and in the Septuagint, by Κύριος : (vid. Concord. Trom. Tom. I. 944, nin: Jehova, nomen Det proprium ; the number of places in which it occurs being so many, that only a few examples are there given: ex infinitis feré locis aliquot hic speciminis ergd enotantur.) This name was held in so great reverence by the ancient Hebrews, as to have acquired for it the appellation of the ineffable, or unspeakable ; and probably it was not at all expressed by the Jewish translators of the Septuagint, from an appre- hension of literally profaning this sacred name amongst the heathen. The compilers of our common version appear to have been governed by the same apprehension, although they have ventured occasionally to introduce it,—as Ps. Ixxxii. 18, “That men may know that thou whose name alone is Jenovan, art the Most High for evermore.” Many other passages, how- ever, where the title Lorp is used in capitals, would strike us much more forcibly, if this proper name were read, as it might be, with the greatest pro- priety, instead of that substituted for it—as, Is. xli. 8, “I am Jenovan, that is my name ;” and Ps. xv. 5, “ Jenovan is the portion of mine in- heritance and of my cup ;” and Ps. Ixxi. 16, “I will go in the strength of the Lord Jenovan; I will make mention of thy righteousness, even of thine only.” The places in which this combination of the title with the proper name occurs in the Old Testament, rendered in the Septuagint by Κύριος κύριος, (Latin, dominus dominus—English, Lord God,) are so many, that of these only the chapter and verse are cited in the Concordance of 'Trom- mius. We can have no hesitation, therefore, in considering this name as particularly the revealed name of the Deity; that which he has chosen especially to apply to himself, with reference to the whole purport of Reve- lation. ΟΥ̓] INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. Let us now compare with this the words of the same sovereign Being, Jeremiah xxiii. 5, 6, “‘ Behold, the days come, saith the Lorp, that I will raise unto David a righteous Branch, and a King shall reign and _ prosper, and shall execute judgment and justice in the earth. In his days Judah shall be saved, and Israel shall dwell safely : and this is his name whereby he shall be called, Tue Lorp ovr rIGHTEOUSNEss ;” or, more properly, JeHovan our righteousness. ‘There can be no question but that this is he of whom it is said, Zech. vi. 12, “ Behold the man whose name is the Brancu ; and he shall grow up out of his place, and he shall build the temple of the Lord ;’—that is, the temple such as we have supposed it to be, in a spiritual sense—that which affords a position for the true worship of God, and a virtual access to the throne of Grace. The Branch predicted to spring from the roots cf Jesse, (Is. xi. 1-10,) being the beautiful and glorious Branch, the bearimg of whose name alone is sufficient to take away every reproach, (Is. iv. 1, 2.) But it is so generally admitted that this “righteous Branch” is no other than Christ, that further quotation of text to establish this pomt appears unnecessary ; there can be no question, therefore, but that to Christ also belongs this appellation of Jehovah. We have now to compare with these a passage still more extraordinary, Jer. xxxiil. 15, 16, “In those days, and at that time, will I cause the Branch of righteousness to grow up unto David, and he shall execute judgment and righteousness in the land. In those days shall Judah be saved, and Jeru- salem shall dwell safely ; and this is the name wherewith she shall be called, ’ or, according to the Hebrew, as in the pre- ceding case, ‘ Jehovah our righteousness.” the Lorp our righteousness ;’ Here Judah and Jerusalem are used as nearly convertible terms ; the literal city, Jerusalem, being the capital of the literal kingdom of Judah,— one, the kingdom, comprehending the other,—and one, the capital, being located in, and giving its character to the other: the house of Judah being put for the kingdom of Judea. So, in a spiritual sense, Judea, Tovdaia, signifying the praise of the Lord, (Leusden, O. S.,) and Jerusalem the vision of peace. We may say that the praise of the Lord com- prehends the plan of his redeeming mercy, while that plan of mercy (vision of peace) gives its character to his praise; as his glory com- prehends his goodness, and his goodness gives its peculiar character to his glory. In reference to this apparently it is said, Is. Ix. 6,7, “Ye that make mention of the Lord keep not silence, and give him no rest, till he establish, and till he make Jerusalem a praise in the earth ;” that is, until he so make the plan of redemption known that its development shall result in his praise. ‘It is then of the plan, or economy, of redemp- tion, under the figure of Judah, or Jerusalem, that the prophet here speaks ; and to this vision of peace is to be given the august name, Jehovah our INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. eth righteousness, not the multitude of human beings commonly called the Church of Christ, but that which constitutes this multitude the Church of Christ, viz., the covenant, or testament of grace, spoken of, Gal. iv. 26, as the opposite of the covenant of works, and, figuratively, as the Jerusalem which is above, which is the mother of us all—the holy, or new Jerusalem, —the Lamb’s wife,—of the Apocalypse ;—the object seen by John to come down from heaven as a bride adorned for her husband, being that of which it is said, Is. liv. 5, “Thy Maker is thine husband, the Lord of hosts (Jehovah of hosts) is his name, and thy Redeemer the Holy One of Israel.” So, as the wife bears the name of her husband ; as the disciple is baptized into, and bears the name of his master; as the people of Judea were said to be called by the name of the Lord; as the seven women (seven churches) spoken of, Is. iv. 1, desire to be called by the name of one man (the Redeemer) to take away their reproach; the spiritual Church, or heavenly Jerusalem, is represented, also, as bearing the name of her Maker and Redeemer, her divine spouse, being with him also called JeHovaH our righteousness. Corresponding with this, a city frequently bears the name of its founder, not to honour the city, but that the founder, or builder, may be honoured by the city, as Ezek. xlvii. 35, “ And the name of the city from that day shall be Jenovan THERE.” Here, then, we have one name applicable to three several objects, corresponding with that to be inscribed on the pillar, in the spiritual temple : the name of my God, the name of the city of my God, and my new name. The overcoming principle, ὁ »xr, is to receive the name of Jehovah our righteousness, and this with peculiar propriety, as it is by virtue of this name, or of the element of truth involved in it, that the victory is gained, for the.acquisition of which, he that overcometh is thus distinguished. As it is said, Is. xlv. 22-25, “Look unto me, and be ye saved, all the ends of the earth: for I am God, and there is none else ;” “Surely, shall one say, In Jenovan have I righteousness and strength : “In Jenovan shall all the seed of Israel be justified, and shall glory.” ‘He that hath an ear, let him hear,’ &c. (ᾧ 46.) Epistle to the Angel of the Church of the Laodiceans. V. 14. And unto the angel of the church Καὶ τῷ ἀγγέλῳ τῆς ἐν Auodinsig ἐκκλη- ο Laodiceans (or of the church in if Ig enti iitens (rese things saith oe veayor As μαι bed 4 : mg ; the Amen, the faithful and true ‘Witness, the beginning of the creation of God. § 101. ‘The Amen.’—This appellation is said to signify the truth, ex- pressed, as it is here, in the substantive form, (Rob. Lex. 29.) Truth is a pe- culiar attribute of Jesus Christ, as well as of the Holy Spirit; He was full of ὃ πιστὸς καὶ ἀληϑινός, ἡ ἀρχὴ τῆς κτίσεως τοῦ ϑεοῦ. ΟΥ̓ INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. truth, John i. 14; He declared the truth, and he styles himself the truth, John xiv. 6; at the same time, he himself gives the name of the Spzrit of truth, to the promised Comforter, John, xvi. 13. As an adverb, the word expresses so let it be: an assent to the divine will, or an expression of that will, equivalent to a declaration of the purpose of God, somewhat corresponding to the introductory language of human edicts, “ Be it enacted.” ‘The faithful and true Witness.’—The faithful witness, identifying the speaker with the Antipas of Rev. ii. 18, as well as with Jesus Christ expressly, Rev. i. 5; and the true, identifying him also with the possessor of the key of David, Rev. i. 7; and, as we have already suggested, with the promised Comforter, the witness, or testifier of Jesus, spoken of, John xv. 26. ‘The beginning of the creation of God.’—The originator, the first cause, (Jones Lex. Art. ἡ ἀρχὴ, p. 287; Causa, origo, Suiceri Lex.) Not the first thing created, but the Creator himself, corresponding with the account given of the word, John i. 1-3. So ἡ ἀρχὴ καὶ τὸ τέλος, Rev. xxi. 6, cannot be the first thing and the last thing created, but the cause and design, or end in view, of that which is the subject of consideration : Christ being both the first and the final cause of the economy of redemption ; the sinner being brought into existence for the Redeemer, and not the Redeemer for the sinner: as “ The man was not created for the woman, but the woman for the man,” (1 Cor. xi. 9.) Vs. 15, 16. I know thy works, that thou Οἷδά σου τὰ ἔργα, ὅτι οὔτε ψυχρὸς εἰ art neither cold nor hot: I would thou οὔτε ξεστός. ὄφελον. ψυχρὲς ἧς ἢ ζεστός. wert cold or hot. So then, because thou ; g art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot, Οὕτως, ὅτι χλιαρὸς εἶ καὶ οὔτε ψυχρὸς ou I will spue thee out of my mouth. ζεστός, μελλω σε ἐμέσαι ἐκ τοῦ στύματός μου. § 102. ‘I know,’ &c.—This strong language is evidently to be applied to the spirit of a doctrinal system, personified as a disciple of that heartless cha- racter, which leaves it doubtful whether he is to be treated as a friend or as a foe. There is a profession of faith in Christ, and, therefore, no actual hostility ; at the same time there must be in the system an entire want of the elements of gratitude, essential to that love, or charity, without which we are nothing. ‘IT would that thou wert either cold or hot.’—Not that the coldness, or the enmity, is absolutely desirable, but that it is better to contend with an open and decided foe, than with an insidious adversary, wearing, perhaps, the mask of moderation, professed neutrality, or even friendship ; as we might say of one whose negative character, or mode of speaking, is such that, according to the common saying, we never know where to find him: I would that he would show himself to be either one thing or the other. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLES. ἐλ ‘Because thou art lukewarm.’—The Greek term, rendered lukewarm, does not occur in any other passage, either of the New Testament, or of the Old, according to the Septuagint; but that which renders this doctrine so extremely loathsome, in divine estimation, appears to be indicated in the subsequent verse. No illustration is necessary to give force to the language used. We may presume the subject of reprehension to possess to an extreme the hatefulness of character ascribed to the Nicolaitan doctrine, (ὃ 63,) although, perhaps, more specious in appearance. The verb translated I will, μέλλω, is one of those expressing, not so much the disposition to do a thing, as the unavoidable necessity of doing it; a necessity arising from the nature of the case ; something that is to be, or will be, as an effect follows its cause. The spirit under contemplation from its lukewarmness is so nauseating that it cannot be retained ; it must of necessity be repudiated, and that with disgust. _Vs. 17, 18. Because thou sayest,Lam Ὅτι λέγεις" ὅτι πλούσιός εἶμι καὶ πεπ- rich, and increased with goods, and have λούτηκα καὶ οὐδενὸς χρείαν ἔχω, καὶ οὐκ need of nothing; and knowest not that. Be AP en clot +6 ἐλ thou art wretched, and miserable, and “τ ° aay bee gE. a > ~ Kot τὰ τέσσαρα ζῶα, ἕν καϑ' ἕν αὐτῶν »” > ν᾽ ᾿ «“ ’ 4 8ὲ ἔχον ἀνὰ πτέρυγας ἕξ, κυκλοϑεν καὶ ἔσω- ? ~ > ’ ey γέμουσιν ὀφρϑαλμῶν, καὶ ἀνάπαυσιν οὐκ , c , c ἔχουσιν ἡμέρας καὶ νυκτύς, λέγοντες" ἅγιος, « a , c ‘ a ἅγιος, ἅγιος κύριος ὃ Feds ὃ παντοχράτωρ, come. ὃ ἣν καὶ ὃ ὧν καὶ ὃ ἐρχόμενος. ᾧ 129. “Ηδά each of them six wings, round about and within full of eyes. —According to the order of the Greek, and as it is pointed in the edi- tion from which we copy—the words within parenthesis being supplied by our translators, as if it were the animals that were full of eyes—whereas, the wings must be referred to here, the animals having been already described as thus abundantly supplied with the organs of knowledge ;—the abund- ance of the supply in both case$ indicating that, whatever the creatures or their wings represent, it must be something combining with it the omnis- cience of the Deity. The number of the wings, six, reminds us of an appearance somewhat similar, described by one of the prophets, (Is. vi. 1-3,) “I saw also the Lord sitting upon a throne, high and lifted up, and his train filled the temple. Above it stood the seraphims ; (or, according to the Septuagint, around him stood the seraphim ;) each one had six wings ; with twain he covered (or veiled) his face, and with twain he covered (or veiled) his feet, and with twain he did fly. And one cried unto another and said, Holy, holy, holy is the Lord God of Hosts: the whole earth is full of his glory.” The number of these seraphim is not mentioned, nor is the appellation to be found elsewhere in the sacred volume, although the prophet speaks of them as of something familiarly known. Their avocation is the same as. that of the four living creatures of the Apocalypse ; and whatever may be represented by both, or either of them, it must be something virtually pro- claiming or making known the holiness, sanctification, or setting apart (ἁγιασμός) of the Lord, as a Being distinct from all others. 20 THE THRONE IN HEAVEN. The passage throws some light on the uses of the wings: “ With twain he covered (or veiled) his face,”’—concealing his purpose, or that of his mis- sion ; as the divine purpose was veiled under the old dispensation by dark sayings, (Ps. xlix. 4,) or by the covering of types, symbols, and figurative expressions. With twain he covered his feet, or concealed his progress. As is said of the Most High, (Ps. Ixxvii. 19,) “ΤῊ way is in the sea, and thy path in the great waters, and thy footsteps are not known ;” and 1 Cor. ii. 11 and 16, “For what man knoweth the things (purposes) of a man, save the spirit of a man which is in him? Even so, the things (purposes) of God knoweth no man, but the spirit of God.” ‘For who hath known the mind of the Lord, that he may instruct him?” or, as it is expressed, Rom. xi. 34, “ Who hath been his counsellor?’ With twain he did fly.— An intimation of the certain and rapid progress of the principles, or ele- ments, represented by these Seraphim, notwithstanding the concealment before described ; this progress in the development of truth virtually per- forming what they are said to proclaim: that is, manifesting the holiness of the Almighty. ‘ And full of eyes within..—We have already supposed this to apply to the wings. By pointing the word κυκλόϑεν, as if in parenthesis, we might read the passage, “" Each of them had six wings, encircling, and within they were full of eyes ;” but the difference is hardly worth discussion. The wings are parts of the body; and if the whole animal be full of eyes— as full as possible—its wings must be full of eyes. The prominent fea- ture of the figure we still presume to be that of ommiscience, as before intimated. The four living creatures represent four attributes of Jehovah, in purpose and action so blended with his omniscience, that one cannot be separated from the other. So the rings of the wheels, in the first vision of Ezekiel, were full of eyes; and in the vision by the river Chebar, it is said of the cherubim, “ Their whole body, and their backs, and their hands, and their wings, and the wheels were full of eyes round about,” (Ezek. i. 18, and x. 12)—the omniscience of the Deity pervading the whole instru- ment of his will. ‘ And they rest not, day nor night,’ &c., &c.—This ascription of holi- ness, is something in continual and perpetual operation—it is something virtually proclaiming the eternity of the Almighty, as well as his holiness ; while the treble repetition of the term holy, may imply also, as some sup- pose, the design of setting forth the triune personality of the object of ado- ration. If these four living creatures represent four elements of divine sove- reignty, the operation of these elements is virtually that of setting forth the Holiness, the Eternity, and the Trinity of Jehovah. This operation has been, is, and always will be, in process ; but it is seen, or exhibited, only in proportion as it is developed in the revelation which Jesus Christ makes of THE THRONE IN HEAVEN. 21 himself? As it was seen in vision by the apostle in a figurative manner on this occasion, it will be seen by the disciple in a spiritual sense whenever and wherever the truths of divine revelation are fully understood. Vs. 9, 10, 11. And when those’ beasts [living creatures] give glory, and honour, and thanks to him that sat on the throne, who liveth for ever and ever, the four and twenty elders fall down before him that sat on the throne, and worship him that liveth for ever and ever, and cast their crowns before the throne, saying, Thou art wor- thy. O Lord, to receive glory, and honour, and power: for thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created, Kat ὅταν δώσουσι τὰ ζῶα δόξαν καὶ τιμὴν καὶ εὐχαριστίαν τῷ καϑημένῳ ἐπὶ τοῦ ϑρό- vou, τῷ ζῶντι εἰς τοὺς αἰώνας τῶν αἰώνων, πεσοῦνται OL εἰχοσιτέσσαρες πρεςβύτεροι ἐνώπιον τοῦ καϑημένου ἐπὶ τοῦ ϑρόνου, καὶ . ’ ~ ~ ‘ >~ προςκυνήσουσε τῷ ζῶντι εἰς τοὺς αἰῶνας - ~ ‘ ΄ τῶν αἰώνων, καὶ βαλοῦῖσι τοὺς στεφάνους € , = ΄ ' He αὑτῶν ἐνώπιον τοῦ ϑρόνου, λέγοντες " ἄξιος ες te ΄ ys ‘ δ “ὦ ~ ‘ εἶ, ὃ κύριος καὶ ὃ ϑεὸς ἡμῶν, λαβεῖν τὴν Sinn ‘ ΄ o δόξαν καὶ τὴν τιμὴν καὶ τὴν δύναμιν" ὅτε 1» τιμὴ Ι σὺ ἔχτισας τὰ πάντα, καὶ διὰ τὸ ϑέλημά σου ἡσὰν καὶ ἐκτίσϑησαν. § 130. “Δπά when the living creatures,’ &c.—Here the ascription of holiness to the almighty and eternal God, mentioned in the preceding verse, is referred to as equivalent to giving glory, and honour, and thanks to him that sat on the throne ; that is, the elements of justice, mercy, &c., as displayed in the plan of redemption, are the instruments of giving to God the glory, honour, and grateful praise due to his name. It is not till the four living creatures perform their act of homage, that the elders perform their act of prostration, and cast their crowns before the throne. The reciprocal action of the elders, is a consequence, or result, of that of the four living creatures. When the four living creatures utter their voices, the four-and-twenty elders fall down. ‘The four living creatures never cease to offer their ascriptions—they rest not, day nor night—there is no pause in their act of homage ; consequently, the four-and-twenty elders never cease to prostrate themselves : that is, the action, or operation of both is virtually ceaseless and eternal, although not always manifest to created beings. The apostle, favoured by his heavenly position, witnessed this peculiarity. So it may be witnessed by all who, with him, behold things in spirit, or in their spiritual sense. The four-and-twenty elders we suppose to be elements of the Old Testament dispensation, represented by the twelve patriarchs and twelve prophets. This dispensation may be said to have acquired a crown, as excelling in its way ; but it was a legal dispensation, though perfect in its kind, subordinate in its design, and destined to be superseded by another. Accordingly, no sooner do the elements of divine sovereignty (the four ani- mals about the throne) exhibit their operation in ascribing glory, honour, and thanks, than this legal dispensation gives way—gives up its crown, or the token of its excellence—acknowledging, as it were, the supremacy of sove- reign power, the supremacy of the principle, that the Creator has a right to do as he pleases with his own. : 29 THE THRONE IN HEAVEN. What we say of the legal dispensation as a whole, is equally to be pre- dicated of its twenty-four elements. They received, and were seen to have crowns of gold, (not diadems,) for they excelled as principles of truth. They are manifested to have triumphed, and to wear the token of that tri- umph; but they performed only a subordinate part. ‘The ministration of death written and engraved on stones was glorious,” but this glory was to be ‘done away ;” “for even that which was made glorious had no glory in this respect, by reason of the glory that excelleth,’” 2 Cor. iii, 7-11. The action of the four living creatures we suppose to result, virtually, in a mani- festation of this glory that excelleth ; and reciprocally with this manifesta- tion, the twenty-four elements of the glory, which was to be done away, give up their crowns. ‘'Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive glory, honour, and power.’—That is, to receive the ascription of it. God has this glory, honour, and power in himself, and of himself. It is for his creatures only to ascribe it to him—to admit and to acknowledge that he has it ; and even here the word rendered receive, might better have been translated, take; as the phrase, ‘thou art worthy,’ would have been better expressed by that of it becomes thee, which appears to be the sense: It becomes thee, O Lord, to take glory, honour, and power ; and this especially for the reason assigned. § 131. ‘For thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created.—As the Creator of all things, it becomes God to assume the glory, honour, and power of his own work. In the nature of things, this belongs to him .It cannot be otherwise. Who else could reason- ably, or justly, have the glory of what God has done? The case is entirely different with every created being. The creature can do nothing of itself— man acts only by the power which God gives. ‘The honour and glory of what a man does, and ascription of power, belong therefore not to him, but to his Creator—to him who gives the power to perform whatever the crea- ture does, or effects. But besides this, it becomes God to assume this glory and honour of his own work, not only because it is of his own creation, but because it was designed solely for him and for his pleasure. The creature has the pleasure of his employer to consult ; and whatever work results from that pleasure, the glory belongs to the employer, and not to the operative. But God has no pleasure to consult other than his own—all things were created by Him, and for Him ; to Him, therefore, belongs all the glory,—as well that of the design, or purpose, as that of the manner in which it is accomplished. To Him belongs the glory, because he has the power, morally as well as physically, to give or to withold, to create or to destroy; He giveth not account of any of his matters, Job xxxiii. 13; He is responsible to no one. The thing formed cannot say to him that formed it, ‘‘ Why -hast thou THE THRONE IN HEAVEN. 293 made me thus?’ Rom. ix. 20; nor can the clay say to him that fashioned it, What makest thou ? We are apt to look upon man as being literally, what he is sometimes inconsiderately termed, the lord of the creation; as if—because dominion is said to have been given him over other created objects,—all things were created for him. We forget the myriads of wonders and beauties in the vast wildernesses, deserts, and recesses of the earth ; on the tops of lofty mountains, at the bottom of the sea, in the seas, and in the ‘atmosphere around us; which never meet the eye of man, so as to form subjects of his contemplation, and of which we might even doubt the utility, if it were not for the assurance of divine revelation, that all things were brought into existence, and are sustained in being, for the pena of Him by whom they were created. ᾧ 132. We have thus, in the scene presented to the Xe upon his first entrance into the door opened in heaven, an exhibition of the Deity, as the Supreme Being, the Almighty and Eternal God, the Creator of all things, sitting on the throne of his sovereignty, receiving continual ascrip- tions of glory, honour, and thanks, on the principle of this sovereignty ; to which principle all the elements of the legal dispensation are represented as subordinate, and as admitting their subordination by joining in this act of homage to the Sovereign, for the reason alone that he is the Creator of all things, and that all things were created for him. Throughout this exhibition there is no specific allusion to the work οἵ redemption, nor is this work mentioned as one of the grounds of the ascrip- tion of praise, although we afterwards find the same worthiness to receive or to take power, and honour, and glory, ascribed to the Lamb that was slain, ) , and this because he was slain, (Rev. v. 9, 12, 13.) We accordingly presume that, thus far, the development of the mystery of salvation is not commenced. ‘The attributes of Jehovah, in which this mystery is founded, are represented as existing,—surrounding his throne, and before his throne,—but the beneficent purpose emanating from them, is something yet remaining to be unveiled, or laid open. The picture presented is analogous to that of the opening of the court of a monarch, upon some extraordinary occasion ; such as that, perhaps, of unfolding the views of the sovereign with regard to an object of great importance—the monarch is seen upon the throne, the different functionaries occupy their respective places. The whole arrangement of the monarch’s administration is represented ; but the declaration of his intentions is some- thing for which the assembly is in anxious expectation. Just at this moment, when all is prepared for the intended announcement, the apostle is admitted as a privileged spectator, having an interest, perhaps, more than he is aware of, in the matters about to be made known; but, at the same 11 ΄σ ῇ 24 THE THRONE IN HEAVEN. time, having only an indistinct, or vague idea of their nature and character. As such a spectator, he records what he sees with precision and fidelity ; not as something which he fully understands, but as something which in due time will explain itself. Occasionally the friend by whom he obtains admittance to this extraordinary representation, and who is supposed to be ever at his side, gives him a few words of explanation ; but this explanation itself is a part of the vision, and like the other parts requires interpretation, and this by the same uniform rule: as if a stranger were introduced into the court of a foreign prince, by some privileged officer, as a highly favoured individual, to witness an important transaction about to take place, in reference to the government of the prince’s own subjects. The language of the court is the language of the country, and the language of the friend attending the stranger is the language of the country also. ‘The explana- tions of this attendant, therefore, as well as all that which is said in the assembly, are in the same foreign language, and are to be translated by the same rules. THE SEALED BOOK. 25 CHAPTER WY. THE SEALED BOOK. V.1. And I saw inthe right hand of Καὶ εἶδον ent τὴν δεξιὰν τοῦ καϑημένου him that saton the throne, a book written ἐπὶ τοῦ ϑρόνου βιβλίον γεγραμμένον ἔσω- within and on the back side, sealed with Sev nod di0 9-29), κατεσφραγισμένον σφρα- seven seals. - Bah 6: χισιν ELT. § 133. Norwrrustanpine the interruption caused here by the division into chapters, there is no change or intermission in the vision itself. In the midst of the scene described in the last chapter, the apostle contemplates what he now describes—the adoration of the living creatures, and the homage of the elders still continuing—the sea of crystal and the burning lamps being still before the throne. ‘IT saw in the right hand.—The right hand is distinguished for its power. ‘The right hand of God is repeatedly spoken of in the Psalms and prophets, as the instrument by which he saves and sustains the objects of his favour, and by which he overcomes all opposition to his will. The right hand of God is the power, by which he saves the sinner. This hand, or power, he himself speaks of as consisting in his own righteousness, (Is. xli. 10;) and the same right hand is spoken of, Ps. xlvili. 10, as full of right- eousness. So we may say, the righteousness of God, imputed to the disciple, is the right hand of God in the exercise of its power to save. The apostle saw, then, in this righteousness or divine power to save, something symbol- ically represented as a book. ‘The book of ancient times being a scroll rolled up, or a roll of scrolls. This sealed book, or roll, is evidently a mys- tery to be unfolded, or developed; there is a mystery in this righteousness or divine power to save, which is to be explained or laid open. The parch- ment was written within and without—on both sides—perhaps, it would be enough to say, that it was full; that it contained every thing to be said. This inside and outside, however, may have a more important meaning ; such as an internal or secret sense, and an external or apparent sense. This last construction, seems to correspond best with the whole tenor of the Apoc- alypse ; but, besides the inner and outer sense, this mystery in the right- eousness or saving power of God is sealed, concealed, or made close, by seven seals. The verb translated sealed, is compounded with a preposition, giving intensity to the expression. It was sealed with particular care ; the number of the seals—seven—may also have reference to the completeness of 26 THE SEALED BOOK. this sealing; although, it is probable, this has besides a more definite bearing. ~The seal of a letter is that which prevents the contents of the letter from being known. By way of approximation, we may suppose the revelation of the mind of God, as made in the Old and New Testaments, (perhaps the Old Testament alone,) to be the book containing the mystery in question. That which prevents the contents of the book from being read, or comprehended, is the types and symbols, or typical and symbolical language in which the book is written. If we suppose in this book seven sets of figures, under which its truths are couched, these sets of figures W would be equivalent to seven seals. ‘To obtain a key to the interpretation of these figures, would be equal to obtaining the power of opening these seals ; or, whoever opened these seals, might be said to be himself the key for this interpretation.* V.2. And I saw a strong [mighty] Καὶ εἶδον ἄγγελον ἰσχυρόν, κηρύσσοντα angel proclaiming with a loud voice, Who is worthy to open the book, and to loose the seals thereof? ἐν φωνῇ μεγάλῃ" τίς ἐστιν ἄξιος ἀνοῖξαι τὰ ἐν φωνῇ μεγάλῃ" Tis ἄξιος ἀνοῖξαι τὸ r x " = ΕΣ βιβλίον καὶ λῦσαι τὰς σφραγῖδας αὐτοῦ. ᾧ 134. The word rendered strong, is the same as that translated mighty, Rev. x. 1; the latter word seemis to be the most appropriate here, as the allusion is not to physical, but to intellectual or moral power. An angel, ‘as we have before had occasion to observe, ($ 4,) is a messenger of some ' kind. The messenger may be here put for the message itself, or for a ministering spirit acting upon the mind, and exciting to the inquiry—Who _ is able to interpret this mystery in the power of Divine righteousness? The might of the angel, and the loudness of his voice, may both be intimations of the importance of the inquiry ; but the latter may also intimate the extent of the challenge given to the whole universe—Who is equal to the task ?— affording, as it were, every possible opportunity to every created being to accept the challenge. Who is worthy ? whom does it become? who is qualified? Is there a created being able to do this ?—The question, itself, implying that no mere creature is equal to the task. V.3. And no man[no one]inheaven, Kat οὐδεὶς ἠδύνατο ἐν τῷ οὐρανῷ, οὐδὲ nor in earth, neither under the earth, was able to open the book, neither to look thereon. ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς, οὐδὲ ὑποκάτω τῆς γῆς, ἀνοῖξαι τὸ βιβλίον, οὐδὲ βλέπειν αὐτό. The rendering, in our common version, no man, weakens the force of the * Perhaps this book might be termed the record of the Divine counsels, as given by Moses, David, and the prophets. The figurative clothing of the Revelation ren- dering it a sealed book, until the coming of Christ; as the Old Testament was a sealed book until explained by the New Testament. We may term even both Test- aments, (the Bible,) a sealed” book, till’ due exhibition of the offices and work of Christ reveals their true meaning. THE SEALED BOOK. ΟἽ expression. The original οὐδείς, no one, being applicable to all created beings, whether men or angels. No such being in heaven or earth, of any kind—celestial or terrestrial, spiritual or literal—was able to unfold this mystery, for the benefit of others, or even to look into it for his own under- standing. It was, in the strongest sense, a sealed book ; although contain- ing things of which it is said, 1 Peter i. 12, the angels (even the messengers of God themselves) desire to look into. Prophets and righteous men desired to understand its contents, and could not, Matt. xiii. 17. V.4. And wept much, because no καὶ ἐγὼ ἔκλαιον πολλά, ὅτι οὐδεὶς ἄξιος man [no one] was found worthy to open εἰὑρέϑ. ἀνοῖξαι. τὸ. βιβλίον: ovte βλέ 4 8 βλέπειν and to read the book, neither to look πολ ᾿ ὰ βιβ δ thereon. 1 lamented much, would be, perhaps, a better rendering ; as the original does not necessarily suppose a shedding of tears, which we associate with — the term weep. ‘The whole scene reminds us of some of the splendid tour- naments formerly given by sovereigns, as spectacles to their own subjects, and to the representatives of other nations. On these occasions it was cus- tomary for a single champion to defy the assembled multitude, to produce an antagonist worthy or capable of competing with him in a trial of strength. The challenge was given by the herald, proclaiming with a loud voice; the whole multitude were in a state of eager anticipation, until the opponent made his appearance. We may easily imagine the disappointment of the assembly, if, after repeated proclamations of the herald, no competitor pre- sented himself. But here, in the sight of the apostle, there was something of far greater interest. In the right hand of divine righteousness, there was the whole mystery of the plan of salvation for fallen man; but no created being was to be found equal to the task of unfolding the wonders of this mystery. Not only this, the apostle knew that, with his fellow-sinners, he had a special interest in the contents of this book—as a criminal under sen- tence of condemnation, when told of a certain document, showing the mode in which he may be pardoned, is anxious to obtain the written instru- ment, to read it, or to hear it read ; so might the apostle well have felt that anxiety to know the mystery of the book before him; and well might he lament and weep, when no one was to be found capable of making known its precious truths. V.5. And one of the elders saith unto Καὶ εἷς ἐκ τῶν πρεςβυτέρων λέγει μοι" me, Weep not: behold, the Lion of the tribe of Juda, the Root of David, hath prevailed to open the book, and to loose WR, by 46 τ the seven seals thereof. καὶ τὰς inte σφραγῖδας αὐτοῦ. ., ~ » , , ’ c c > ~ μὴ κλαῖε" ἰδού, ἐνίκησεν ὃ Leow ὃ ἐκ τῆς φυ- a , C rie KY > Alte hig Ιούδα, ἡ ῥίζα Auvid, ἀνοῖξαι τὸ βιβλίον ᾧ 135. The opening required is not a literal, but a yirtual opening. Whether the book be the purpose of God itself, or the typical and figurative 98 ; THE SEALED BOOK. account of that purpose, the unsealing is to be effected by manifestation —it is to be acted out. The life, the death, the resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ, with all that he taught, unfold the purpose of God, and thus, if that purpose be the book, open the seals thereof ; or, if the figurative revelation of this purpose, given us in the Scriptures, be the sealed book, then it is by bringing the life, death, resurrection, ascension, and doctrines of Jesus to this figurative revelation, that the last becomes the instrument of unlocking the first, or of opening its seals. .In the nature of the case, no other being than Christ can perform this work>—So, also, no other could look into this purpose of God, to understand it. In him only all the types and figures of the Scriptures are fulfilled, and it is therefore only by him that they can be interpreted, or the seals broken, if these figures be the seals. As he himself said to his disciples, Luke x. 23, 24, “ Blessed are the eyes which see the things that ye see ; for I tell you, that many prophets and kings have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen them, and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them.” In an immediate, natural, and external sense, the types and figures of the Old Testament are interpreted by the works and sufferings of Christ, thus laying open, or unfolding the outside of the scroll, (book.) In an ulterior, spiritual, and inner sense, Christ unfolds and exposes to view the inside of the scroll, by exhibiting the doctrinal elements of the mystery of redemp- tion. When he gave sight to blind Bartimeus; when he called Lazarus from the grave ; when he fed the multitude with a few loaves and fishes ; when scourged, and spit upon, and wounded, he died upon the cross; when his body was committed to the tomb, and when he rose from the dead, the types, and shadows, and prophecies, were literally fulfilled in him, and the outside of the book unsealed. When, in a spiritual sense, he anoints the eyes with eye-salve, that the simmer may perceive his own destitution ; and opens the understanding, that the disciple may perceive why it was that his Master thus suffered ;—when, by adoption in him, the sinner is manifested to be taken out of his natural position of deadness and darkness in trespasses and sins, and to be a new creature in the sight of God, by occupying a posi- tion of light and life in Christ ;—when, spiritually, he is seen to be the bread of life, because his righteousness or merit is the means of eternal life; and to give the water of life, because, in his atonement, or propitiation, there is that ablution from sin which preserves the soul from perishing ;—then he virtually unseals or unfolds the inside of the book. In both these senses the Lamb of God is, in the nature of the case, the only fit and proper instrument for developing the purposes of God. The book written within and without, required a double fitness in the instrument of its development, and this double fitness is found in Christ, and in him alone. . THE SEALED BOOK. 29 § 136. ‘One of the elders saith unto me.’—These elders we suppose to represent elements of the old dispensation, or of the revelation compre- hending that dispensation. One of these elements performs the part of pointing out Jesus Christ, in the characters here spoken of, (the Lion of the tribe of Judah, and the Root of David,) as the fit and destined instrument of unfolding the mysteries of the book. Judah is described as a Lion, and his tribe and power as terminating in Suton, Gen. xlix. 8-10, Shiloh being an admitted title of the Messiah, or Christ ; and Paul refers to the fact as indisputable, Heb. vii. 14, that our Lord sprang out of Judah ; while the root of Jesse is applied also to Jesus Christ, Rom. xv. 12. This is sufficient to identify the personage in question (the Lamb) with Christ, the Saviour; although, in the vision, the revealing of this identity is but commencing. ‘The figure of the lion is probably employed here in reference to the strength of the animal ; Christ alone having the strength or ability to develope the mystery in question—mighty to save, and able to reveal. The verb translated prevailed, is the same as that elsewhere rendered overcome, conquer, &c. Christ may be said to have overcome every obstacle in the way of opening this mysterious book ; but it appears by the subsequent part of the chapter, that the victory obtained by the Lamb is something else than a triumph merely over difficulties occurring in the explanation of a portion of Scripture. He is declared worthy or fit to perform the work proposed, because he was slain, &c., (see 9th verse.) He had therefore prevailed by being slain, that is, slaughtered, as a victim offered at the altar; such being the signification of the term in the original, (Rob. Lex. 847.) It was by this sacrifice of himself that he prevailed, or’ was qualified to open the book. In effect it is by his vicarious work of redemption that Christ unseals, or developes the divine plan of mercy. We must judge of the nature of the contest, by the means through which the victory is obtained. Christ died for our sins, and was raised for our justifi- cation ; the contest, therefore, in which he was engaged, must have been with the elements of infinite justice ; these alone rendering the intervention of such a champion in behalf of the sinner indispensable. V.6. And I beheld, and lo, in the Καὶ εἶδον ἐν μέσῳ τοῦ ϑρόνου καὶ τῶν midst of the throne and of the four beasts, τεσσάρων ζώων καὶ ἔν μέσῳ τῶν πρεςβυτέ- [living animals,] and in the midst of the των ἀρνίον ἑστηκὺς ὡς ἐσφανμένων z elders. stood a Lamb as it had been slain, ° 9 Ste Te ee eee having seven horns and seveneyes, which ““9@T@ : f ok Aa are the seven Spirits of God sentforthinto τὰ éatu πρεύματα τοῦ ϑεοῦ, τὰ ἀπεσταλ- all the earth. μένα εἰς πᾶσαν τὴν γῆν. ' ς ‘ a. 2 ‘ « , = Albee κέρατα émtu καὶ ὀφϑαλμοὺς ἑπτά, οἵ εἰσι § 137. ‘And 1 beheld, and lo,’ —xai εἶδον, καὶ ἰδού, according to some editions, instead of καὶ εἶδον, ‘and I saw,’ as aboye. The difference is unimportant, except that the first form may express a greater change of 30 THE SEALED BOOK. scene, than is implied in the last. Here, there is no change of scenery ; the apostle’s eyes only being directed to an object in the assembly not before noticed, although previously there—even from the beginning. ‘In the midst of, &c.—The element of propitiation exists, and is to be found in the midst of the, element of divine sovereignty, (the throne,) and of the four attributes of Deity, the four living creatures. It is also to be found revealed amidst the twenty-four elements of the old dispensation— the revelation set forth by the patriarchs aud prophets, ts, (1 Peter, i. 10-12,) or perhaps in the midst of both dispensations, if we prefer considering the twenty-four elders as figures of the patriarchs and apostles, (Ὁ 121.) ‘A Lamb as it had been slain.—The Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world, John i. 29 and 36; the paschal Lamb, (i Cor. v. 7;) the Lamb without blemish and without spot, 1 Pet. i. 19; even He who was brought as a Lamb to the slaughter, (Is. lil. 7.) ‘ As it had been slain.’-—Not precisely in the condition of a slain lamb, for then it would have been lying down and prostrate, (Rob. Lex. 847, art. ὡς 1) but as if it had been slain, and afterwards restored to life. So Jesus appeared before his disciples, John xx. 26, 27, as one having been crucified, when he exhibited to the unbelieving Thomas the marks of the nails on his hands and feet, and the wound in his side. ‘Slain, —slaughtered as a victim. ‘The lamb contemplated by the apostle appeared to have been once offered in sacrifice. Under the old economy, Ex. xxix. 39, a continual daily sacrifice was required of one lamb in the morning, and another in the evening ; but Christ, having once offered himself, no further sacrifice is required. Under the old economy, too, the Lamb offered was entirely eaten or consumed; there was nothing left of it. Lamb after lamb was called for, and justice still remained unap- peased ; but when the Lamb of God was offered, the sacrifice was more than sufficient. The Lamb had performed its vicarious work, and yet remained standing, living,—bearing only the marks of what it had endured. So, as Jesus died for our sins, he was raised to manifest our justification ; for if Christ be not raised, says Paul, we are yet in our sins, (1 Cor. xv. 17.) ‘Having seven horns, and seven eyes, which are,’ &c.—One horn and one eye to each spirit—a horn being a figure of power, and the eye that of intelligence. ‘The horns of an animal are its weapons of offence and defence ; and the opening of the eyes of understanding is spoken of, Eph. i. 17 and 18, as particularly an operation of the spirit of wisdom and revelation in the knowledge of Christ. ‘'The seven Spirits,’—-we may presume to be the seven described, Rev. i. 4, that is, the Holy Spirit,—taking seven as a figure of totality, (ᾧ 9.) On this occasion, the horns and eyes may be noticed with special reference to the work about to be performed. The Lamb presents himself as the /) THE SEALED BOOK. 31 champion,—the only champion capable of undertaking the performance calling for the exercise of his strength. He makes his appearance with the weapons peculiarly requisite for the trial to be encountered ;—the seals of a certain book are to be opened ;—a Lamb once slain is to accomplish this task ; and besides his general fitness for the work, as having been slain, or sacrificed, his implements are seven powers, and seven means of under- standing, comprehended in the one power and one mean of the Spirit of truth—the Spirit destined to convince the world of sin, of righteousness, and of judgment; and at the same time to testify of Jesus—teaching his followers all things, and bringing all things to their remembrance. 'The book had seven seals, and the opener of the book appeared with the seven Spirits of God. We are not told whether to each seal the operation of a particular Spirit is to be applied ; or whether the seven Spirits are equally engaged in opening each seal. Perhaps some light may be thrown upon this hereafter. § 138. ‘Sent forth into all the earth.—The earth, as an opposite of heaven, we suppose to be figuratively the exhibition of a plan of salvation, —a view of the position of man in his relation to God,—the opposite of the exhibition symbolically spoken of as heaven. This earth is to be a scene of trial, apocalyptically ; a test is to be applied to it, and certain woes are pronounced against its dependents; these Spirits going forth into all the earth, (or this Holy Spirit, as a totality,) are to be the instruments of carrying the anticipated trial into effect. Perhaps we may say these seven Spirits each furnish a spiritual understanding, peculiar to each seal, and capable of developing its meaning; this understanding being consistent in every case with that by which the whole volume of revealed truth has been dictated. This same standard of interpretation, applied to the earthly exhibition before spoken of, is to be the means of detecting its errors, and exposing its fallacies. ‘The same searching element as that elsewhere com- pared to a two-edged sword; as it is said, The eyes of the Lord are in every place, (Prov. xv. 3 ;) His eyes behold, his eyelids try the children of men, Ps. xi. 4, ‘This is literally and spiritually true ; in the latter sense the action is equivalent to that of the seven Spirits apocalyptically going forth into all the earth. Vs. 7,8. And he came and took the Καὶ ἦλϑε καὶ εἴληφε τὸ βιβλίον ἐκ τῆς book out of the right hand of him that sat δεξιᾶς τοῦ καϑημένου ἐπὶ τοῦ ϑρόνου. Καὶ upon the throne. And when hehad taken «| » ἢ f cig om ᾿ ote ἔλαβε τὸ βιβλίον ὶ the book, the four beasts, and four and f oR » FO FECT RO ας ψαν twenty elders fell down before the Lamb, οἱ eas Te πρεςβύτεροι ἔπεσον ἐνώ- having every one of them harps, and πίον τοῦ ἀρνίου, ἔχοντες ἕχαστος κιϑάρας golden vials full of odours, which are the καὶ φιάλας χρυσᾶς γεμούσας ϑυμιαμάτων, prayers of the saints. αἵ εἰσιν αἵ προςευχαὶ τῶν ἁγίων. ‘And he came and took the book.’—There is a parity of circumstance N 99 THE SEALED BOOK. between this passage and that of Ps. xl. 7, 8, referred to, Heb. x. 7, 9, “Then said I, Lo, I come: in the volume of the book (it is) written of me, I delight to do thy will, O my God: yea, thy law is within my heart.” This may be the same book as that in the hand of him that sat on the throne, the volume of divine purpose. Christ virtually takes this book by fulfilling this purpose: He unseals it, by bringing about the comparison of what he has done with what was predicted of him; and we may add, with what was predicated of him in the mind of the Sovereign Ruler from all eternity. ‘Out of the right hand of him that sat upon the throne.’—The right hand of God, as we have elsewhere noticed, is a figure especially of his righteousness—the power by the intervention of which the salvation of the sinnér is effected. 'This righteousness furnishes the pag or purpose which grows out of it, or emanates from it, as the particle ἐκ imples—the Son of God, the express Image of the Father, and consequently the representa- tive of his righteousness, takes this book, or plan, fulfils its prescription, and developes its meaning, when he interposes himself, with all the divine righteousness of which he is the image or symbol, in behalf of those whom he came to seek and to save. The righteousness is that of him who alone possesses the attribute of perfect sovereignty ; the book contains the plan, or purpose, by which this righteousness is rendered the efficient means of salvation; this purpose is fulfilled, and the plan developed by him, who, though he was rich, for our sakes became poor, that we, through his poverty, might become rich. § 139. “ And when he had taken the book,’ &c.—According to the pre- ceding chapter, (Rev. iv. 9,) the adoration of the four living creatures gives occasion to the prostration of the twenty-four elders. Here, the taking of the book by the Lamb, or the undertaking of the development of its mysteries, produces the prostration both of the living creatures and of the elders. ‘Fell down before the Lamb.’—Those, that before fell down before Him that sat on the throne, now fall down before him who takes the book from the hand of the former object of adoration; ‘“ All these things,” said Satan, “will I give thee, if thou wilt fall down and worship me.” *£ Get thee hence, Satan,” was the reply of the Lamb of God himself; “ for it is written, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve ; and yet, here we find the four elements. of divine Bey and nizing ‘ae identity of the two Hid Τὴ μα ; at the same time, the bli when, calls our attention to the péculiarity, that it is just at this juncture, when the Lamb presents himself to open the book, that he is recognized as identic with him to whom alone divine honours are due :—the prostration ees 0 THE SEALED BOOK. 33 of the living creatures, and of the elders, being equivalent to an admission, that the sovereign on the throne was then manifest in the Lamb. ‘Having every one of them harps.’—The harp was especially used, amongst the Hebrews, in offerings of praise and acts of rejoicing. It is men- tioned by the afflicted patriarch, (Job xxx. 31,) as an exception to the general rule, that his harp was turned to mourning. So the Israelites, when in captivity, hanged, as they said, their harps upon the willows. David sang the praises of God, as the God of his salvation, upon the harp; and we may presume, from Ps. xlix. 4, that he sang also, in figurative language, the wonders of redeeming love. Such we may suppose to be the use of the harps in possession of the living creatures and of the elders. Our common version conveys the impression that the vials only were of gold, but the adjective rendered golden, agrees in the original with harps, as well as with vials :—“ having each harps and vials golden,” &c. These harps, therefore, are instruments of truth; their material, or composition, being such as to withstand any test administered to them ;—corresponding with which, David says, Ps. Ixxi. 22. * Τ will praise thee with the psaltery, (even) thy truth, O my God: unto thee will I sing with the harp.” The publication of the truth as it is in Jesus, being in effect an ascription of praise to God, as it is a setting forth of the cause for which he is to be praised ; thus the Gospel itself may be compared to a golden harp, as an instrument of truth, by which the praise due to Jehovah is virtually set forth. ‘ And golden vials full of odours,’ &c.,—or, as the original might be rendered, laden with incense; the Greek ϑυμίαμα, being rendered also elsewhere, incense, as we shall have occasion to notice hereafter. The offer- ing of incense, under the Levitical arrangement, was a representation of sacrifice, generally. Here these odours (incense) are said to be the prayers of the saints. We presume the offering to be rather that of praise and thanksgiving, than of the character of a petition: as we find from 1 Tim. ii. 1, the term προσευχαί, rendered, in our common version, prayers, to be synonymous neither with supplications nor intercessions. ‘The season of petition may now be supposed to haye passed away. ‘The Lamb had been slain, and was again living—He had redeemed his people—He had taken the book to develope its mysteries—the aspirations of the universe were complied with, and that which prophets and kings had been so desirous of seeing and hearing, was being made known. ‘The supplications of Daniel, the prayers of David, the urgent entreaties of the prophets, were ended, and had been complied with; in heaven, at least, the tribute of gratitude, the voice of praise and thanksgiving only, is to be heard. Such, we suppose, to be the tribute of praise represented by these odours ; the action of the scene shadowing forth that period of glorious manifestation, when those most remote, being brought nigh by the blood of Christ, shall bring gold and 34 THE SEALED BOOK. incense, and shall show forth the praises of God, Is. Ix. 6. The material of these vials was also of gold; the truth of God being the instrument of exhibiting the sacrifice of gratitude offered by his redeemed. Vs. 9, plo sed sung i ee sie Καὶ ᾷδουσιν δὴν χαινήν, λέγοντες" ἄξιος saying, ‘Thou art worthy 10 take the book, εἶ λαβεῖν τὸ βιβῆϊον καὶ ἀνοῖξαι τὰς σφρα- and to open the seals thereof; for thou β Pup} 4 phil wast slain, and hast redeemed us to God vidas αὐτοῦ" ὅτι ἐσφάγης, καὶ iz oguaus τῷ by thy blood, out of every kindred, and ϑεῷ ἡμᾶς ἐν τῷ αἵματί σου ἐκ πάσης φυλῆς tongue, and people, and nation; and hast el γλώσσης καὶ λαοῦ καὶ ἔϑνους, καὶ ἐποί- made us unto our God kings and priests : NO OS αὑτοὺς τῷ ϑεῷ ἡμῶν βασιλεῖς χαὶ bb and we shall reign on the earth. oxic, καὶ βασιλεύσουσιν ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς. ᾧ 140. ‘ And they sung ἃ new song.’—The old song, apparently, was the ascription of praise rendered the Supreme Being, as the creator and sovereign of all things, (Rev. iv. 9-11;) “Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive glory, and honour, and power; for thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created.” The new ode, or song, is the song of redemption—the ascription of praise, by the same four living creatures and twenty-four elders, to the same object of worship, as the Redeemer—the Lamb. ‘Thou art worthy,’ &c.—We have already remarked upon the fitness of Christ for developing the divine purpose, from the fact of his having wrought out that purpose by his sufferings and vicarious sacrifice ; by which, indeed, he becomes in effect the instrument of this development, (ὃ 135.) ‘ And hast redeemed us to God,’ &c.—This is the language of the four living creatures, and of the twenty-four elders ; not that the work of Christ had no other object than this, but that this is the subject under consideration here. The elements of truth, represented by these living creatures and elders, have been redeemed from amidst all other elements. The same / elements of truth and revelation which set forth the sovereignty of God, from the fact of his having created all things, set forth also the praise due Him for his free act of mercy, as exhibited in the work of redemption. ‘And hast made us kings and priests: and we shall reign on the earth.’— Here there is a difference in the Greek editions ; some of them, as that of which we are making use, read, as it will be observed, “ and hast made them kings and priests ; and they shall reign.” According to this rendering, we must suppose the living creatures and the elders to be speaking in this verse of the saints, whose prayers filled the golden vials, although they were speaking of themselves in the preceding verse. Or, if we suppose the ” then the - saints would speak of themselves as redeemed, and of the four living crea- 7 tures and twenty-four elders, as constituted kings and priests. We cannot, otherwise, account for the employment of the pronoun us in one case, and them in the other. The rendering of the common version is probably the new song to constitute what is called “the prayers of the saints, THE SEALED BOOK. 35 most correct; the living creatures and the elders being the kings and priests alluded to in this song of praise. As we have elsewhere noticed, the term rendered kings, is sometimes used to denote those who preside over sacred things. The terms,king and priest, may thus be, apocalyptically, nearly equivalents. These elements, or principles are rendered, by the work of redemption, ruling principles—pre- dominating over all others, as kings, and as chiefs, which the term likewise signifies—bringing their respective forces or subordinate principles into the service of God ;—as priests, they promote and maintain the true worship in his temple, in the spiritual sense in which we have already defined that worship. This predominating influence over all the elements of the earthly system, we suppose to be alluded to in the expression, “and we shall reign on the earth.’ Vs. 11, 12. And I beheld, and I heard Kai εἶδον, καὶ ἤκουσα φωνὴν ἀγγέλων the voice of many angels round about the throne, and the beasts [the living crea- tures] and the elders: and the number of } ᾿ ᾿ : Ἢ them was ten thousand times ten thou- μυριάδες μυριάδων Yo “Ζιλιάδες χιλιάδων, sand, and thousands of thousands; saying, λέγοντες φωνῇ μεγάλῃ" ἀξιὸν ἐστι τὸ ἀρνίον with ἃ loud voice, Worthy is the Lamb τὸ ἐσφαγμένον λαβεῖν τὴν δύναμιν καὶ πλοῦ- that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing. ~ , ~ , ~ , πολλῶν κύκλῳ τοῦ ϑρόνου καὶ τῶν ζώων καὶ - ' 3 ‘ ~ τῶν πρεςβυτέρων" καὶ ἢν ὃ ἀριϑμὸς αὐτῶν ‘ ‘ Tov χαὶ σοφίαν καὶ ἰσχὺν καὶ τιμὴν καὶ ’ὔ > δόξαν καὶ εὐλογίαν. ᾧ 141 ‘I beheld, and heard the voice of many angels round about,’ &c.— These angels, messengers, or ministering spirits, are all in some sense con- nected with, or dependent upon the throne, the principle of sovereignty, or that which exhibits the sovereignty of God. Like the four living creatures and elders, we suppose them to be subordinate principles, truths, or elements of truth—innumerable, indeed, but all virtually, or in effect, ascribing worthiness to the Lamb. Perhaps, as attendants of, or about the throne, they may be said to ascribe this worthiness to him more particularly, because it is by his work of redemption that the sovereignty of God is most fully exhibited. ‘Saying, witha loud voice, Worthy is the Lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches,’ &c¢.—This is an ascription of homage in addition to that of the four living creatures and twenty-four elders. The words beasts and elders, in the 11th verse, being governed in the Greek by κύκλῳ, about, and not by φωνήν, voice—many angels round about the throne, and about the beasts and the elders. ‘The throng of angels do not say that they are made kings and priests, but they say that the Lamb is worthy to receive, or rather to take power ; they may be viewed in the light of a chorus. This immense multitude of the heavenly host, being put for the whole, as in the 13th verse, every creature in heaven and in earth, is represented as uttering nearly the same language. Corresponding with the statement of Paul, 36 THE SEALED BOOK. (Phil. ii. 9-11,) « Wherefore God also hath highly exalted him, and given him a name that is above every name: that at the name of Jesus every knee should bow, of things in heaven, and things in earth, and things under the earth; and that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father.” ‘To receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing.’—Here, seven particulars or attributes are enume- rated ; we may presume, not without possessing some peculiar allusion ;— perhaps they may have a relation to the seven horns of the Lamb, consider- ing those horns in the light of crowns; as Jesus is said, Heb. ii. 9, to be crowned with glory and honour. The receiving power, &c., we suppose to be put for receiving the ascription of it. The work of the Lamb had been already accomplished, the only question remaining to be solved being this: By whose power, by whose.iches, by whose wisdom, and by whose strength, has this been accomplished? and to whom do the honour, and glory, and blessing belong? to him, or to some other being? The united testimony of this multitude show that these belong to him—that he is enti- tled to take all the merit and the praise, for the means are his, and the work has been his ; while nearly the same ascription being given to him that sat on the throne, Rev. iv. 11, we cannot do otherwise than consider the two Beings as identic. The power, we may suppose, to be especially the power of God wnto salvation—the propitiation of Christ ; the riches, those durable riches, which furnish the ransom of the sinner ; the wisdom, that by which justice and mercy have been reconciled ; the strength, that of divine righteousness ;—all these are means employed in the work of man’s salvation, and the honour, glory, and blessing, incident to the suecess- ful result of this employment, can be ascribed only to Christ, as the Lord, Jehovah our righteousness—God manifest in the flesh. V. 13. And every creature which is in heaven, and on the earth, and under the earth, and such as are in the sea, and all that are in them, heard 1 saying, Blessing, and honour, and glory, and power, (be) = oe a ~ > ~ . Καὶ πᾶν κτίσμα 0 ἐστιν ἐν τῷ οὐρανῷ καὶ ~ ~ a , - ~ ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς καὶ ὑποκάτω τῆς γῆς, καὶ ἐπὶ - ζ΄ Co» Ν ‘ > ἣν ~ , τῆς ϑαλασσὴης ἃ ἐστι, καὶ TH ἐν αὐτοῖς ττὰν- Pl ' ~ ΄ ταί, ἡκουσὰ λέγοντας: τῷ καϑημένῳ ἐπὶ τοῦ 9 , \ ~ 2 ,] ς A ͵ -: ‘ QOVOU καὶ τῷ ἀρνέῳ ἡ εὐλογία καὶ ἢ τιμὴ unto him that sitteth upon the throne, and Te ΄ ‘ ϑι»ν καὶ ἢ, δόξα καὶ τὸ κράτος εἰς τοὺς αἰῶνας unto the Lamb, for ever and ever. . TOY των». ᾧ 142. ‘And every creature,’ &c.—The very universality of this ascription of praise, shows us that its utterance is to be taken in some quali- fied sense ; as we say, all creation continually uttereth the praise of the Lord. t set forth the cause of praise, is virtually to praise. The wonders of creation Set forth the cause of praise to the Creator, and thus in effect praise him ; as it is said, Ps. cxlviii. 7-10, “ Praise the Lord from the earth, ye dragons THE SEALED BOOK. 31 and all deeps: fire, and hail; snow, and vapour: stormy wind fulfilling his word : mountains, and all hills ; fruitful trees, and all cedars : beasts, and all cattle ; creeping things, and flying fowl.” So, Ps. οχὶν. 10, “ All thy works shall praise thee, O Lord!” In like manner, the elements of the economy of redemption, with all the principles subordinate to to it—of the law, as well as of the Gospel—of condemnation, as well as of justification—all tend to exhibit the cause of praise, in the character and operation of sovereign grace, and thus in effect_praise the Lord. ‘Unto him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb, for ever and ever.’—The peculiarity to be noticed here is, that the adoration described in this verse is represented as offered to two objects ; whereas, in the previous accounts, the ascription of praise is rendered to one of these objects alone. Prior to the taking of the book by the Lamb, the four living creatures are represented as ascribing holiness perpetually to the Almighty God—which ascription is responded to by the prostration and homage of the twenty-four elders. After the taking of the book, the same living crea- tures and the same elders prostrate themselves before the Lamb, singing the new song; and after this, the angels encircling the throne, and encircling the beasts and the elders, offer their homage, apparently as a response to the new song. And finally, this ascription of praise is offered, by all created beings, to God and the Lamb jointly ; which homage to these two objects, as we find from the next verse, is responded to by the Amen of the living creatures ; showing us, that whatever apparent difference there may have been in the objects of the preceding acts of adoration, there is a perfect unanimity of purpose in all engaged in them. We have here three several and successive acts of worship, each con- sisting of two parts—the offering and the response—the first before God, the second before Christ, and the third before God and Christ. The last bringing, as it were, the two preceding acts of worship into one ; and thus preparing us for the final exhibition of that adoration which is due to the one Supreme God ; that is, identifying the Lamb with Him that sits upon the throne, that there may appear thenceforth not two objects of worship, but one only. V.14. And the four beasts said, Amen. And the four and twenty elders fell down and worshipped him that liveth for ever and ever. “Δ Ἢ 1 ' ue 2» > , κ Καὶ τὰ τέσσαρα ζῶα ἕλεγον" ἀμὴν" καὶ ε , » \ , οἱ πρεςβ UTEQOL ἕπεέσαν καὶ προζεχυγησαν. ᾧ 143. “Απά the four beasts said, Amen.’—This may be viewed as the last clause of the preceding verse, and would probably have been better so divided. Every living creature was heard to say, Blessing, and honour, and glory, and power, unto him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb, for ever ; and the four living creatures said, Amen,—So let it be. 38 THE SEALED BOOK, The elements of divine sovereignty, or the .elements-of truth sustaining the principles of God’s sovereignty, are here represented as according to the Lamb, a coequality with him that sitteth on the throne ; that is, according to the Son, a coequality with the Father—conceding to the Lamb a partici- pation in that homage which can be due only to sovereignty. The word be, in the 13th verse, as rendered in our common version, is supplied. There is no verb in the original in its place, and we have as good a right to supply the verb belong, as be. The language of the ascrip- tion may be considered declarative of a fact already existing, not of some- thing that is to be. Adopting the order of the Greek, the passage may be thus read, “ Unto him that sitteth on the throne, and unto the Lamb, blessing, and honour, and glory, and power, belong, for ever and ever ; and the four living creatures said, Amen.” ‘And the four and twenty elders fell down, and worshipped him that liveth for ever and ever.’—Neither Him_on the throne, nor the Lamb, are here mentioned ; but in the place of these two objects of adoration one alone is presented, the Ever-living. 'The inference is unavoidable, that this Ever- living comprehends the two others; God and the Lamb have been exhibited, first, as each entitled to honour; secondly, to be honoured coequally and jointly. They are now spoken of as identic ; the Sovereign on the throne and the Lamb constituting the eternal God; the element of sovereignty and the element of propitiation coalescing in the exhibition here made of the divine character. There is some difference, however, in the Greek editions, as to this text ; that from which we copy omits the words rendered him that liveth for ever and ever ; reading only, ‘“‘ And the four and twenty elders fell down and worshipped ;’ that is, they worshipped Him that sitteth upon the throne, and the Lamb ; thus joining, by their action, in the Amen of the four living creatures, according coequal honours to the two objects in contemplation. The difference is not material, for we have the positive testimony of both the Old and New Testaments, that there are not two objects of worship,—that there cannot be more than one ; and that this one will not divide his glory with another, Consequently, if the Sovereign on the throne and the Lamb be both objects of homage and adoration, they must be @dentic; the apparent difference between them being only assumed for the-tem porary purpose of illustration. The whole process of the manifestation exhibited in this, and the last chapter, corresponding with that described by Paul as resulting in the giving up of the kingdom by the Son unto the Father, that God may be all in all, 1 Cor. xv. 24-28. —— THE SEALED BOOK. 39 RETROSPECT. § 144. Iv will be perceived that the principal scope of this chapter is to show the peculiar worthiness of the Lamb; that is, his fitness to open the sealed book :—this fitness arising from his having been slain, or offered in sacrifice ; from his having accomplished the work of redemption ; and from the fact of his being coequal, and consequently identic, with the divine occupant of the throne. sc saat The Lamb, as it appears, is known to have been slain, and to be entitled to divine honours prior to the opening of the book. These facts simply, therefore, do not constitute the mystery of the book ; but the book, we may presume, contains particulars (the exhibition of truths and principles) connected with these facts, which connection constitutes the peculiar qualification of the Lamb for opening the book. The book we suppose to zant of this purpose ; isin as the eden he has ict it sins or carried it into effect; he is therefore the proper instrument, and the only proper instrument 403 its development. The Revelation, or Apocalypse, now being made, corresponds, we apprehend, with that made to Paul, and to the holy apostles and prophets: “the mystery, which from the beginning of the world hath been hid in God, who created all things by Jesus Christ,” Eph. iti, 3-9. This mystery, preached by Paul and the other apostles, and spoken of in dark sayings by the Psalmist and by the prophets, was exemplified, illustrated, and carried out by Jesus Christ, while in the flesh; but there is a spiritual meaning attached to all that he did, and taught, and suffered ; which meaning he unfolds (through the medium of this Apocalypse) in the person of the Comforter, the Holy Spirit. Speaking of himself as the Lamb, and of the economy, or mystery of redemption, as the Holy City, or Bride; both together constituting that eternal purpose of God, which he purposed i in Christ Jesus our Lord, κατὰ πρόϑεσιν τῶν αἰώνων, ἢν ἐποίησεν ἐν Χριστῷ Ἰησοῦ τῷ κυρίῳ ἡμῶν, Eph. ii. 11.* * The word πρόϑεσις, rendered purpose in this passage, expresses something more than a mere latent design. It is a purpose set forth, or the setting forth of a purpose. In Latin, propositio,i.e., ea argumentationis pars, per quam summatim ostendimus quid sit quod probaturi sumus, (Suiceri. Lex.) That part of an argu- ment in which we set forth summarily what we are about to prove: applied-to the mystery of redemption, it directs our attention to the shew-bread, ἄρτοι προϑέοεως, 12 40 THE SEALED BOOK. Thus far, however, we have only seen the Lamb taking the sealed book ; a knowledge of its contents is to be gathered from the subsequent chapters. In this stage of the representation, the spectacle presented for our contemplation is that of the whole array of the heavenly assembly, described both in this and in the preceding chapter. ‘The throne, the sovereign upon the throne, or rather one representing that sovereign ; for the apostle appears expressly to avoid speaking of the Deity as himself seen. The rainbow above, the seven lamps, and the sea of glass, are all before the throne; while the twenty-four elders round about the throne, and the four living creatures in the midst and round about the throne, are singing the new song. An outer circle of myriads and myriads of angels are offering their tribute of adoration to the Lamb, and all in heaven and earth, and under the earth, and in the sea, are ascribing praise to him that sitteth on the throne, and to the Lamb; to which ascription the four living creatures respond their Amen, while the twenty-four elders also responsively prostrate themselves in the act of adoration. Such is the appearance (wonderful as it is) which may be said to be presented by the background of the picture,—a representation of the operation of elements of truth, existing from all eternity. In the foreground, in front of this assembly, and in the midst of these hallelujahs of every living thing, the LAMB (the Champion) is seen, having seven horns, and seven eyes, possessed of the book;"and about to open the seals thereof. The process of this opening, with the several exhibitions consequent to the breaking of each seal, constitutes the remain- ing action of this mystic drama; interrupted occasionally by the introduc- tion of a chorus, or the voice of some friendly interpreter, attending the apostle, the onlysprivileged mortal permitted to enjoy the spectacle. ‘Thus privileged, however, as—we-find from his own testimony, for the sake of those for whose edification he is directed to commit to writing an account of the extraordinary scenes passing before his eyes. But the apostle is not panes propositionis ; or, according to Hebrews ix. 2, the setting forth of the bread, ἡ πρόϑεσις τῶν ἄρτων. Christ is the bread of life, because the righteousness of God represented in him, and through him imputed to the believer, constitutes the means of eternal life. The means and mode of application constitute the eternal purpose of the Divine mind ; this purpose being set forth in Christ. Such, we think, is the sense of the text quoted from Ephesians; and this proposition, or setting forth, in its most spiritual sense, we suppose to be the design of the Apocalypse. The shew-bread, Christ in the flesh, and this mystic vision, all concurring in the same exhibition of that divine purpose, or plan of sovereign mercy, which we sometimes denominate the economy of grace: “the bride,” or “ wife” of Christ, because identio with him— “the mother of us all,” because by this means we become the children of God. THE SEALED BOOK. 41 to be considered the only witness taking an interest in the representation. The immense assemblage, just now described, constitutes itself an in- numerable multitude of spectators. A portion of the heavenly host are sometimes represented as taking part in the scenes exhibited ; but whether actually engaged or not, the whole multitude, with the elders and the living creatures, must be supposed to be anticipating the several developments with eager expectation, and to be contemplating the scenes presented with the most intense interest. 42 THE SEALS OPENED. Π CHAPTER. VI. THE SEALS OPENED. V. 1. And I saw when the Lamb open- Καὶ εἶδον ots ἤνοιξε τὸ ἀρνίον μίαν ἐκ ed one of the seals, and I heard, as it were τῶν ἑπτὰ σφραγίδων, καὶ ἤκουσα ἑνὸς ἐκ : ᾿ ? f $ the noise of thunder, one of the four beasts, ~ , ΄ ' c A ait : τῶν τεσσάρων ζώων λέγοντος, ὡς φωνὴ βρον- | living creatures, | saying, Come and see. anil PO TE τῆς" EQZOU- § 145. ‘I saw when the Lamb opened the first of the seven seals, and I heard the first of the four living creatures, as with a voice of thunder, saying, Come.’—The words μίαν and ἑνὸς, used in our common version as numerals, if compared with what is said of the opening of the other seals, appear intended here as ordinals, (Rob. Lex. art. εἷς, 194 ;) and if the words καὶ βλέπε, or καὶ ἰδε, found in some editions after ἔρχου, are correctly omitted, as above, the word come appears as a command issued, not to the spectators, but to the object about to exhibit itself{—somewhat in the style of incanta- tion—which idea seems reasonable ; as it would be apparently unnecessary to invite or bid the assembly of spectators to come and see, since they are all supposed to be waiting impatiently for the opening of the seals. The first living creature was like a lion, and it is at his instance that the object about to present itself, on the opening of the first seal, comes forth, or is exhibited, with a call, perhaps, upon the attention of the spec- tators. This first animal we suppose to be the element of divine justice— speaking, as we may say, in a voice of thunder—reminding us of the thun- derings of Sinai: the action of this element is to call forth, or to exhibit that which is about to appear. It being understood throughout, that the Lamb, which had been slain, is the efficient cause of this, and of all the subsequent exhibitions ; the voice calling forth, being a secondary cause. V.2. And I saw, and behold, a white Καὶ εἶδον, καὶ ᾿Ιδοὺ ἵππος λευκός, καὶ ὃ horse: and he that sat onhim had abow; χῳϑήμενος ἐπ αὐτὸν ἔχων τόξον: καὶ ἐδόϑη and a crown was given unto him: and he 2 ~ ' Ἂ ) 4. ~ XV of : ὃ αὐτῷ στέφανος, καὶ ἐξῆλϑε νικῶν καὶ went forth conquering, and to conquer. = it iad pee γικήσῃ. ᾧ 146. “Α white horse.’—The horse of Scripture is generally the war- horse, distinguished for its adaptedness to the purposes either of combat or escape. ‘The warrior of old depended greatly upon his horse, whether in charging an enemy, or in sustaining the shock of an attack ; so, in case of THE FIRST SEAL. 43 defeat, his trust was equally in his horse. This we find to be the case still in Eastern countries ; as it was the case in Christendom in the days of chivalry, till the use of gunpowder, and the introduction of artillery, changed the whole character of military warfare. A horse is thus a scriptural figure of means of dependence for salvation—earthly means, such as one’s own merits or righteousnesses—means of which the human mind is prone to glory. “ A horse,” it is said, Ps. xxxiii. 17, “is a vain thing for safety : neither shall he deliver any by his great strength ;” and Is. xxxi. 1, ‘“‘ Woe to them that go down to Egypt for help, and stay (or depend) on horses, and trust in chariots.” Here, horses are used as in a bad sense ; but we find by the third verse of the same chapter, that there are two kinds of these animals: “ The Egyptians,” and their horses flesh, and not spirit.’ The spiritual horse is a very different being from the animal of which man makes his boast ; when God furnishes the charger and gives power to the rider, it is no vain preparation for battle ; and then, indeed, the neck of the animal may be said to be “clothed with thunder,’ (Job xxxix. 19.) So, too, God’s provision for escaping the wrath to come, is no vain thing for safety. The apocalyptic horse now exhibited, is the opposite of the Egyptian horse—it is spirit, and not flesh. It is God’s means of contending with the elements of legal condemnation—the means furnished by him for contest, the prophet says, “are men, and not God; or, escape—a horse is the sustaining power of the combatant. The sustain- ing power of him who has to contend with the elements of legal condemna- tion, is righteousness, or moral perfection ; the only sufficient power in such a conflict being a perfect righteousness. 'This element of justification, as we have before had occasion to observe, is alluded to in the Apocalypse, under the figure of something white ;—the white horse thus represents the sustain- ing power of divine righteousness, as it is promised, Is. xli. 10, ‘“ Fear not, for I am with thee: be not dismayed, for 1 am thy God: I will strengthen thee ; yea, I will help thee ; yea, I will uphold (sustain) thee with the right hand of my righteousness.” We find no other mention of a white horse in the Revelation, except in chap. xix. 11-21, where the apostle says, ‘“‘ And I saw heaven opened, and behold, a white horse ; and he that sat upon him was called Faithful and True, ’—zor0g καὶ ἀληϑινός ; and where it is expressly declared of the rider, that his name is called the Worp or Gop, ὁ λύγος τοῦ Θεοῦ. The two descriptions are so nearly alike, as to lead us to infer that the rider is the same in both cases. ‘The warrior in the first case is seen to go forth to the battle ; in the last case, he is contemplated as already triumphant in victory. If this supposition be correct, the champion here represented is the Logos,, Christ, as the Word of God, sustained by his own righteousness ; as it is said, Isaiah lix. 16, ‘‘ He saw that there was no man, and wondered 44 THE SEALS OPENED. that there was no intercessor: therefore, his arm brought salvation unto him ; and his righteousness, it sustained him.” § 147. “ And he that sat on him had a bow ;’—z0£or, a bow. The term occurs nowhere else in the New Testament, but it is the same as that applied in the Septuagint translations of the Old Testament to the rambow, when its appearance was assigned to Noah, as a token of reconciliation and peace with God ;—Gen. ix. 13, “I do set my bow in the cloud, and it shall be for a token of a covenant between me and the earth.” The spiritual rainbow we have already contemplated as a display of the com- bination of the imputed righteousness and the atonement of Christ, (¢ 120.) The Gospel exhibition of these combined elements affording the assurance of the reconciliation of an offended God with his rebellious creature man : with this bow, comprehending, as it may, the whole economy of salvation, the Logos, or Word of God, goes forth to overcome the requisitions of the law—to manifest the superiority of Christ’s merits over all other pretensions, and to establish his own glory.* * It is said, (Rob. Lex. p. 417,) of the term logos, as employed John i. 1-14 :— “The word λόγος is used in a manner altogether peculiar, to express that which the writer believed to be divine in the character of Jesus, and united with his human nature. But why the apostle was led to employ, for this purpose, the word λόγος, in preference to any other, has never yet been satisfactorily shown, nor have we the means of determining with certainty.” This is treating the subject somewhat cavalierly, as if the apostle had not been divinely directed in the use of his words; and as if their use in one place had no reference to their employment in other places, by the same writer. Perhaps, we may come at some approximation to the reason in question, by con- sidering, that as the word, or speech, of a man indicates the decision of his mind, so the term logos, or word, in Scripture may indicate the decision of the mind of Deity, —His decree, his fiat, his fixed purpose. It is said of the Almighty, he spake, and jt was done; he commanded, and it stood fast: No one supposes an action of speech to be literally understood here. It is enough that God wills, and all things are done. He is unchangeable, too; His will must have been from everlast- ing. The enunciation of that will, however, may be said to consist in the act of ful- filling it. The purpose of God in the creation of this world, must have been the same in all eternity ; but the enunciation of this purpose did not take place till the purpose itself was fulfilled in the work of creation. The exercise of power in the act of crea- tion, being equivalent to such an enunciation of the purpose ; it is thus figuratively spoken of as an act of speech, bearing some analogy to the announcing of human purposes by an action of the voice. The expression of purpose in words, is man’s speech—the act of performance, is God’s speech. With man, however, the exercise of various organs of the body is required to carry out his purposes. The limbs of man are the instruments for executing his will—with God, the will itself is the power by which his purposes are executed. As the mind of a man is the power acting immediately upon the organs of his own body, so the mind or will of God is the power acting immediately upon every element of the universe, material or immaterial. With God, it would be impossible to separate the mind or will from the decision of THE FIRST SEAL. 45 The use of the bow implies the use of arrows. ‘The bow is the instru- ment of impulsion, but the arrows are the immediate instruments of inflicting the wound ;—the arrows of the Word, or Logos, carry conviction to the heart of the sinner—not only a conviction of his sin, but also that of the utter worthlessness of his self-righteous pretensions ; as alluded to by the royal penitent, Ps. xxxviil. 1, 2, “Ὁ Lord, rebuke me not in thy wrath ; neither chasten me in thy hot displeasure. For thine arrows stick fast in me, and thy hand presseth me sore.” So the same arrows, or emanations of truth, parting from the covenant or economy of grace, are the instruments of over- coming those false principles, or doctrines, the tendency of which is to de- prive the Redeemer of his glory, and of his right to reign; as is implied in the address of David, in spirit, to this same conqueror, on his going forth: ‘ Gird thy sword upon thy thigh, O Most Mighty, with thy glory and thy majesty, and in thy majesty ride prosperously, because of truth, and meekness, and righteousness ; and thy right hand shall teach thee terrible things : thine arrows (are) sharp in the heart of the kings’s enemies ; the people fall under them,” —the king’s enemies being the principles hostile to hisreign, (Ps. xlv. 3-5.) The power of this covenant-bow may be illustrated by what has been related of the success of certain missionaries amongst the Greenlanders. the mind or will; so, as the word of a man is equal to the decision of his mind, the Word of God is equivalent not only to the decision of his mind, but to the mind itself. Hence the divine mind may he properly spokenof as the λόγος, word, or speech, of God— the mind or volition of God, manifested in the works of creation, providence, and redemption. In Christ, the divine mind or purpose, especially in reference to the work of redemption, appeared as having its seat in one like unto the Son of man. The Word was made flesh, was manifested in the flesh ; at the same time, it did not cease to be manifest also in all the works of creation, and in all the operations of an overruling Providence. As the volition, decision, or decree of the mind of God, is the power by which he acts, and as this decision is what is sometimes in Scripture called the Logos, we see, from the nature of its operations, that this mind, or Logos, must be the same power as that at other times spoken of as the Hoty Spirit. The purpose of the divine mind, ‘setting apart a certain being as substituted in Christ, or setting apart any created thing for a peculiar purpose, being the sanctification of that being, or thing. As this setting apart in Christ, is also spoken of under the figure of adoption, and as the purpose of God, exercised in adoption, is identical with the same purpose exercised in sanctification, the power or word must be the same in both cases. The difference being in the figure, or manner of speaking of the things, and not in the things themselves. So election, according to the foreknowledge of God, involving predestination, can be nothing else than the same word, fiat, or purpose of God, set- ting apart or adopting from all eternity, the subjects of his favour. The Spirit or power of Christ, in the vicarious act of substitution, being but the same purpose or will of God under another figure. An illustration of the truth of the observation, that several figures may be employed to represent the same truth without perplexity, but one figure cannot represent several truths without hazard of confusion.—(Vid. Faber on the Prophecies.) AG THE SEALS OPENED. That people had long been familiar with Christianity in the ordinary accep- tation of the term; they had had preachers who set before them the moral requisitions of revealed religion, the certainty of a future judgment, and the fearful consequences of the wrath of the Most High ; but it was not till the atonement or propitiation of Christ was presented to their minds, as the merciful provision of God for convicted sinners, that their hearts were affected, and the stubborn pride of self-sufficiency yielded to the kind invitations of the Gospel. Such we may suppose to be the shafts from the bow of him who sat upon the white horse. The bow, it is true, would be useless without the arrows, but these last owe their power and efficiency to the bow in the hands of him who wields it. But there is still another con- struction of the use of this bow and its arrows. If the contest between this champion and his enemies, be that of the power of intercession with the power of legal condemnation, the shafts, or arrows, are those truths ema- nating from the principle of propitiation which destroy the elements of self- justification or legality, spoken of in the Psalms as the enemies of the king. § 148. « And a crown was given to him.’—Of the rider on the white horse, mentioned in the 19th chapter, it is said that he had many crowns ; but those crowns are diadems, (διαδήματα.) The one crown here spoken of, is the token of success ; the laurel of victory, (ozépavog.) It is said, 1 Kings xx. 11, “ Let not him that girdeth on his hamess, boast himself as he that taketh it off’ This axiom is good, however, only with man ; God needs not to wait the issue of the contest, that he may decide to whom the crown of success is to be given. ‘The rider of the white horse receives the token of success in anticipation ; he goes forth, indeed, but not in doubt: he goes to conquer, and that he may conquer. ‘The will of the Most High is already known—the conqueror goes forth to fulfil that which in the Divine mind is already done. ‘And he went forth conquering and to conquer,’ or, that he might con- quer ; or, as the verb γικάω is elsewhere translated, overcoming. He that sitteth on the white horse, is then he that overcometh ; and the name of him that sitteth on the white horse, is the Word of God, the Logos ; and this Word is Christ, as he manifests himself in the Comforter. His successor, the Spirit of truth, testifying of him, and convincing the world of sin, of righteousness, and of judgment. In the work of salvation, it is Christ only, who overcomes the requisitions of the law by his own menits ; fulfilling the law, and thus releasing the disciple from the bondage of the law. Christ is the word, or sovereign purpose, of God, manifest in the flesh. The sovereign purpose of God is to save, by his own righteousness, all who trust to him. The principle of salvation by imputed righteousness may be thus spoken of as the word or purpose of God, especially in reference to the economy of redemption. This principle is a principle of Christian faith ; and, as such, it THE FIRST SEAL. 4 may be that alluded to by the beloved apostle, when he says, this is the victory which overcometh the world, our faith ; αὕτη ἐστὶν ἡ νίκη ἡ νιχή- σασὰ τὸν κόσμον, ἡ πιστὶς ἡμῶν. The world being supposed to represent the position of the sinner amidst all the requisitions of the law. Referring, appa- rently to this, Jesus says to his disciples, John xvi. 33, “ In the world ye shall have tribulation, but be of good cheer, I have overcome the world ;” ἐγὼ νενίκηκα tov κόσμον, I have conquered the world. Christ himself is the conqueror, and he alone is entitled to the crown. But he conquers by this word, or purpose of God, which is also a principle of our faith ; viz., that in him all righteousness has been fulfilled—that fulfilment being imputed to the believer. It is this principle, we may say then, that’ appears as the conqueror, sustained by Divine righteousness, crowned with the token of the Redeemer’s victory, and using the bow of covenant promises, as the weapon of defence. So, the disciple, enlightened by the knowledge of this truth, in view of all the requisitions of the law, going forth in the trial of his faith, sustained by his dependence upon the imputed merit of his Redeemer, and trusting in the covenant of propitiation, overcomes, in pro- portion to his faith, all his apprehensions even of the fearful threatenings of offended justice. As the blind men, (Matt. ix. 29,) according to their faith, received their natural sight, so the disciple, according to his faith, enjoys this spiritual sight—the sight of God’s salvation. The feeble faith of the most enlightened Christian in this life, can hardly be worthy of supplying a reality for the figure of Him who went forth con- quering and to conquer. ‘The real rider of the white horse must be either the principle of this faith, the purpose of God—the principle of salvation by imputed righteousness—or it must be the Saviour himself, who is the personification of this principle, or purpose—the Word made flesh. As, however, it is the Lamb once slain, who opens the seal by which this exhi- bition is made, the rider of the white horse may be supposed to represent this principle, or fundamental dogma of Christian faith; unless we sup- pose the Lamb, in exhibiting this rider, to reveal himself in his peculiar character of a Conqueror, the Lord our righteousness ;—a supposition accord- ing with our position, that the Apocalypse is a revelation which Jesus Christ makes of Aimself. It is said, indeed, Romans viii. 37, in all these things we are more than conquerors—more than overcomers ; but this, it is added, is through him that loved us. He has laboured, and we have entered into his labours ;—He has achieved the victory, and we in him are accounted victors ;—we obtain a crown, but it is the crown or token of his suecess— of the triumph of his righteousness, and not of ours. The effect, then, of the opening of the first seal, is to exhibit Christ as the Logos, or sovereign purpose of God, going forth in the work of salvation ; sustained by divine righteousness, and armed with the covenant of mercy, 48 THE SEALS OPENED. and already bearmg the token of victory. This exhibition is called forth, or announced, or attention is called to it, by the first living creature, in a voice of thunder ; and this first livmg creature, we suppose to be the element of Divine justice, or legal retribution ;—as we may say, the attribute of perfect justice in the Deity calls forth the Redeemer, and renders the whole economy of redemption indispensable. Or, if we prefer the rendering come and sce, then we say the element of Divine justice is the instrument of call- ing attention to the principle of substitution, or imputed righteousness, with its attendant provisions; the law as a conductor* bringing us to Christ— the terrors of the law being instrumental in persuading men to fly for refuge to the hope set before them. The action of the first living creature, on this occasion, being equivalent to an urgent invitation directed to the sinner to come and see what has been done for his soul. ‘The voice of thunder is fearful, but it is a friendly, a warning voice. If there had been no provision for salvation, the warning would be useless ; but, because a propitiation has been made—because the Lamb has been sacrificed—because a substitute has been furnished, the terrors of the law are invoked to constrain the offender to embrace the proffered reconciliation. The opening of this first seal is thus a very appropriate commencement of what we suppose to be the doctrinal development about to follow ; per- haps it comprises in itself that which is to follow. Christ being revealed in this first development, as the great substitute, sustained by his own righteous- ness, and overcoming the power of the law by the principles of reconcilia- tion emanating from his propitiation ; which exhibition may be said to be the sum and substance of the plan of salvation. Vs. 3,4. And when he had opened the Kat ὅτε ἤνοιξε τὴν σφραγῖδα τὴν δευτέ- eecond seal, I heard the second beast [living creature] say, Come and see [or 3 come]. And there went out another ee a ΝΟ Pe ss horse that was red: and power was given *4¢ τῷ ROO AMEND aware ἐδόϑη oT λα- to him that sat thereon to take peace from βεῖν τὴν εἰρήνην ἐκ τῆς γῆς καὶ ἵνα ἀλλήλους the earth, and that they should kill one σφάϑξωσι, χαὶ ἐδόϑη αὐτῷ μάχαιρα μεγάλη. another: and there was given unto him ἃ great sword. ” - , ol } ραν, ἤκουσα τοῦ δευτέρου ζώου λέγοντος" aetna fois Ε « acl Kai ἐξῆλθεν ἄλλος ἵππος πυρόος" ᾧ 149. The call to come, or to come and see, is now made by the animal like a calf or bullock—the opposite of the lion—the figure representing, as we have supposed, ($ 127,) the provision for propitiating the mercy of God. Because the call is made by this element of mercy, it does not follow, how- ever, that the subject of contemplation is a gratifymg one. Divine mercy * Gal. iii. 24, “The law was our schoolmaster (παιδαγωγός pedagogue) to bring us to Christ.” The pedagogue of the apostle’s time is said to have been an upper domestic, (perhaps a slave,) whose office it was to take the children to school, and to attend to them while there ; when the children bad so learnt, that there was no lon- ger occasion for going to school, there was no further call for the pedagogue. THE SECOND SEAL. 49 calls for an exhibition of the danger to which the criminal is exposed ; so, as the bullock is the opposite of the lion, we may suppose the subject represented by this red horse and his rider to be, in some respect, an oppo- site of that presented by the preceding exhibition. The word translated here red, is formed from the Greek term for fire ; it may signify fiery red, or the colour of fire. As red is the colour of blood, as such alone, it might be considered a figure of something the opposite of peace, or mercy ; so, in the vision of the prophet, Is. lxiii, 2, Christ is repre- sented as red in his apparel. So, too, the Hebrew words Edom and Esau, have an allusion to something red, or vindictive. The adjective συῤῥός, (red,) occurs only in one other place in the Apocalypse, where it is applied to the great red dragon, or serpent ; and it is not to be found in any other portion of the New Testament. A word from the same root is applied, Matt. xvi. 2, 3, to the lowering or threatening appearance of the sky before astorm. ‘The prevailing idea, associated with other formations from this root, is that of fire ; the application of the term to the colour named, having also, no doubt, arisen from the red appearance of a very strong fire. The going forth of this fiery red horse, thus reminds us of the prediction, Malachi iv. 1, “‘ Behold, the day cometh that shall burn as an oven; and all the proud, yea, and all that do wickedly, shall be stubble: and the day that cometh shall burn them up, saith the Lord of hosts, that it shall leave them neither root nor branch.” The effect of this coming is described at the close of the preceding chapter, to be a certain discrimination between the right- eous and the wicked—between him that serveth God, and him that serveth him not. So, also, the fury of him that cometh from Edom, is said to uphold him, Is. lxiii. 5; as the righteousness of the intercessor was before said to sustain him. The fiery red horse, then, we may conclude to be an exhibi- tion of the power of unappeased justice, to sustain the element represented by its rider ; equivalent to what may be termed a spiritual discernment of the requisitions of Divine justice, &c., Rom. vii. 10-14. Τί, however, we substitute the term fiery-coloured for red—“ and there went out another horse, fiery-coloured””—our attention will be directed more particularly to the fiery trial, or trial by fire—< trying every man’s work ;’”—a trial of doctrines and of doctrinal elements; for which also the great sword, or sword of the Spirit, is to be employed—the taking peace from the earth showing the inconsistency of false opinions. § 150. ‘ And to him was given to take peace from the earth, and that they should kill each other. —The earth we suppose to represent the posi- tion of man under the law, dependent upon his own merits, his own works, for eternal life—eating his bread by the sweat of his brow: the self- righteous principles, sustaining this position, being the wicked, to be burned by the oven of Malachi, or by the fire of a revelation of truth. Meantime, 50 THE SEALS OPENED. these principles, the elements of this earthly position, are brought into con- tinual collision with each other, whenever tried by the exhibition of trath— their inconsistency, their variance, is manifested—there is found to be no peace, or concord, between them: “ There is no peace, saith the Lord, to the wicked,” Is. xlvii. 22. That is, as if the elements of a self-righteous system were a company of evil doers. ‘Think not that I come to send peace on earth,” said Jesus; “I came not to send peace, but a sword,” Matt. x. 34; or, as it is expressed Luke xii. 49-53, “1 am come to send fire on the earth.” . . . “Suppose ye, that I am come to give peace on the earth? I tell you nay, but rather division ;’”—a division illustrated under the figure of family dissensions. Accordingly we find, although the birth of Jesus was announced, (Luke ii. 14,) as the harbinger of peace, that, ever since his advent, the matter of religion has been more a subject of dis- sension and contention than it ever was before; not merely in respect to animosities between man and man, but more especially in respect to the variety of contending principles, doctrines, dogmas, and elements of doc- trines, more and more exhibiting a collision amongst themselves. The truth of revealed religion calls out and exposes the inconsistencies of these ele- ments of earthly systems of salvation; systems professedly Christian, but founded upon a basis as opposite to that of the Gospel, as the earth is an opposite of heaven. Jesus, indeed, gives peace to his followers—peace with God ; but it is not the peace of self-justification, or of a reconciliation effected by the works or merits of men: “‘ My peace I leave with you,” he says; ‘‘not as the world giveth, give I unto you.” His peace is the peace of sovereign grace—the peace he brings is that resulting from the good will of God toward men, manifested in the work of redemption.* * In a Jiteral sense, there has been no peace on earth since the time of Cain, Man has always been a foe to his fellow-man. Nations have always been hostile to each other. ‘The peace here spoken of, as to be taken away, is not a political peace, It is that peace which Christ has procured through his propitiatory sacrifice— the peace spoken of, Rom. v. 1, as the result of the sinner’s justification—the reconciliation to God by the blood and cross of Christ, described Eph. ii. 13-16. Wherever the Christian dispensation is regarded as one of justice merely—an economy of rewards and punishments, instead of an economy of grace—this peace is taken away as soon as the understanding of the sinner is opened to a conviction of his guilt, of the impurity of his motives, and of the imperfection of his best services. The morality of the divine law extends to the thoughts and intents of the heart, and thither the sword of the Spirit penetrates. On the other hand, it is unquestionable that the influence of Christianity has ameliorated the political condition of the world. The frequency of national contests has been less, and the conduct of them has been less bloody and cruel since the general diffusion of the Christian faith, than previous to its promulgation. In this sense, Christ may be said to have brought even political peace, and not the sword ; but this, it is evident, is not the sense in which he spoke in allusion to the subject of peace. THE THIRD SEAL. 51 The rider of the fiery-red horse is, however, to take peace from the earth, or out of the earth. The exhibition of truth, showing the exact and unrelenting requisitions of justice—of which the going forth of this rider is a figure—manifests that there is no peace, or reconciliation, with God to be found in these earthly systems, or these systems of earth; the want of peace, or concord, between the different elements, alluded to above, being figuratively spoken of as their killing each other, or mutually sacrificing each other, as the Greek term implies. § 151. ‘To him was given a great sword.’—This great sword might be put for great division; as we see in the two passages above quoted from Matthew and Luke, the sword is put in one, for what is termed division in the other; but it appears more in accordance with the style of Scrip- ture, to give to every particular its peculiar force. Here are three par- ticulars, which we can hardly suppose to be mere synonyms. The rider on the fiery-red horse had power to take peace from the earth—those that are on the earth are to kill each other; and besides this, a great sword is given to this rider. It seems most probable, that this great or powerful weapon is the sword of the Spirit spoken of by Paul, (Heb. iv. 12, Eph. vi. 17,)—the word of God. That is, the word of God in its most spiritual sense—the mind of God, the power of discerning between the natural and spiritual sense of the revealed word—a power sharper than any two-edged sword. With this sword, the warrior on the red horse searches into the mo- tives of actions, as well as into the nature of the actions—detecting, dis- cerning, and exposing the intents and thoughts of the heart ; and thus con- vineing the world of sin, showing the impurity and selfishness of human motives, and the impracticability of obtaining peace with God by works of righteousness of man’s performance ; the same Spirit of truth which mani- fests himself a comforter to the disciple of Jesus, being the judge and inves- tigator, convincing the world of sin. The rider of these two horses is thus the same Divine power exhibited under two different aspects. As the ele- ment of justice calls forth an exhibition of the provision of Divine mercy, the element of propitiation requires the presence of the provision for the conviction of sin, showing that by the deeds of the law no flesh can be jus- tified: the going forth of these two combatants, although successive in the representation, being simultaneous in effect. V.5. And when he had opened the Καὶ ors ἤνοιξε τὴν σφραγῖδα τὴν τρίτην, third seal, I heard the third beast [living ἤχουσα τοῦ τρίτου ζώου λέγοντος " ἔρχου. creature] say, Comeand see. AndIbe- 4» 35 oi) Yriroe ullac! sate held, and lo, a black horse ; and he that sat re et hy a κώμας [πὴ a eo ἐκ on him hada pair of balancesinhishand, MS ἐπ ἄὐτὸν ἔχὼν Suyoy ἕν τῇ χξειρὺ αὖ- τοῦ" ᾧ 152. ‘ The third living ογθαΐαγθ.᾽--οὐ 8 have supposed the animal with the man’s face to represent the mind or reason of Divinity—as an animal with 39 THE SEALS OPENED, a man’s face would be supposed to be endued with the faculty of reason. Perhaps, as one of the elements of sovereignty about the throne, we may suppose it to represent the wisdom of God, or the element of wisdom itself. Wisdom calls forth the exhibition now to be made, or directs special atten- tion to it. ‘And lo, a black horse.’—Black is the opposite of white. Blackness and darkness are coupled together in Scripture—darkness being the oppo- site of light. Light, or whiteness, we have assumed to be figurative of moral perfection, or righteousness ; so blackness and darkness are figures of the absence of such perfection. Hence blackness, as of sackcloth, is a token of repentance, humiliation, or conviction of a want of righteousness ; and darkness is a corresponding figure of despondency, from a sense of guilt —a state from which every ray of hope or comfort is excluded. The black horse is apparently an opposite of the white horse. The rider of the black horse depends for his power upon something representing an entire lack of righteousness. At the same time the colour reminds us of the condition of those who are groping in darkness, and have no light ; not having yet come to the knowledge of the truth of salvation by grace alone. ‘ And he that sat on him.’—The rider of the black horse is furnished with no weapon, other than a pair of balances, or, as the Greek term might be rendered,a yoke. ‘The difference will not be material in the construction we propose to give. A yoke for a pair of oxen, has some resemblance to a pair of balances ; and the use of the balances, as they are designed here, causes the figure not to differ much from a yoke. A pair of seales, or balances, is a common equipment for a representation of justice ; justice being supposed to balance exactly what is put into one scale, by that which is placed in the other. Having already supposed the lion to represent the attribute of Divine justice, we cannot consider this figure upon the black horse with the balances as representing precisely the same thing ; but we may suppose it to represent the element of law—the standard of duty—that which defines the rule ; weighing in the balance the requisition on the one side, and the fulfilment on the other—that law which proved to be a yoke of servitude under the old dispensation, (Gal. v. 1, Acts xv. 10,) and is still so to all subjected to it. As the third living creature calls atten- tion to this figure with the pair of balances, so wisdom exhibits to every rational being in creation the law, or standard of moral right or wrong 3 corresponding with the dictates of prudence, that he who builds should count the cost ; and he who goes into battle should compare his forces with those of his enemy, before it be too late. ‘The law depends for its power upon the short comings of those subjected to it. Wherever the law is fulfilled it loses its ascendency: it can require nothing more. So the rider here, with the THE THIRD SEAL. 53 balances, is sustained by something representing man’s want of that right- eousness, necessary to fulfil all that the law, or standard of good and evil, demands. The going forth of this rider may thus be equivalent to that manifestation of the Holy Spirit which is to convince the world of sin; a going forth which is also simultaneous with that of the conqueror, and of the rider on the fiery horse. V. 6. And I heard a voice in the midst καὶ ἤχουσα φωνὴν ἐν μέσῳ τῶν τεσσά- of the four beasts [living creatures] say, ρων ζώων λέγουσαν" χοῖνιξ σίτου δηναρίου, A measure of wheat for a penny, and σε tn ee three measures of barley for a penny; 7 ἐξῇ ΞΖ ΐ $x PA cuted . and (see) thou hurt not the oil and the ἔλαιον καὶ τὸν οἶνον μὴ ἀδικήσῃς. wine. § 153. This voice is said to be in the midst of the four living creatures, and the four living creatures were in the midst of the throne, and round about the throne; and from the throne itself, it is said, lightnings, and thun- derings, and voices proceeded. ‘The throne being the habitation of justice and judgment, and these four living creatures representing principles intimately connected with this tribunal, a voice from such a source, ora principle found in such a connection, must be something of a judicial character. Thus we may presume the four elements of Divine sovereignty, represented by the living creatures, however opposite they may be in their action one to the other, as must be the case with the elements of justice and mercy, all accord in magnifying the law, and making it honourable, by appealing as it were with a common voice to the standard or rule of judgment—proclaiming it as by an edict from the throne. It has been no uncommon thing for governments to control, and even to monopolize the trade in grain, and to regulate the price of bread. Wheat and barley being materials for making bread ; and bread being, as we have before shown, ($ 65,) a figure of the means of eternal life; the edict here published is, in a spiritual sense, the enunciation of the exact requirements of the law, as to the only legal means of salvation. This edict coming from the throne, emanates like the law from Mount Sinai, from a source distin- guished for the fearful paraphernalia with which it is said to be attended. ‘A measure of wheat for a penny, and three measures of barley for a penny.’—If the price here mentioned were a very low price, indicative of great plenty, we might suppose the purport of this edict to be equivalent to that of the Gospel invitation, by the mouth of the prophet, to buy and eat without money and without price. We are to take into consideration, how- ever, that, in the days of the apostles, a penny was considered the fair price of a day’s labour. On the other hand, the word translated measure, χοῖνιξ, is supposed to be equal to about a quart ; and the Roman denarius, (4 ηνά- gtor,) a penny, according to some, to be equal to 73 d. sterling ; according to 54 THE SEALS OPENED. others, 9} cents; (see Rob. Lex. 141, 829.) A quart of wheat for 10 to 15 cents our money, or a quart of wheat for a day’s labour, would not be con- sidered very cheap. But as this quantity of wheat was considered a daily allowance for one man, the edict is equal to a proclamation assigning to every labourer his daily subsistence for his daily labour. The relative price of barley is indicative of the same just discrimination. ‘The ideas of plenty or scarcity have no share in the illustration. ‘The standard of prices is just that of the old rule under the law: by the sweat of thy brow shalt thou eat bread. Under the law, nothing was obtainable but upon the principle laid down to Cain: “If thou doest well, shall it not be accepted?” If thou doest not well, by the same rule, is it not for thee to take the consequences ? Under the law, every transgression and disobedience receiving a just recom- pense of reward, (Heb. ii. 2.) The price of the great necessary of life being thus fixed, the representa- tive of public justice goes forth with his balances, to weigh, to give out exactly, in conformity with the rule of law. ᾧ 154. There are those who, like the fratricidal Cain, offer the earthly fruits of their own pretended merits as sacrifices of propitiation. They conduct themselves upon the mercenary principle of receiving precisely the recompense to which they suppose their own work entitles them. Actuated by this spirit they live to themselves as essentially as did the Babylonish monarch, who was weighed in the balances and found wanting ; the sword of the Spirit exposes their real motives,—the thoughts and intents of their hearts. Their only object is their own glory, and their own well being—the love of self is the ruling motive of their conduct. 'To such, suppose the rule of law to be applied, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength. Here, even in their obedience to this first commandment, they are found wanting ; they are not able even here to furnish their penny for their daily supply of food, still less to furnish that which is to ransom their souls, or to lay up for them the provision of eternal life. It is the office of divine wisdom to exhibit this rule of law ; not only so, it proclaims the value of the great essential of eternal life. The law requires a perfect righteousness, and like a powerful despot it keeps in subjection all incapable of meeting this requirement. In the figure presented in the Apocalypse, the edict of prices is equiva- lent to an enunciation of the Law ; the balances, as the means of trying the merit of all pretensions, occupy the place of the fire, which is to try every man’s work. The rider on the black horse we may suppose to be that Spirit, or power of truth, which applies these rules, and this instrument of trial, to the consciences of all—an action equal to the application of the texts, “The soul that sinneth it shall die ” “The wages of sin is death ;” THE FOURTH SEAL. 55 “There is not a just man upon earth that doeth good and sinneth not.”— Though a man keep the whole law, with but one exception, in that single offence he is guilty of all. ‘And see thou hurt not (or do no wrong to) the oil and the wine.’— A caution apparently not to allow the elements of the gospel to be ap- proached in conducting this judicial process ; as if it were said to the self- righteous, or self-sufficient, ‘ You prefer being treated on your own merits ; you would have your own righteousness weighed in the scale against the price of eternal life; you have heard the conditions,—now come to the trial: but see that you do not lean to the very gospel principles you despise.’ Oil was used amongst the Hebrews as a sign, in setting apart certain persons to a particular office. Thus, kings and priests were set apart, or sanctified, by the use of oil; hence, the sign of this setting apart seems to be figuratively put for the setting apart or sanctification itself. To be set apart in Christ, or to be sanctified in him, is obviously the greatest cause of rejoicing ; and hence it is spoken of as the ot! of joy ;—the sinner mourn- ing under a depressing sense of his sin, when able by faith to trust to this setting apart in Christ, rejoices in that spiritual wnction with joy unspeak- ~ able. So, as by the power of Jesus, the element of purification was trans- formed to the wine of a marriage feast, the atonement—his own propitiation for the ablution of sin—becomes the element of making glad the heart of man, not only for time but for eternity. ‘These gospel means of salvation, however, are not to be trespassed upon by those who come to the bar of divine judgment, to be tried upon their own merits. They depend solely upon what they have to offer themselves, and out of their own mouths, and by their own rules, they must be weighed in the balance: or at least such must be the trial by which the doctrines supporting these pretensions are to be tried and judged. Vs. 7, 8. And when he had opened the καὶ ὅτε ἤνοιξε τὴν σφραγῖδα τὴν τετάρ- fourth seal, I heard the voice of the fourth την, ἤκουσα φωνὴν τοῦ τετάρτου ζώου λέ- beast say, Come and see, [or come.] And ον . 3 4, δέξο ὦ : I aioe behold, a — — : and Ζόντος" ἔρχου. Καὶ εἰδον, καὶ ἰδοὺ ἵππος his name that sat on him was Death, and χλωρός, καὶ ὃ καϑήμενος ἐπάνω αὐτοῦ, ὄνο- hell followed with him. μα αὐτῷ 0 ϑάνατος" καὶ ὃ ἅδης ἠκολούϑει μετ αὑτοῦ. § 155. ‘I heard the fourth living creature 58γ.᾿-- Τρ animal by which this exhibition is ushered forth is that like a flying eagle, supposed to represent the Holy Spirit in the office of Comforter; as the eagle bears up its young in its flight, or protects them with its wings. Here the parental care of the Holy Spirit may be supposed to be exercised in pointing out the imminent danger, calling for the protection provided—the inevitable judicial death and condemnation to which the sinher is exposed. 13 56 THE SEALS OPENED. ‘ And lo, a pale horse.’—The word translated pale, χλωρός; is elsewhere rendered green ; as Matt. vi. 39, Rev. viii. 7, green grass : and Rev. ix. 4, “every green thing.” This Greek term occurs nowhere else in the New Testament, and in the Septuagint it is cited only to express the colour, green. The reason for rendering the word pale in our translation, may be, that the term is supposed to be applicable to pale green ; but grass green is not pale green, and we find it as much used in the description of dark green colours as of light. Our translators would probably say, that no one had ever seen a green horse, and, therefore, this could not be green; but they might as well say, that no one had seen an animal with seven heads and ten horns, and therefore the description in the Greek of the great red dragon should be rendered by some other terms.* Green, however, is the colour here, and there must be as much reason for the green colour of this horse, as there is for the black, red, and white of the other horses. Metaphorically, green may be put for fresh, and. signify strength ; or, if it be a yellowish green, it may be put for fear, or something of a pallid colour; but according to the Septuagint, this word χλωρός, so far from signifying a pallid colour, is applied to a green flourishing tint, in oppo- sition to a fading, or pale hue. It is not only applied to herbs, grass, and trees, it is used for them ; as Gen. ii. 5, and Deut. xxix. 23, (see Trommii Concord. 687.) The colour of a thing, in Scripture, is frequently put for the thing itself; as Gen. xxv. 30, give me some of that red, (that is, red pottage.) So, red is put for blood, white for light, and black for sackcloth. Grass, or herbage, generally is the covering of the earth, it is also the food furnished by the earth and it is strictly and immediately a product of the earth. Its beauty, and its goodness, are but transient; in the morning it springeth up, in the evening it is cut down and withereth: as it is said, “‘ The grass withereth, and the flower thereof fadeth.”” So, a drought destroys its nutritious quali- ties—it is incapable of withstanding the scorching heat of the sun. In all these particulars, there is an analogy between this green clothing of the earth and the pretended clothing of self-righteousness. Man weaves a gar- ment of salvation, as he supposes, of his own merits, which endures but for a little time, and then vanishes away. The manifestation of the sun of righteousness is as the scorching heat to it—it is incapable of standing in the day of trial, when the fire of revealed truth burns as an oven.t It is * “ And I looked, and beholde a grene horsse, and his name that sat on him was Deeth.”—( The Tyndale version of 1534, according to Bagster’s Hexapla.) + The fruits of the ground appear to have been set apart, under the law, as thank-offerings, representing the sacrifices of gratitude offered in return for favours already received; but as sacrifices of propitiation, they were of no avail; for without shedding of blood, there is no remission of sin. So the good works of the believer, as THE FOURTH SEAL. 57 incapable, too, of furnishing the means of eternal life. Instead of sustaining the sinner, it sustains and gives power to the principles of his everlasting destruction. Thus the power, or horse, represented in this exhibition, is a figure of the power or tendency of self-righteous systems. This horse is distinguished by the clothing, the covering, the uniform, or livery, of these systems. ‘The rider of this horse is sustained by this tendency of man’s self-justification ; as the rider of the white horse was sustained by the oppo- site principle of justification by the righteousness of Christ. § 156. ‘ And his name that sat on him was Death.’—This is not a per- sonification of natural death. The mere separation of the spirit from the body*is not the subject of contemplation. In an ordinary sense, death has power over the whole earth. Here we find, in the last clause of the verse, power is said to be given to death and hell, or to death alone, over only the fourth part of the earth; and Rev. xx. 14, death and hell are spoken of as being cast into the lake of fire—an end in no sense applicable to that death which is the common lot of mortals. When our Lord says, (John vii. 51,) “If ἃ man keep my saying, he shall never see death,” we know that it is not of the separation of the spirit from the body, in a literal sense, that he is speaking. So, when Paul says, Rom. vii. 9, ‘For I was alive without the law once, but when the com- mandment came, sin revived, and I died,’ we know that he does not speak of natural death ; as, also, when he says afterwards, “ Sin, taking occasion by the commandment, deceived me, and by it slew me.” There is a death, then, in a spiritual sense, somewhat analogous to natural death, and like this it may be spoken of both as cause and effect. We say of a poison, that it produces death, and we say of a person deceased, that he is taken away by death. We personify natural death as an actor, and term him the grim monster, and the king of terrors; while at the same time we understand this same death to be the effect of a prior cause. The apostle Paul speaks of death, in a spiritual sense, as a consequence of sin, while the apostle John speaks here apparently of the same death as a power, or cause. The death spoken of by Paul, is a result of the intro- duction of the law, and such a result we know to be liability to condemna- tion. Where there is no law, there can be no such liability. When the law sacrifices of gratitude, are good and acceptable unto God ; but if offered as means of propitiation, they are of no avail, for they can have no merit in themselves. The righteousness and atonement of Christ, (as the fat and blood of the firstling of the flock,) are the only sacrifices of faith acceptable to God, as means of reconciliation with him. But the believer’s works of love, or rather of gratitude, are living sacrifices to be offered in return for all His mercies, (see Ps. exvi. 12; Rom. xii. 1.) Such we may suppose to be the difference between the offerings of Cain and Abel; or such the difference typically illustrated in the account given of these sacrifices.’ 58 THE SEALS OPENED. has been transgressed, a position under it is not only one of liability, but it is equal to certain condemnation—the sentence only not being passed. Death, therefore, may be sometimes used as a figure of the state of actual condemnation, as well as of liability to condemnation. So, Rom. vii. 1, it is said, There is therefore no condemnation to them which are zn Christ Jesus, who walk not after the flesh, but after the Spirit—that is, there is therefore no liability to condemnation ; the apostle referring to what he had spoken of as the body of this death, in the preceding chapter—a declaration throwing light upon the words of Jesus Christ just now quoted: ‘If a man keep my saying, he shall never see death.”’ So long as the disciple places his trust in the salvation wrought out for him by Jesus Christ, he will not see himself in the position of liability to condemnation. Chnist having ful- filled the law for his followers—in their behalf—no sooner is the law thus fulfilled for them, than their liability under it to condemnation is removed. They are thus through him delivered from the body of this death. This liability to condemnation, spoken of by Paul as an effect of the coming in of the law, is personified in the Apocalypse as a cause, or power ; and its sustaining principle is that of man’s dependence upon his own merits ; for ifa man be not dependent upon his own merits, or works, he cannot be in this position of liability to condemnation. Death, therefore, is represented as a power, seated on a war-horse, clothed in the colour or uniform of self- righteousness ; a clothing representing a system of human merits—a clothing as vain and transient as the grass of the earth. Such is death upon the green horse: the power of this death, or liability to condemnation, resting upon the position of man’s dependence upon his own merits. ‘This power goes forth to contend with the word of God—the rider upon the white horse :—the word of God which we are assured is to endure for ever, (1 Pet. 1. 25.) There is, therefore, no condemnation, or liability to condemnation, to them that are in Christ Jesus, although out of him there is every thing to fear. The contest in contemplation, as we have before intimated, being not one between the Saviour and the sinner ; nor between the Creator and his human creatures ; but a contest between the elements of justice or condemnation on one side, and the elements of mercy or redemption on the other side. § 157. ‘And hell followed with him,’—or more correctly, and Hades followed with him. There are two Greek words translated Hell, in our common version of the New Testament, ἅδης, Hades, and γεέννα, Gheenna. The first only occurs in the Apocalypse, and this but four times, and in all coupled with death. In the epistles it occurs but once, 1 Cor. xv. 55, where we have rendered it the grave. Like death, it is said, Rev. xx. 14, ..to be itself cast into the lake of fire. We cannot, therefore, take it to be an appellation of that place of punishment to which the term is generally applied; neither can we suppose it to express the same thing as death, THE FOURTH SEAL. 59 although it probably does express something very intimately connected with death. As there is a natural and a spiritual sense in which the term Death is used in Scripture, so we may suppose the term Hades to be used in the same two senses; the natural sense being that applied to the state of an individual after death, whatever that state may be,—equivalent to what we mean by the grave, when we speak of it as the house appointed for all living. ‘The spiritual sense is the state of being, or position, subsequent and consequent to that of liability to condemnation; that is, it is the position of actual condemnation—judgment having been passed. Accord- ingly, viewing man as a transgressor of the law—and there is none that is not so—the position of death and that of hell, in respect to man, are in- separable. We could hardly say that the last follows after the first ; but we should rather say, as it is expressed here, the last follows with the first, —as the Greek preposition, meta, with a genitive, is said sometimes to express with, in the sense of aiding, assisting, or being on the same side: (Rob. Lex. 443)—the power of liability to condemnation, and the power of actual condemnation, both operating and co-operating in opposition to the Saviour’s work of redemption. If it could bé supposed that man’s position under the law were a case of doubtful issue, the accused liable indeed to condemnation, but perhaps able to justify himself, then we should perceive the difference between the position of death and that of hell. In the perpetual sight of his omniscient Judge, we cannot suppose a moment’s interval between the sinner’s liability to condemnation, and the actual passing of judgment upon him. But we may suppose man under the law liable to condemnation, and thus in the position of death—under the power of death:—a Mediator appears, interposes his own merits as a plea in behalf of the sinner; he that was liable to condemnation is thus justified and protected against this consequence of his former desperate condition. He is saved from hell or Hades; that is, he is saved from the position of condemnation, which, but for this Mediator, must inevitably have attended the position of liability to which he had been subjected. It will be perceived that the power of Hades thus grows out of that of death; the last involves the first, and the first, where man is concerned, inevitably generates the last ; hence they may be well used as convertible terms, and hence the power of both depends upon the same principle of man’s dependence upon his own merits, or works. It is not said that they sere both riders upon the green horse, but they both depend for their suc- cess, or their prospect of victory, upon the same system of self-righteousness ; as, in ancient military tactics, a foot-soldier and a horseman were associated together, that they might assist and protect each other; the horse of the 60 THE SEALS OPENED. equestrian, although mounted only by one of the combatants, was the common support of both. So far, then, we perceive the Comforter (the fourth living creature) exhibiting or calling attention to the sinner’s liability to condemnation under the law, and to the actual condemnation attending this liability, whenever they are supported by the system of man’s dependence upon his own merits, or wherever they are sustained by the principle of self-nghteousness. N. B. The construction here given to the term Hades, does not shut out the idea of a state of future punishment; it supposes only that state to be subsequent to the position of condemnation. ‘The sinner may be said to be in Hades even in this life, being in the sight of God actually condemned, (John iii. 18 ;) but the punishment consequent to this condemnation, unless mercy be extended, must take place in another state of existence. The term Hades occurs but in six other places of the New Testament, besides those already noticed. In Acts ii. 27 and 31, it is a quotation of the words of the Psalmist—‘'Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell,” and may be taken in either or both senses. In Matt. xi. 23, xvi. 18, and Luke x. 15, and xvi. 23, it is apparently to be taken im what we call the spiritual sense. Throughout the Old Testament death and hell afe used nearly as convertible terms; in some places both are personified, not as places or accidents, but as powers. The gates of death and the gates of hell are both met with; the term gates being put for tribunals of judgment, from the ancient custom of administering judgment at the gate of a city: as, to meet an adversary in the gate, (Ps. cxxvii. 5,) was to meet him in a court of justice ; to sit in the gate, (Ps. Ixix. 12,) was to be a judge. The position of Hades might be further spoken of as one of perfect helplessness, and conviction of helplessness; as a criminal under sentence of death, awaiting only his execution, without a ray of hope from any process of law, has given up all thought of defence—the law and the judge have done their part—the sovereign only can exercise the prerogative of mercy, unless some voice be heard equal to that of an Almighty Redeemer : “Deliver him from going down to the pit: I have found a ransom,” (Job Xxxiil. 24;) or the position of Hades may itself be equivalent to that of the pit—the miry pit—the pit without a bottom, or the bottomless pit. V. 8, continued.—And power was given καὶ ἐδόϑη αὐτοῖς ἐξουσία ἐπὶ τὸ τέταρ-. σαῖς them over. the four part of the τον τῆς is, ἀποιτῆναι & Gouge κι ὦν hunger, and with death, and with the “'* | beasts of the earth. τῆς YUS- ᾧ 158. Some editions read, power was given to him, that is, to Death ; but the connection between the two is so intimate, and one is so involved ~ - ~ λιμῷ καὶ ἐν ϑανάτῳ καὶ ὑπὸ τῶν ϑηρίων THE FOURTH SEAL. ᾿ 61 in the other, as we have seen, that this difference in the reading is im- material. ‘The power of Hades is a consequence of that of death, and the power of death would be inconsequential if it were not for that of Hades. Whatever may be the difference of editions, in other respects, they are all agreed in the reading, τὸ τέταρτον τῆς yjg—the fourth of the earth—the word part being supplied by our own translators. No suggestion seems to have been made, nor is there any foundation for supposing, that the words, the fourth part, should be the four parts ; as human wisdom would very probably have dictated, if it had not been for the special injunction at the close of the book, so evidently designed to protect the text, (Rev. xxii. 18, 19.) Death, in a literal sense, has power over the whole of the earth, and the four means here enumerated, for exercising that power, appear to be so many classifications under which all kinds of death may be arranged. Death by violence of man, death by violence of other animals, death from want of any kind, death by accident or disease—death and hell being even described as having power to kill with death itself, which alone com- prises every cause of mortality. It is evident, therefore, that the natural or literal sense is not here contemplated, except so far as some analogy or comparison may be drawn from it. First—To kill by the sword, we may suppose to be an allusion to the action of the sword of the Spinit, “ piercing to the dividing asunder’’—show- ing the difference between the natural and spiritual understanding ; and show- ing the liability to condemnation, by an exhibition of the motives of conduct. Second— Hunger, representing the destitution of righteousness, or merit, when manifested, must equally exhibit the sinner’s position of condemnation. Third—Death, from sickness, or what we call natural causes, in the same way may afford a figure of the condemnation of the sinner, neces- sarily arising from the depravity of man’s heart, and the waywardness of all his affections. And fourth—The action of the beasts of the earth, (ϑηρία,) we may suppose to represent the operation of the unclean and destructive principles of self-justification—principles, by which even those depending upon the sustenance of the earthly system must meet their condemnation. The term earth, we have already had occasion to allude to as a figura- tive expression for some exhibition of doctrines, or principles, or a position resulting from such an exhibition—the opposite of the heavenly scheme ;— the earth displaying the works of man, as the heavens display those of God. The earth, too, with the things which are therein, being that which is transi-. tory ; while the heavens, in a natural sense, exhibit something of a more permanent character. That death, or that death and Hades should reign over the fourth part of the earth only, is evidently something of a mystic 62 THE SEALS OPENED. character. There must be something peculiar in the sense, in which this fourth is to be taken ; as we shall see hereafter there must be also in what is elsewhere said of the third or third part. ᾧ 159. As we have already noticed, the term part is not in the original. Any other appropriate word might be supplied ; and none in a literal sense can be less appropriate here, than that which our translators have adopted. Suppose, instead of this, we substitute the word kingdom. 'To them, or to him, was given power over the fourth kingdom of the earth, to slay, &c. The kingdoms of the earth, in a spiritual sense, must be opposites of the kingdom of heaven, being earthly systems or economies—spiritual powers, somewhat analogous to literal powers. Suppose the fourth kingdom of the earth, spoken of by Daniel, (ch. vii. 23,) to represent one of these systems, - stronger, and more powerful, in human estimation, than any other. Man seeth not as God seeth. In the times of the apostles, (Acts viii. 10,) a mere sorcerer gave himself out as some great one, and “ to him the people gave heed, saying, This is the great power of God.’ So it is in systems ; and such we may suppose to be the kingdom, or system, we have in view, in human estimation. In the vision of the prophet, Zech. vi. 3, the fourth chariot was drawn by grizzled horses, spotted, and of various colours, like the garment of the beloved child of the patriarch, (Gen. xxxvil. 3;) a figure, perhaps, of the garment of various merits, with which every man in imagination arrays his own peculiar goodness—the idol of his spiritual affections. Spotted, or patched garments, and spotted animals, we may suppose to have some rela- tion to principles of salvation, n which the merits of man are interwoven, as we may say, with those of his Saviour. The chariots seen by the prophet were war-chariots, and thew horses war-horses : both of them representing human means of dependence, in the great contest with the principle of legal condemnation ; a war-chariot, with its horses, being equivalent, in a spiritual sense, to a kingdom of the earth. We may suppose, then, this fourth kingdom of Daniel to represent an earthly system of salvation—a real amalgamation of earthly principles with heay- enly ; a system of salvation in which the merits or righteousness of man are supposed to co-operate with the righteousness and atonement of Christ, in establishing a claim to divine favour. We may suppose such a system so far to admit views of the soundest character as to be, like Daniel’s fourth kingdom, diverse from all others ; at the same time so plausible as to appear, in the sight of man, like the sorcerer of Samaria, the great power of God ; while the speckled, spotted character of its leading elements, causes it to resemble the fourth chariot of the prophet’s vision, with its array of grizzled chargers. Over such a kingdom we may presume the elements of Death and THE FIFTH SEAL. 63 Hades, to have peculiar sway. They are commissioned to destroy it ; or, as the Assyrian was sent against a hypocritical nation, Is. x. 5, 6, “ΤῸ take the spoil, and to take the prey, and to tread them down like the mire of the streets.”’ The system of self-righteousness, in which the merits of Christ are hypocritically allowed to have a part in the work of salvation, is com- posed of principles necessarily falling under the action of the elements of liability to legal condemnation, or of that condemnation itself. As in the case of a rebellious nation, the invader finds in the subjects of the prince themselves, the means of overturning his kingdom ; so, in this fourth earthly system of mixed principles, or of principles of the mixed character described, Death and Hades find an easy prey. ‘They destroy all, through the instru- mentality of one or the other of the four classes enumerated: the sword, famine, death, or the wild beasts of the earth. V.9. And when he had opened the Καὶ ὅτε ἤνοιξε τὴν πέμπτην σφραγῖδα, fifth seal, 1 saw under the altar the souls εἶδον ὑποκάτω τοῦ ϑυσιαστηρίου τὰς ψυχὰς of them that were slain for the word of ων ἐσφαγμένων διὰ τὸν λόνον Ton Deon God, and for the testimony which they ile 7 Us helt. καὶ διὰ τὴν μαρτυρίαν ἣν εἶχον" § 160. “ And when he opened the fifth 568]."----ὐϑ are here struck with a peculiarity attending the opening of the first four seals, which we no longer meet with. The four living creatures around the throne, have each of them done a part in exhibiting or in calling attention to the several representations of those seals. Each of these four representations, too, consisted of a horse of a peculiar colour, with its respective rider. The subjects unfolded by these four seals, are of such a character that we may easily suppose them to synchronize. ‘The white, the red, the black, and the green horse, all going forth at the same time ; that is, the spiritual action of the four, such as we have described it, may be supposed to be contemporaneous. The rider on the white horse, with his bow and crown, going forth to conquer ; while the rider of the red goes to take peace from the earth: the rider of the black, to exhibit the standard of divine justice; and the rider of the green, to exer- cise his power over the fourth kingdom of the earth. The four elements of justice, propitiation, wisdom, and consolation, have each performed its respective office. ‘The first, in pointing out the Saviour; the three last, in showing the peculiar dangers rendering his salvation necessary, and calling his power to overcome them into operation. We are to notice that the rider of the red horse takes peace from the earth only ; it is the earthly sys- tem only that suffers, and the principles of which destroy or sacrifice each other. So death and hell are said to have power only over the fourth of the earth, not over the fourth of any thing else than the earth ; or if this fourth be a kingdom, it is only an earthly kingdom—something peculiar to the 64 THE SEALS OPENED. earthly system that suffers from liability to condemnation, or from the ele ments of condemnation itself. ᾧ 161. ‘I saw under the altar the souls of them that were slain.’— There is no altar previously spoken of, although the apostle says he saw under the altar; nor is there any previous mention of individuals slain, unless we go back to the fourth verse, where the same Greek term is ren-- dered kill. This term, from σφάζω, being usually applied to the slaughtering of victims for sacrifice ; differing from the verb ἀποχτείνω in the eighth verse, also rendered Kill. But in the fourth verse it appears to be the elements of the earth that kill, or slaughter each other; and therefore their souls could hardly call for vengeance upon those that dwell upon the earth. Whatever altar this may be, we must suppose, from the employment of this term oat, slaughter, the souls seen under the altar to be the souls of victims offered upon the altar. « We have an altar,” says the apostle, ‘“ whereof they have no right to eat who serve the tabernacle,” (Heb. xii. 10.) This altar we suppose to be Christ, in a certain relation ; and it is so considered by others, (see Cru- den, art. Altar.) An altar is that upon which sacrifices are offered. The altar sanctifies or sets apart the gift, (Matt. xxiii. 19.) The Greek word translated altar, is composed of the words ϑυσία, sacrifice, and στηρίζω, to fix firmly, to set in a firm position. Christ, as the Lamb of God, it is true, is the sacrifice ; but as the Jogos, or purpose of God, he may be also the altar—the word, or purpose of God—sanctifying or setting apart the sacrifice made upon it ; the righteousness, the merits, the atonement of Christ, being constituted by the divine purpose the propitiatory sacrifice for sinners. In this vicarious process, the material flesh and blood of Jesus Christ constituted the body slain in sacrifice. His flesh and blood, in a spiritual sense, that is, his righteousness and his atonement, may be considered the soul or prin- ciple of life of this body ; the literal manifestation, and the spiritual mean- ing, bearing a relation to each other, analogous to that between soul and body. So we may say with all truths connected with this subject, the literal truths pertaining to this sacrifice are those which appear upon, or out- side of the altar ; the spiritual truths are the souls beneath, or within the altar. The Greek preposition rendered for, (διά,) by, or through, (in Rob. Lex. 144, b. 2,) “referring to the efficient cause of any thing,” the souls of them that were offered in sacrifice by, or through, the word of God, would thus signify those thus offered in consequence of the dive purpose, and through or by the testimony which they had. That is, the testimony, borne by these representations of the truth of salvation, had this effect of placing their literal sense as victims upon the altar, while their spiritual sense, sepa- rated from the literal, was as it were hidden beneath the altar. ‘The opening THE FIFTH SEAL. 65 of this fifth seal thus reveals the important truth, that there are two mean- ; ings, and that the spiritual meaning was to be for a period kept back, or suppressed. All which is exhibited under the figure of persons supposed to have been slain in the cause of Christ, or offered as victims, according to his purpose: a figure, which our translators seem to have taken it for granted referred to the persecution of certain martyrs in the early period of Christian- ity. But, as has been before observed, if this passage, or any one passage is to be rendered in this literal sense, the whole vision must be equally literal. V. 10. And they eried with a loud Kat ἔχραξαν φωνῇ μεγάλῃ λέγοντες" ἕως spice, vice At long, O ye holy πότε, ὃ δεσπότης ὃ ἅγιος καὶ ἀληϑινός, οὐ ΝΠ pga Unk dle habe a κρίνεις καὶ ἐχδικεῖς TO αἷμα ἡμῶν ἀπὸ τῶν our blood on them that dwell on the 5 ἐλ ΐν Ws bid earth 7 κατοικούντων ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς ; § 162. This is very different language from that of the martyr Stephen, when stoned to death: ‘Lord, lay not this sin to their charge.’ It differs still more from that of Jesus Christ when crucified : “ Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do.” It differs too from his precept: ‘ Bless them which persecute you ; bless and curse not.” Here they cry for vengeance, not merely on those who have persecuted them, but “ upon all who dwell upon the earth ;” as if the oppressed subjects of Nero, throughout the Roman empire, as well as the tyrant himself, were to suffer the vengeance due to his cruelty and guilt ;—a further evidence that the literal sense is not to be taken into consideration, except as a figure furnishing some spiritual analogy. Jt may be said, indeed, that this cry for vengeance is not the prayer of the martyrs themselves, but of their souls, virtually crying for retribution, as the blood of Abel cried from the ground for vengeance ; although such is not supposed to have been the voice of Abel himself. But even the blood of Abel called for vengeance upon the murderer only, not upon all that dwelt upon the earth. Besides, the retributive rule of life for life, and limb for limb, is the rule of law ; while we are assured that the Gospel dispensation speaketh better things than the blood of Abel. Indeed, the blood of Christ cries for mercy, for it was shed that mercy might be exercised—not towards the innocent, for they need it not, but towards the guilty. We cannot sup- pose that the blood and sufferings even of the martyrs, during the whole period of their persecution, is to counteract the plea offered in the atone- ment of him who ever liveth to make intercession for us. We suppose the earth to represent in the Apocalypse, a system, or some- thing equivalent, the opposite of the heavenly economy of redemption, (Ὁ 167,) and the dwellers upon the earth to be principles, the opposite of those of the heavenly system ; these last, the heavenly principles, being spoken of under the figure of martyrs, or witnesses for the truth. The action of the earthly principles upon the true, has been that of separating the spirit- 66 THE SEALS OPENED. ual sense from the literal ; this spiritual sense being represented by the blood, the life of the animal, as well as by the soul, in contradistinction to the body. ‘To avenge this spiritual sense upon the elements which have ope- rated in separating it from the literal sense, that is, in excluding it altogether, is, we may suppose, equivalent to vindicating the truth testified to by these martyr principles; which vindication is to be effected by placing the spirit- ual sense in its true light: a manifestation necessarily resulting in the de- struction or metaphorical death of the elements of the earthly system. A kind of evidence, we may easily perceive, perfectly in accordance with the regard for truth inseparable from the divine character, without being incon- sistent with the equally inseparable attribute of sovereign mercy. ‘The cry of the souls, “‘ How long,” &c., bespeaks a general impatience for the man- ifestation of the truth; as if it were said, “" How long, O Lord, ere the proper sense and meaning of the truths we have testified will be vindicated, or made to operate in the destruction of false doctrines, or of the elements of false doctrine, connected with the system of self-righteousness ?” V. 11. And white robes were given Kat ἐδόϑη αὐτοῖς ἑκάστῳ στολὴ λευκή, unto every one of them; and it was said 4} ἐῤῥέϑη αὐτοῖς, ἵνα ἀναπαύσωνται Ett unto them, that they should rest yet fora zodvor μικρόν, ἕως πληφω ΕΣ Ge oe little season, until their fellow-servants also and their brethren, that should be δουλοι αὐτῶν καὶ ot ἀδελφοὶ αὐτῶν, οἵ μέλ- killed as they were, should be fulfilled. λοντες ἀποκτένεσϑαι ὡς καὶ αὐτοί. ᾧ 163. ‘And there was given to each of them white robes.’—As it is said of him that evercometh, Rev. iii. 4, 5, ‘‘ He shall be clothed with white raiment ;” and of the few names in Sardis, “ They shall walk with me in white ;” an allusion to the covering of divine righteousness, (¢ 86.) The uniform or livery of these souls thus affording evidence of their community with the system of truth, although the manifestation of the true, or spiritual sense of the principles symbolized by them is for a season withheld ; as we might say of the faith of a disciple, the sum of which consists in an implicit reliance on the merits of his Redeemer. However imperfect his views may otherwise be, they wear in this particular the livery of evangelical truth. His faith belongs to the system of salvation by sovereign grace, although he does not himself at present perceive it. ‘ That they should rest for a little season. —That they should wait or pause, not rest, as for relief. ‘They were to wait until the term allowed for the prevalence of error should expire ; after which, it is implied, the venge- ance prayed for would be taken—corresponding with the prediction of Paul, 2 Thess. ii. 8, “ And then shall that wicked be revealed, whom the Lord shall consume with the spirit of his mouth, and destroy with the brightness of his coming.” The period of this waiting being identical with that spoken of in the same epistle of Paul, during which the mystery of iniquity is to work, as it were, in secret, a certain power letting or preventing its revela- THE SIXTH SEAL. 67 tion ;—the final manifestation of error being at last brought about by the extreme to which its doctrines are carried out ; an extreme alluded to, 2 Tim. iii. 1, as the last days, when perilous times shall come ; a time when, as it is also said, 2 Tim. iv. 3, sound doctrine will not be endured; and a time when, as we might also say, in the language of the Old Testament, “The iniquity of the Amorites is full, (Gen. xv. 16.) A time, too, when from the abounding of this iniquity, the love of many shall wax cold. A coldness or lukewarmness generated, as we have seen, in the case of the Laodicean church, (ἢ 91,) by that dereliction, or aberration from the truth of salvation by. grace alone, in which the iniquity of self-righteousness especially consists. As he who is forgiven little, or thinks himself so, loveth little ; so every error tending to undermine the cause of gratitude to Christ the Saviour, must proportionally tend to destroy the love of the disciple towards his Redeemer. ‘ Until their fellow-servants and brethren, that were to be killed as they were, should be perfected.’—That is, should have completed, or have filled up, the measure of work assigned them. These souls, or their spiritual sense, then, being also, like their predecessors, under the altar; while their literal sense is that only which appears upon the altar, (¢ 161.) These fellow servants, or slaves, (ovrdovio1,) and brethren, we suppose to be other ele- ments or principles, serving or belonging to the system of doctrinal truth, and co-operating with the souls in promoting the promulgation of that truth. Some parts of Scripture, for example, have ever been, and still are admitted to have a hidden doctrinal meaning ; as if commentators, unable to make any thing else of them, were willing to consign them to what they considered the shade of spirituality, as exceptions to a general rule. The time may come when even these will be literalized, or denied any special signification ; when the whole written word of divine revelation will be per- verted by an earthly, and self-righteous construction ; and then we may say, perhaps, the time of the end cometh. V. 12. And I beheld when he had Kei εἶδον ὅτε ἤνοιξε τὴν σφραγῖδα τὴν opened the sixth seal, and lo, there was a ἕκτην, καὶ σεισμὸς μέγας ἐγένετο, καὶ ὃ great earthquake; and the sun became “4 oe eye ΠΝ eat ’ - black as sackcloth of hair, and the moon 7105 &/#?£TO μέλας ὡς TuxKOS τρίχινος, καὶ became as blood. ἢ σελήνη ὅλη ἐγένετο ὡς αἷμα. ᾧ 164. ‘There was a great shaking.’—There is nothing in the Greek word translated earthquake, limiting the sense to the action of the earth. The verb σείω, from which the term is derived, signifies simply I shake. The term σεισμός, is applied, Matt. viii. 24, to a tempest, or commotion of the sea ; Matt. xxvii. 51 and 54, to a quaking of the earth ; and Matt. xxi. 10, to a commotion in the minds of the people. In every instance in which the term is employed, we must look to the context to explain its pre- 68 THE SEALS OPENED. cise meaning. Here it is applied to all the visible elements of earth and heaven ; the shaking, or commotion described, being something which pro- duces an effect upon the sun, moon, and stars, as well as upon the mount- ains and islands. ‘The sun became black as sackcloth of hair.—Such was its appear- ance. «άκκος, a garment in the shape of a sack, of a coarse black cloth, made of hair, (Rob. Lex. 673.) The sun appeared as if clothed in such a garment, although the sun itself undergoes no change ; but, as in an eclipse, its rays being intercepted by an opaque body, it appears dark or black— darkness or blackness consisting in the absence of the rays of light. So the Sun of righteousness, although ever the same, may appear to the eye of the disciple, in consequence of the intervention of some film of error, as if divested of its light, or power to impart light: the view of salvation, by imputed righteousness, is entirely lost sight of ; the spiritual sun appears, in effect, as if clothed in a sack of black cloth. § 165. ‘And the whole moon became as blood.’—This planet, as it is well known, shines by a light not her own. She appears resplendent only in the borrowed rays of the sun; without these she would appear, as she is in fact, a dark opaque body. In this respect she is an appropriate figure of what we usually call the church, or that which represents the whole body of the disciples, all of whom are in fact without any light or righteousness of their own; all of whom must appear, in the sight of Him who seeth not as man seeth, clothed in moral perfection only in proportion as that perfec- tion is imputed to them, or transferred as it were to their account. When the atmosphere is clear, and the moon is near the zenith, she appears of a white light; an appearance striking us as remarkable for its beauty, and with which we associate peculiar ideas of serenity and purity. When just rising or setting, especially when the atmosphere is somewhat hazy, the same planet, although near her full, appears red ; at times almost as red as blood. ‘The moon herself undergoes no change; she is still the same opaque body, reflecting the same borrowed light ; and to an eye more elevated than ours, or to the inhabitant of some other planet, she may continue to appear clothed in the white garment so often the subject of our admiration. The difference is in the medium of vision; the earthly mist, through which we are obliged to behold her, gives her this red appearance, and especially when her rays strike the eye horizontally, those rays having then a much longer career to perform through this fallacious medium. In like manner that spiritual body, which we term the church, when contemplated with an eye of faith, unaffected by the mists of literal con- struction, uninfluenced by the perverting principles of self-righteous doctrines, appears clothed in the perfect righteousness of her Redeemer— a garment purely white,—as a bride adorned for -her husband ;—but when THE SIXTH SEAL. 69 brought down to the horizon of an earthly apprehension—when contemplated through the mists of literal interpretation, or through an atmosphere of accumulated errors—the very righteousness in which we rejoice seems to our apprehension as the red vengeance of an offended God. The church appears the victim of divine justice, or as if she had herself borne the penalty of her own transgressions ; as if she, and not her Saviour, had trodden the wine press of wrath alone ; as if she, and not her Saviour, bore the marks of the propitiatory sacrifice by which her salvation had been secured—marks of her own propitiatory suffering too, and not those of the sufferings of Jesus Christ, (Gal. vi. 17.) V. 13. And the stars of heaven fell unto Kai ot ἀστέρες τοῦ οὐρανοῦ ἔπεσαν εἰς the earth, even as ἃ fig-tree casteth her τὴν γῆν, ὡς συκῆ βάλλει τοὺς ὀλύνϑους αὗ- untimely figs, when she is shaken of ἃ Ἔα εάν νὴ, ἀρ merci aciont mighty wind. Ws ee nf eit § 163. The stars, in the account given of the creation, Gen. i. 16, are spoken of as the lesser lights, as compared with the sun and moon. The sun we suppose to be a figure of the Sun of righteousness, or of that princi- ple of divine truth which represents Christ the Saviour as the Lord our righteousness ; and the moon a figure, not perhaps of the community, literally, of believers, but of that element of evangelical doctrine which represents this community as clothed with the perfection or light of imputed righteousness. In like manner, we suppose the stars to represent lesser, or subordinate principles, exhibiting certain degrees of this light, all of which contribute to enable the disciple to discern his true position of eternal life in Christ, and through the merits of Christ. The effect described as re- sulting from the opening of the sixth seal, we suppose to be that of pro- ducing an intellectual darkness in spiritual matters—a state or view of spiritual things or doctrines, in which the Saviour no longer appears as the sun, or the Lord our righteousness; in which the scheme of doctrine no longer exhibits the Christian community as clothed with the pure light of imputed righteousness, and in which every minor or subordinate principle of evangelical doctrine is for the time shaken down and overcome. ‘The sun, moon, and stars, are still elements of the heavenly system, but darkness. has covered the earth, and gross darkness the people; and these heavenly truths are no longer perceptible—the stars fall, as a fig-tree casteth her untimely figs. The exhibition of these heavenly truths is not allowed to reach its maturity ; they have yet yielded no fruit. As the influence of self- righteousness crept into the literal church almost immediately after the pro- mulgation of the gospel, the doctrines of Christian faith having been in a certain degree smothered before the truth was fully promulged; so the views of the gospel, figured by these heavenly bodies, (the stars,) are repre- 70 THE SEALS OPENED. sented as cast to the earth—becoming earthy and literal before they had reached maturity of development. A crisis, of a character corresponding with this, appears to be alluded to, Ezek. xxxi. 7, 8, in the lamentation over Egypt: ‘‘ And when I shall put thee out, I will cover the heaven, and make the stars thereof dark ; I will cover the sun with a cloud, and the moon shall not give her light. All the bright lights of heaven will I make dark over thee, and set darkness upon thy land, saith the Lord.” The prophet and apostle allude, apparently, to a similar state or period of prevailing error, when gospel truths no longer appear in their true light. ‘This is said to be the consequence of a shaking or commotion ; not necessarily an earthquake, as already remarked, (ὁ 164 :) neither would an earthquake be a figure for a shaking of the stars of heaven. Nor do we suppose this shaking to be a heavenly commotion, or one operating immediately upon false systems only. Judging from its effects, as already described, and from the subsequent context, the tendeney of this com- motion appears rather calculated to keep back and to obscure all evangelical views of the way of salvation, throwing the self-righteous upon their own re- sources. ΑΒ it might be said of those despising the way of salvation offered them in the gospel, that the view or exhibition of that way is now taken from them ; their case resembling that of Esau, as described by Paul, (Heb. xii 17.) V. 14. And the heaven departed asa = Kat ὃ οὐρανὸς ἀπεχωρίσϑη ὡς βιβλίον scroll when it is rolled together; and εἱλισσόμενον, καὶ πᾶν ὄρος καὶ νῆσος ἐκ every mountain and island were moved a ΄ a= 4 , . τῶν τόπων αὐτῶν ἐκινηϑησαν. out of their places. aan § 167 ‘The heaven departed,’—drew back, recesstt, as a scroll rolled up, involutus. ‘The term rendered departed, is supposed by some to express a separation in the midst, Rob. Lex. 71; but it does not seem necessary to suppose this here ; the heaven being a display of the divine economy of redemption, this display in the season of darkness just described is with- drawn. ‘The scroll of divine revelation, in its spiritual sense, is for a time rolled up. The rejected blessing is no longer to be obtained, though sought carefully with tears, (Heb. xu. 17 :) the gospel exhibition is closed—there remains only “a certain fearful looking for of judgment and fiery indigna- tion ;” the views of divine mercy are all withdrawn, while at the same time, as we shall find, the fallacy of all earthly or self-righteous foundations of hope are about being exposed and manifested. ‘ And every mountain and island were moved out of their places.’—At the close of this vision, Rev. xvi. 20, it is said, every island fled away, and the mountains were not found. Here they are represented only as moved out of their places; the change is not that of a final destruction of false systems, but perhaps something preparatory to it. THE SIXTH SEAL. 71 Mountains in ancient times were places of refuge from an invading enemy ; they were especially so with the Hebrews; mountains were their strong holds. Hence a mountain is employed as a figure of means of salvation, as Ps. xi. 1, “ How say ye to my soul, Flee as a bird to your mountain?” An island is equally a place of resort for safety at sea; and mountains and islands were refuges in times of flood, or deluge: so, spoken of in the plural number, they represent earthly means, or pretended means of salvation from the deluge of divine wrath ; opposites of the one moun- tain, or rock, symbolizing the only true means—Christ. The insufficiency of these earthly refuges is illustrated by the condition of those who fled to them in the time of Noah, when the tops of the highest mountains were covered. This shaking of the sixth seal has a twofold effect—The heavenly or spiritual view of the means of salvation is obscured and taken away, while the elements of the earthly system are severally tested ; corresponding with the declaration referred to, Heb. xii. 26, “‘ Yet once more I shake not the earth only, but also heaven.” This shaking of heaven and earth, the apostle says, signifies the removing of certain movable things, in order that those which are immovable may remain. The scroll rolled up, we may suppose to represent the heavenly exhibition of the means of salvation afforded by the old dispensation, spiritually understood ; the departure of the heaven, or rolling up of the scroll, being equivalent to the departure of the spiritual sense: the revelation of the Old Testament is still left, but it is understood only in the literal sense. It becomes, in effect, an earthly, and not a heavenly view; the only system left being that of the earthly, or self-righteous character, the vanity and fallacy of which is now being exposed: the refuges of lies—mountains and islands—are now shaken to their foundation. An allusion to this change seems to be made by Paul, Heb. i. 10-12, where both the heavens and the earth are described as waxing old, and being folded up, or laid aside as a garment; not that the true plan of salva- tion, or the truth as it is in Jesus, can ever cease to exist, but that the exhi- bition of it by the types and symbols and ordinances of the old dispensation will be superseded by the full development afforded by the gospel. The first will then, like an old garment, be laid aside—the old heaven being changed for the new—as will be also the view of man’s position, spoken of apparently Rev. xxi. 1, as the first earth. ‘Truth itself must be eternal and unchangeable as the mind of Deity ; but there may be certain modes of representing truth, which. will cease to be employed as soon as they become unnecessary. , J 72 THE SEALS OPENED. V. 15. And the kings of the earth, and Καὶ ot βασιλεῖς τῆς γῆς χαὶ οἵ μεγισ- the great men, and the rich men, and {Π6 τᾷγες χαὶ of χιλίαρχοι καὶ οἱ πλούσιοι καὶ ief captai ighty men, and x β . ciel captains, and the mighty men, and ¢¢ ἰσχυροὶ καὶ πᾶς δοῦλος καὶ ἐλεύϑερος every bond-man, and every free-man, hid, ; eh τ 5 ee themselves in the dens and in the rocks of ἔζθυψαν ἑαυτοὺς εἰς τὰ σπηλαιὰ καὶ εἰς τὰς the mountains. πέτρας τῶν ὀρέων. ᾧ 168. ‘And the kings,’ &c.—We do not suppose these kings, magistrates, captains, rich, mighty, bond and free persons, or personages, to be literally men, or human beings, any more than we suppose the rocks, dens, and mountains to be such, literally ; but we view them as principles or elements belonging to the earthly or self-righteous system, figuratively represented as human beings flying for refuge each to its peculiar system. The term man, or men, is not expressed in the original ; it is only supposed to be understood, or something equivalent to it. ‘The period reached seems to be that in which the souls under the altar were to be vindicated, or their blood avenged upon the dwellers on the earth; and this we have already contemplated as the period for the vindication of the truth, (ὃ 162:) these dwellers upon the earth, or elements of the earthly position, being repre- sented as of different ranks, or classes, from the highest to the lowest ; each class no doubt representing some corresponding principle, or class of prin- ciples. The rulers and kings of the heathen, or gentiles, are said, Ps. u. 1— 3, to take counsel, and to set themselves to break the bands of the Lord, and his Anointed. ‘This was true in a primary, restricted sense, of Pilate and Herod, and the chief priests ; but it is still more universally true, in a spiritual sense, of chief principles and leading elements of anti-evangelical systems. ‘ And hid themselves in the dens,’ &c.—Although the rocks and moun- tains were moved out of their places, they still remained accessible ; and, notwithstanding their manifest instability, they were still resorted to for protection: another proof that the stage of proceeding here reached is not the final and great change, but only something preparatory to it. Vs. 16,17. And said Ξ aban cee Kati λέγουσι τοῖς ὕρεσι χαὶ ταῖς πέτραις " and rocks, Fall on us, and hide us from ggoers χὰ, zat xov cw, fe Εν S ὡς, “OL χρύψατε ἡμᾶς oto the face of him that sitteth on the throne, - thas hee orn πρὸ a otis " aud trom the wrath of the Lamb. Por τ ΡΣ ΟΡ eg eee the great day of his wrath is come; and %%! απο Τῆς, OQy7S TOU UeMoU, OTL ἦλϑεν who shall be able to stand ? ἢ ἡμέρα ἢ μεγάλη τῆς οργῆς αὑτοῦ, καὶ Tic δύναται σταϑῆναι. ᾧ 169. ‘Fall upon us; or, rather, fall over us—as a criminal, taking refuge in a den when pursued by the officers of justice, wishes the impending rocks to fall over the mouth of the chasm in which he seeks to hide himself, that he may be the more effectually concealed, (Rob. Lex. 586, πίπτω. Seq. ἐπὶ cum accus. 2.) Fall over us, not to crush, but to protect us. In view of the wrath to come, men fly to some merit or righteousness of THE SIXTH SEAL. 73 their own, which they have flattered themselves with regarding as a moun- tain or rock. We have here the description of a season of trial, when cer- tain principles of self-dependence are put to the test. The justly panic- stricken beings spoken of, have two subjects.of alarm—two objects of dread : the face of the Sovereign Judge, and the wrath of the Lamb. Not that these are two different beings, but that the same being is contemplated under two different aspects. To be exposed to the face of a judge, is to be a subject of judicial investigation ; in allusion to this, the Sovereign has himself said, “There shall no man see me, and live,’ Ex. xxxiii. 20. “There is not a just man upon the earth that doeth good, and sinneth not.” There is not one who is not a transgressor of the law ; consequently, there is not one who can appear with impunity before the Judge of all the earth ; for, as it is declared, ‘‘ the soul that sinneth, it shall die.” But why fear the wrath of the Lamb; the wrath of him who came “not to destroy men’s lives, but to save them?” The very name of the Lamb seems also intended to preclude the idea of fear. There are those, however, who have reason to fear, as it is said, Heb. x. 28 and 29, “He that despised Moses’s law, died without mercy under two or three witnesses : of how much sorer punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy, who hath trodden under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant wherewith he was sanctified an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the Spint of grace?” and Heb. xii. 25, ‘See that ye refuse not him that speaketh. For if they escaped not who refused him that spake on earth, much more shall not we escape, if we turn away from him that speaketh from heaven.” ' § 170. The sinner, or transgressor of the law, even in the most literal sense, may well fear to meet the face of Him who searcheth the heart, and from whom no secrets are hid ; and the contumacious rejecter of gospel mercy may well fear, in its strongest literal and spiritual sense, the fate of those from whom the proffer of divine mercy is withdrawn. and who are left in the final judgment with no other hope or resource than their own self- righteous subterfuges. But in this apocalyptic exhibition, we have supposed, and must still suppose, the several classes of human beings enumerated to represent principles, or doctrinal elements, figuratively spoken of as kings, captains, &c.,—principles incapable of withstanding the test of divine judg- ment—principles so manifestly deficient in this respect, as to be appropri- ately compared to the panic-stricken multitude flying to dens and caverns for safety. The prophet Isaiah, predicting the period when the loftiness of man shall be bowed down, and the haughtiness of man shall be made low, and the Lord shall be exalted, draws a similar picture, (Is. ii. 19:) “In that day, the idols shall be utterly abolished, and they shall go into the holes of the rocks, and into the caves of the earth, for fear of the Lord, 74 THE SEALS OPENED. and for the glory of his majesty, when he ariseth to shake terribly the earth.’ So it is said, Luke xxiii. 30—“ Then shall they begin to say to the mountains, Fall on us; and to the hills, Cover us.” All these descriptions apparently corresponding with that state of con- viction which is to prepare the stout-hearted for an exhibition of divine mercy, (Is. xvi. 12 and 13.) §. 171. ‘For the great day of his wrath is come, and who shall be able to stand ??——This seems to refer particularly to the wrath of the Lamb ; or to the wrath of the Supreme Being in his character as the Lamb. The wrath of divine justice must be directed against sin and sinners ; but the Lamb is the propitiatory principle, and Jesus is especially revealed here as the Lamb ‘as it had been slain.” The wrath of the Lamb, there- fore, we may presume to be directed against those with whom he has to contend, and not against those whom he came to save. The enemies of the propitiatory principle are the opposite principles, tending to the condemna- tion of the sinner, opposing the work of Christ, and thus constituting the hostile force to be overcome. ΤῸ these hostile, self-righteous principles, the manifestation of the truth as it is in Jesus we may suppose to be the day of wrath, represented as a season of the utmost consternation—a mani- festation operating in effect as a trial which none of them are able to with- stand—as is implied in the question with which the description closes. The trial in contemplation apparently corresponds with that elsewhere spoken of, as a trial by jire—the fire which is to try every man’s work— issuing in a destruction of that wicked, whom the Lord shall consume with the breath of his mouth, and destroy with the brightness of his coming, 2 Thess. 11. 8. We have here reached the end of the chapter, but this is not the end of the subject of the sixth seal; the relation, as we shall see, runs into the next chapter. The present, however, terminates the description of the consternation preceding the expected exhibition of wrath ; for the remainder of the development of this seal offers a picture the reverse of that which has just now engaged our attention. The opening of this seal, we are to bear in mind, does not reveal to us the wrath ; it developes only the state of apprehension—the fearful condition of all obnoxious to this wrath, immediately preceding its coming. ‘The exhibition of the wrath itself, is reserved, as we shall see, for the develop- ments attending the opening of the next seal—the seventh, and last. From examining the action of this wrath, as there revealed, we shall be able to learn whether our suggestion, as to the objects of it, be well founded or not. THE SEALING. 15 CHAPTER VII. THE SERVANTS OF GOD SEALED, AND CHORUS OF THE REDEEMED. ’ V. 1. And after these things Tsawfour Kal μετὰ ταῦτα εἶδον τέσσαρας ayyé- angels standing on the four corners of the Jone ἑστῶτας ἐπὶ τὰ wlctipenteds γάλα Ὁ ἢ earth, holding the four winds of the earth, 3 Ὁ 9 ζ Ἷ that the wind should not blow on the 77» apgrounnns τοὺς τέσσαρας ἀνέμι mt τῆς earth, nor on the sea, nor on any tree. γῆς, ἵνα μὴ πνέῃ ἄνεμος ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς μήτε ἐπὶ τῆς ϑαλάσσης μήτε ἐπὶ πᾶν δένδρον, § 172. ‘ Arrer these {Π|η65.᾿-ἰ Π ΓΘ is here a change of scenery, but we are not obliged to suppose a succession in the order of the things them- selves, or of their existence. The succession may be only in the apostle’s sight ; the things seen may all exist in some sense at the same time ; at least, we are not under the necessity of confining our ideas to events occur- ring in the history of the world at different epochs, in a literal sense. 1 saw four angels standing on the four corners of the earth.—The earth was supposed to be a square ; and as we now speak of the four quarters of the world as the whole world, the four corners of the earth, with the apostle, was probably an expression equal to the whole earth; and an angel at each corner, was equal to a compassing of the whole earth with angels. ‘ Holding the four winds of the earth ;—that is, all the winds of the earth, as we now class all the points of the compass under four distinguish- ing heads ; denominating a wind blowing from any point between N. W. and N. E. a northerly wind, and the same with a southerly, easterly, or westerly wind ; these four winds comprehending all the winds of the earth. ‘That the wind should not blow on the earth,’ &c. ;—that is, that there should be no wind from any quarter; a privation easily supposed to end itt the destruction of animal and vegetable life. The Greek word πρεῦμα sig- nifies spirit, as well as wind or breath; and the word translated blow, equally signifies to breathe or to send forth the spirit. If we suppose, for example, the earth to be the picture of man’s position under the law—a position, in which he depends upon his works, upon the sweat of his brow, for his hopes of eternal life—to prevent the winds from breathing upon the earth, is equivalent to depriving this picture, or repre- sentation, of its spiritual sense ; and as the earth is spiritually the scheme of man’s legal position, and the things upon the earth, animate and inanimate, are the principles or doctrinal elements peculjar to this scheme; so the 76 THE SEALS OPENED. sea spiritually represents the element of judicial wrath; and to withhold the wind from it entirely, is to deprive it of any spiritual meaning whatever. The letter killeth, it is said, but the Spirit giveth life, (2 Cor. i. 6.) To be carnally minded, or to be literal, is death ; to be spiritually minded, is life and peace, Rom. vii. 6. A spiritual understanding of the word of revelation, presents it as indeed the glad tidings of salvation ; a literal or carnal understanding of the same word, gives it the aspect of a ministra- tion unto condemnation, even more than that of the legal economy. The withholding of these four winds, may be thus a part of the judicial dispen- sation implied in the withdrawal of the heavens, although the scenes of this chapter are of an intervening character—something in the style of an iter- lude. 'The winds are said to be the four winds of the earth. Not that they are earthly winds—but that they are the winds designed for the benefit of the earth; their peculiar office being that of giving life to the things upon the earth, and the withholding of them being something capteially to be deprecated. Accordingly, preparatory to the coming wrath, at the same time that the heavenly exhibition of the economy of grace is being rolled up, as a scroll or volume taken away ; and at the same time that the refuges of lies are being tested, the spiritual understanding of the scheme of man’s position under the law, symbolized by the earth, is also withheld. Self-righteous man, deprived of the view of divine mercy which he despised, is not only thrown upon his own resources, but he is left also to the literal construc- tion of the revealed word—a construction, which can afford him no hope of escape from condemnation. Vs. 2, 3. And I saw another angel ascending from the east, having the seal of the livmg God: and he cried with a loud voice to the four angels, to whom it was given to hurt the earth and the sea, saying, Hurt not the earth, neither the sea, nor the trees, till we ‘have sealed the servants of our God in their fore- ‘heads. Καὶ εἶδον ἄλλον ὄγγελον ἀναβαίνοντα ἀπὸ ἀνατολῆς ἡλίου, ἔχοντα σφραγῖδα ϑεοῦ ζῶντος " καὶ ἔκραξε φωνῇ μεγάλῃ τοῖς τέσ- σαρσιν ἀγγέλοις, οἷς ἐδύϑη αὐτοῖς ἀδικῆσαι τὴν γῆν καὶ τὴν ϑάλασσαν, λέγων" μὴ ἀδι- κήσητε τὴ» rau μήτε τὴν ϑάλασσαν μήτε τὰ δένδρα, 6 ἄχρις οὗ σφραγίσωμεν τοὺς δού- λους τοῦ ϑεοῦ ἡμῶν ἐπὶ τῶν μετώπων αὖ- τῶν. § 173. ‘Another angel,’—another ministering spirit, or messenger—a communication ; something ministering to the understanding. ‘ Ascending from the East,’—or, as it is in the Greek, from the rising of the sun—a communication from the Sun of righteousness—a precursor of that heavenly Luminary, which is to rise with healing in his wings. ‘Having the seal of the living God.’—This seal, or sign, may be a mark or token known only to the Most High, (2 Tim. ui. 19.) Circum- cision is said to be a seal of the righteousness of faith, (Rom. iv. 11 ;) but, THE SEALING. 71 literally, the whole nation of the Hebrews from the time of Moses was cir- cumcised ; while we find the seal here spoken of to be applied only to twelve thousand of each of the twelve tribes. There is, however, a spiritual circumcision, (Phil. iii. 3,) which is not only a seal of the righteousness of faith, but. which is also a mark or token known only to God. ‘ We are the circumcision,’ says the Apostle, “who worship God in the spirit, and rejoice in Christ Jesus, and have no confidence in the flesh,” or in any merits of our own.” We suppose this apocalyptic seal to be one applied to principles, and not to men; and in conformity with this idea, we presume it to be the characteristic of such doctrinal views of the sinner’s position, as provide for his worshipping God in the spirit, ($¢¢ 97, 98 :) rejoicing in the atonement and imputed righteousness of Christ, and having no trust in any other right- eousness, or in any human means of salvation. Certain principles or dog- mas, bearing this stamp, are to be exempted from the judicial action of the four angels. They are not to be deprived of their spiritual sense. ‘And he cried with a loud voice.—The communication is a power- ful one—something to be easily recognized, or something peculiarly earnest and imperative. § 174. “Τὸ whom it was given to hurt,’ &c.—To withhold the winds from the earth, is to hurt the earth; this we may easily suppose to be the case in a physical sense, and the spiritual hurt is something analogous to the physical. The word translated Aurt, is rather a legal than a physical term, as we have already noticed, (ὃ 56 ;) it signifies acting unjustly, depriving others of their rights, doing wrong, as Ps. cv. 14 and 15, “ He suffered no man to do them wrong”’—Septuagint, ἀδικῆσαι. The four angels, however, could not have been commissioned to do wrong, or to act unjustly, even towards objects or beings not sealed. The verb ἀδικέω, to hurt, or injure, edo, injuria afficio, may be taken, as before remarked, for the opposite of Ζικαιόω, to justify, to declare one to be good, and to treat him as such ; as “4d:xca, injustice, is the opposite of δίκη, justice. Both verbs coming from the same root, (vide Δίκαιος, justus, Lex. Suiceri,) as Axa, signifies to justify, we may safely suppose ἀδικέο, to signify the opposite, or not to justify, or to withhold justification, exhibiting a person or thing to be unjust, or unrighteous: perhaps equivalent to ἄδικον ποιέω. Injustum pronuncio, I condemn, v. Trom. 31. As the withholding of the wind from the earth is equal to hurting the earth, so we may consider the withholding of the spiritual sense from that scheme of man’s position, symbolically the earth, to be equal to showing, or pronouncing, or exhibiting this scheme as something opposed to justification ; that is, the exhibition of man’s position taken from the word of revelation 78 THE SEALS OPENED. in a literal sense only, is not just—the elements of this exhibition in their literal sense not comporting with God’s plan of salvation. ‘To deprive them of their spiritual sense, therefore, is to deprive them of life—to render them worthless ; as it is said of the law, If it be used lawfully, it is an instrument of bringing the disciple to Christ ; if used unlawfully, or contrary ὦ to the design of it, it is an instrument of estranging the disciple’s views from Christ, and thus ministering to his condemnation. _ The earth, as we have said, may represent the scheme of man’s position under the law—the sea, the element of judicial wrath—the trees, fallacious means of shelter from the wrath to come, or elements of doctrines of this character. ‘Take away the spiritual sense from the passages where these terms are used in a mystical sense, and you deprive those passages of their life and value. Something like this we suppose to be intended by the Aurt in contemplation ; it is taking away from certain terms or passages that which properly belongs to them—their spiritual construction. ‘Hurt not. .... . till we have sealed the servants of God in their foreheads.’—The servants of God, are those acting from a motive of serv- ing him, as well as serving him in effect. These apocalyptic servants, how- ever, we suppose to be principles in effect serving, or ministering to, or pro- moting the glory of God and the interests of his kingdom. The seal in the forehead must signify some prominent, conspicuous mark, or token, or char- acteristic—something indicating the connection of the principles thus im- pressed with the divine scheme of redemption. As we might say of any doctrine manifestly tending to sustain the claims of Divine sovereignty, that it bears the seal of the living God. So doctrines, or elements of doctrine having this tendency, may, with peculiar propriety, be spoken of in figura- tive language as pre-eminently the servants of God. The blood of the paschal lamb upon the door-posts of the dwellings of the Israelites, was a seal or token, protecting them from the visitation of the destroying angel. This blood represented the atonement of the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world; and corresponding with this, perhaps we may say any element of doctrine holding forth this atonement as the efficient means of salvation, is a doctrine carrying with it the seal of the living God. So, although the whole word of divine revelation in other respects were taken in a literal sense, yet every portion of it conveying an impression of the value of the atonement of Christ, as the price of redemp- tion, would exhibit the seal of its truth, and ultimately witness for the sovereignty of Jehovah. The precise nature of the seal in question we do not pretend to point out; our suggestions are only designed to indicate something of what it may be. THE SEALING. 79 V.4. And heard the number of them χαὶ ἤκουσα τὸν ἀριϑμὸν τῶν ἐσφραχισ- which were sealed: (and there were) μέγων, ἑκατὸν τεσσαράκοντα τέσσαρες χιλι- ealed a hundred and forty and four thou- ἧς . , Yeas πτέψει ind: of all the tribes “of ‘the children of deg 6 alge Sod “PS algal ah ὴ φυλῆς υἱᾶν Israel. Tagan): § 175. ‘I heard the number of them,’ &c.—There seems to be a par- ticular importance attached to the circumstance that the apostle heard the number of those that were sealed; rendering it probable that when the particular principles, or elements, represented by these sealed ones are fully developed, they will correspond in some sense, or in some respect, with this number. Seals are used for two different purposes: to preserve secrecy, as in sealing a letter; and to proclaim openly, as in affixing a seal or mark to designate the character or ownership of the thing sealed. A book symboli- cally written, of which the meaning is concealed, is in effect a sealed volume. Such is the word of revelation now opening by the power ofthe Lamb. A public document with the seal of the sovereign upon it, is an instrument proclaimed to be of authority : government seals and stamps are put upon weights and measures, showing them to be of the standard value or quantity. Such seals are sometimes put upon goods and warehouses, in token of their being in possession of the ruling power. Seals and marks are even put upon cattle and slaves in some countries, to show the service in which they are employed ; so, we suppose it to be with these one hundred and forty- four thousand principles. The conspicuous seal or mark put upon them, is something bespeaking their vertual devotedness to the service of the living God; something manifesting them also to be approved by Him—to be in conformity with his system of grace, and to be of the standard value of his truth ;—in a spiritual sense, Israelites indeed, in whom there is no guile— nothing fallacious. ‘Sealed one hundred and forty-four thousand.’—Only one hundred and forty-four thousand of a people elsewhere spoken of as innumerable as the dust of the earth !—a people, as the stars of heaven for multitude! Gen. xii. 16: xv. 53; and “as the sand of the sea,’ Hosea i. 10. This is another evidence that the allusion is not to human beings liter- ally, but to something analogous, in some certain respect, to such beings ; apparently, these sealed ones are principles denominated servants of God, in the same sense that a truth or doctrine, instrumental in the conversion of sinners, is in effect a servant of God, subserving his purposes. Error itself, it is true, eventually fulfils the purposes of God, but it is not an acknow- ledged servant or instrument of his. The elements of revealed truth, on the contrary, may be said to be especially set apart, sanctified, and adopted. « Having this seal, the Lord knoweth them that are his.” Miraculous power, accompanying the annunciation of truth, is a seal of the Holy Spirit. This 80 THE SEALS OPENED. seal, it may be said, accompanies all the truths drawn immediately from the sacred Scriptures, for they have all been testified to, by some such display of power. We do not suppose the number of these principles to be literally con- fined to one hundred and forty-four thousand. This is a typical, or sym- bolical number; the tribes of the children of Israel are opposites of the tribes of the earth. The tribes of God’s chosen people may represent the powers of the Gospel, exercised in the work of salvation ; the number, one hundred and forty-four, is the product of twelve multiplied by twelve. There were twelve patriarchs under the old dispensation, and twelve apostles under the new. The reciprocal action of these is employed in promoting a manifestation of revealed truth. The first twelve may be put for the old dispensation itself, and the second twelve for the new dispensa- tion ; these acting upon each other elicit the display of the economy of grace. ‘The whole one hundred and forty-four thus representing all the truths of the two volumes of inspiration; differing in this respect from the number twenty-four, in the case of the elders, which we suppose to repre- sent only the revelation of the Old Testament, (¢ 121.) The additional decimal number (one thousand) we may take to signify only a large indefi- nite quantity ; as a smaller decimal number, such as hundreds or tens, would signify a smaller indefinite quantity ; while thousands, or tens of thou- sands, are put for comparatively an infinite number. In the case of the seven thousand men spoken of 1 Kings xix. 18, the initial number seven may represent something perfect, as of divine appoint- ment, and the decimal number a proportionally indefinite quantity ; the language being equivalent to a declaration that, notwithstanding the universal idolatry of the people, as it appeared to the apprehension of the prophet, there remained still the number of faithful first designed :—the purposes of Omniscience were not defeated. In the same manner we may suppose the one hundred and forty-four thousand apocalyptic children of Israel to repre- sent the original, select, chosen doctrinal elements of truth belonging to the divine plan of redemption—elements emanating from and representing the combined revelation of the old and new dispensations. In fact, these ele- ments must have been sealed from all eternity, according to the divine purpose, and are comprehended in the one sealing of the Son of man, spoken of John vi. 27. The manifestation of the sealing, and not the seal- ing itself, is represented as requiring a delay of operation on the part of the four angels ; infinite Wisdom being represented as bearing with the pre- valence of error for a season, in order that the characteristic feature of truth, whatever it be, may have an opportunity of developing itself. THE SEALING. Vs. 5-8. Of the tribe of Juda (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Reuben (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Gad (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Aser (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Nephthalim (were) sealed twelve thou- sand. Of the tribe of Manasses (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Simeon (ripre) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Levi (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Issachar (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Zabulon (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Joseph (were) sealed twelve thousand. Of the tribe of Benja- min (were) sealed twelve thousand. 81 ἐκ φυλῆς ᾿Ιούδα ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραγισ- μένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς “Ῥουβὴν ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφρα- γισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Lud ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφρα- γισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς ‘Aang ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσ- φραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς ᾿νεφϑαλεὶμ ιβ΄ χιλι- “des ἐσφραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς ΠΙανασσῆ ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Συμεὼν ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Aevt ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς ᾿Ισα- χὰρ ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραγισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Ζυβουλὼν ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραχισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Iman ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραχισμένοι, ἐκ φυλῆς Βενιαμὶν ιβ΄ χιλιάδες ἐσφραχια- μένοι. § 176. “ΟΥ̓ the tribe of, &c.—We cannot suppose this very minute enumeration to have been introduced without some particular design ; some important meaning being conveyed in this allotment of equal numbers to each of the twelve tribes ; such as to represent the classification of a certain number of truths, under so many different heads. Perhaps a proper inter- pretation of the names of the patriarchs, with a consideration of their sev- eral characters, the locations allotted to them, and the predictions concern- ing each of them, in the blessing of Jacob, (Gen. xlix. 3—-27,) together with the history of the tribes, as far as it is handed down to us, might throw light upon the meaning here contemplated. It is worthy of notice that, in the order here observed, the tribe of Judah ranks first, although Judah was not the first-born of the sons of Jacob. Otherwise than this order, there is no distinction, or appearance of prefer- ence. The tribe of Judah has no more sealed than either of the others, notwithstanding our Lord sprang out of Judah, (Heb. vii. 14.) Nor has Issachar any less than Judah, although the last was compared by his dying father to a lion, and the former to an ass crouching down between two burthens. Levi has no more sealed than Benjamin, although Levi repre- sented the priesthood, the immediate attendants of the altar, the recipient of the tithes, and as a body the type of Him who is a priest forever ; while Benjamin is the last and the least, both in the order of the Apocalypse and in that of the patriarchal benediction. Only a select number of each tribe were sealed ; thus the difference between the sealed and the remainder of a tribe may as a figure correspond with the difference between the chosen people of God and the natzons, or between Jew and Gentile, the tribes of Israel and the tribes of the earth ; parallel with the difference between select adopted principles, or elements of the economy of grace, and those which are not of this character. It is to be noticed, too, that Dan is excluded from this enumeration ; the half tribe of Manasses being substituted for the tribe of Dan. Consequently ΕΘ Ὁ , THE SEALS OPENED. Dan has no part in this sealing operation. None of the principles sealed, are classed under the head, or as belonging to the tribe of Dan. The Hebrew word Dan, signifies judgment ; and it was said of this pa- triarch by his father, “ Dan shall judge his people.” The name Manasses, signifies forgetfulness, or something forgotten. Thus we have forgetfulness substituted for judgment. A change apparently alluded to, Jer. xxxi. 33, 34, and quoted Heb. viii. 12, and x. 17: “ For I will be merciful to their unrighteousness, and their sins and their iniquities will I remember no more.” So it is said, Is. xlin. 18 and 25, “ Remember ye not the former things, neither consider the things of old.” “I, even I, am he that blotteth out thy transgressions for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins.” We have in this change an intimation that no offspring of the judicial element is exempt, or to be exempted from the effect of withholding the four winds. The element of judgment belongs to the old economy, that of the letter— something intended to be deprived of life, upon reaching a certain stage of maturity ; and as, without the principle of life itself, incapable of giving life to others, (Gal. ili. 21.) Dan however is not described in the paternal benediction merely as a judge. He is said to be also “a serpent by the way ;” “an adder in the path, that biteth the horse heels so that the rider shall fall backwards ;” and such in fact would be the action of the judicial element, if admitted into the economy of salvation, the horse of Scripture being, as we have before re- marked, (ᾧ 146,) the war horse—that upon which the rider depends for strength and safety. ‘This animal thus represents the means of salvation, or that merit by which alone justification can be obtained. The serpent we suppose to represent the accusing principle, and the adder a deadly serpent, acting with the sting of death; which sting is declared to be sin. Dan thus represents the judicial accusing principle—the prosecutor as well] Ὁ as the judge—the power charged with urging the condemnation of the transgressor. Of course none of this kindred could be admitted amongst the elements of the plan of redemption, represented as we suppose by the sealed one hundred and forty-four thousand. Manasses was one of the sons of Joseph; yet Joseph and Manasseh have each twelve thousand sealed. We cannot but suppose some mean- ing in this peculiarity ; but for the present we must content ourselves with the suggestion that this something, when revealed, will probably throw ad- ditional light upon the doctrine of the substitution of the elements of mercy for those of justice. Vs. 9,10. After this I beheld, and lo, Meté: ταῦτα εἶδον, καὶ ἰδοὺ dzhog πολύς, a great multitude, which no man could ὃν ἀριϑμῆσαι αὐτὸν οὐδεὶς ἡδύνατο, ἐκ πα»- number, of all nations, and kindreds, and people, and tongues, stood before the 27°, 0 κα; ὕ B06 Vos throne, and before the-Lamb, clothed with 9%» ©OF0ITES ἘΣ ΩΣ ΟΣ TAV a7QONOU τέρας ‘ a» ‘ ~ Ἂ ~ \ τὸς ἔϑγους χαὶ φυλῶν καὶ λαῶν καὶ γλωσ- CHORUS. 83, white robes, and palms in their hands; soy τοῦ ἀρνίου, περιβεβλημένους στολὰς and cried with a loud voice, saying, Sal- λευχάς, καὶ φοίνικες ἐν ταῖς χερσὶν αὐτῶν" aioe; 8308 Boe ear he eat ee cee ee padi eB ϑρόνου καὶ τῷ ἀρνίῳ. § 177. ‘After this I beheld,’ &c.—Here, again, a scenic change is to be supposed. * And lo, a great multitude,’ &c.—It does not appear that the one hun- dred and forty-four thousand were part of this multitude ; but the ascription of praise, &c., appears to be a consequence of the sealing of the one hun- dred and forty-four thousand. This offspring of the twelve tribes becom- ing, by their being sealed, the instruments of manifesting the benefit, and the innumerable multitude representing apparently the beneficiaries. ‘The word translated nations, is the same as that frequently rendered Gentiles, in contradistinction to the one nation, or Jews; and the word rendered in the ninth verse kindred, is the same as that translated in the preceding verses tribes. After having witnessed the sealing of this select portion of the tribes of the children of Israel, the apostle saw an immense multitude out of all Gentiles, all tribes, all people, of all tongues ; all of this variety virtually ascribing salvation to God and to the Lamb. The multitude was not an aggregate of all nations, tribes, &c., but it was composed of those taken out of these different bodies, as twelve thousand were taken out of each of the twelve tribes. This multitude stood before the throne and before the Lamb. They represent something ever in the sight of, and regarded with compla- cency by, the Sovereign and the Redeemer—something acceptable to the judicial and propitiatory attributes of the Supreme Being. ‘Clothed in white robes.’—They belonged to the system of salvation by imputed righteousness. 'They wore the livery, the uniform of the Re- deemer’s host. As the one hundred and forty-four thousand were sealed or marked, as we suppose, by some characteristic of the economy of grace, such perhaps as the principle of salvation by virtue of the atonement of Christ, so the members of this immense concourse wear the array of divine righteousness, as belonging to the system of justification through the imput- ed perfection of Jehovah. If not themselves disciples, their position being regarded as analogous to that of disciples rejoicing in the atonement and righteousness of Christ, as the means of their salvation. So we may say, the manifestation of the doctrine of justification by imputed righteousness depends upon the exhibition of the truth of the pro- pitiatory provision. ‘The first cannot be shown to be valid, unless the latter be so likewise. The sinner could not be counted to possess the merit of Christ’s righteousness, if the penalty of his transgressions were not borne by his divine substitute ; as, on the other hand, the operation of this atone- ment is that which exhibits the purity and perfection of the righteousness Εν 84 THE SEALS OPENED. é wrought out by the substitute, and transferred to the justified believer. For which reason, these justified ones are said to have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. As soon as the sealing of the evidences of atonement was accomplished, then this multitude appeared in white ; the manifestation of one truth thus depending upon that of the other ; corresponding with what we have before suggested, that the design of this revelation is not to show who are saved, but upon what principles all or any are saved, and upon what principles all or any are condemned. ‘And palms in their hands.—Branches of palm trees were anciently emblems of victory. The victory gained here is supposed to have been manifested by the sealing of the one hundred and forty-four thousand ; and in testimony of this triumph, the multitude clothed in white carry their palms. It is not a victory gained by themselves that they celebrate, but one achieved by their leader—a victory just made known, or certified, by the sealing of the one hundred and forty-four thousand. As the twenty-four elders, chap. iv. 10, fall down and cast their crowns before him that sitteth on the throne, when the four living creatures give glory, honour, and thanks; so this multitude appear in their white robes, and with their emblems of victory, and utter their ascription of praise im- mediately after the completion of the operation of sealing. the ascription of salvation to the twofold object—Him that sitteth on the throne and the Lamb—corresponds with the ascription of blessing, honour, glory, and power, spoken of Rev. v. 13, as rendered to the same twofold object by every created thing in earth, on the earth, and under the earth ; God and the Lamb appearing as joint operators in the work of redemption, although one Being alone (God) is spoken of in the subsequent verse as him that liveth for ever and ever. In like manner, Vs. 11, 12. And all the angels stood round about the throne, and about the elders and the four beasts, and fell before the throne on their faces, and worshipped God, saying, Amen: Blessing, and glo- ry, and wisdom, and thanksyiving, and honour, and power, and might, be unto our God for ever and ever. Amen. Καὶ πᾶντες οἵ ἄγγελοι εἱστήκεισαν κύκλῳ τοῦ ϑρόνου καὶ τῶν πρεςβυτέρων καὶ τῶν τεσσάρων ζώων, καὶ ἕπεσον ἐνώπιον τοῦ ϑρόνου ἐπὶ τὰ πρόφωπα αὑτῶν, καὶ προς8- πκύνησαν τῷ ϑεῷ, λέγοντες" ἀμήν" ἢ εὐλο- γία καὶ ἡ δόξα καὶ ἢ σοφία καὶ ἢ εὐχαρε- στία καὶ ἡ τιμὴ καὶ ἡ δύναμις καὶ ἡ ἰσχὺς τῷ FEO ἡμῶν εἰς τοὺς αἰῶνας τῶν αἰώνων" ἀμήν. ᾧ 178.‘ And all the angels stood,’ &c.—This ascription of homage is represented as offered, not by the four living creatures, and twenty-four elders, but by the angels surrounding the throne, and surrounding these twenty- eight elements also. In this respect, it corresponds with the action of the angels, described Rev. v. 11 and 12, the number of whom was ten thousand times ten thousand, and thousands of thousands. On the previous occasion, CHORUS. ᾿ 85 however, the ascription of these myriads of angels was to the Lamb, de- clarative of his worthiness to receive the seven elements of homage enume- rated ; this was before the opening of any of the seals. On the second, or present occasion, the same seven elements of homage, with one exception, are ascribed to the sovereign God; the exception consisting in the substitu- tion of thanksgiving for riches. Riches were ascribed to the Lamb on account of his being slain, because by his work of propitiation he paid the ransom of the souls of his redeemed. This ransom constituting these riches, or we may say, perhaps, the power of effecting this ransom, vested in the Lamb, is represented as so much riches given to him by the sovereign God for this express purpose. Now, after the opening of the sixth seal, and the sealing of the one hundred and forty-four thousand, these riches are supposéd to be no longer called for. The kingdom is given up to the Father, and to him is ascribed thanksgiving for the benefit obtained through these riches of Christ : the Lamb has the praise of the work, but to the sovereign God the tribute of gratitude for the whole work is finally manifested to be due. Both receive the ascription of blessing, of glory, of wisdom, of honour, of power, and of might, but it is especially God, as the source of sovereign grace, who claims our gratitude: ‘‘ God so loved the world that he sent his only Son to save the world.” It is the riches of Christ’s merits, instrumentally, which effect this salvation: but God is the source whence these riches come, and thence to him the offering of thanks- giving is made: the Lamb being temporarily represented as the medium through which the favour is conferred, in order the better to adapt the mysterious process to human comprehension. The angels do not speak of this redemption as being themselves the subjects of it, but no one can say that they are not under obligations of gratitude to the Supreme Being, equal to those of men ; if they excel other creatures in any thing, it is God only who has made them to differ. Their language on the present occasion may be considered declarative of a general position, viz., that these several elements of homage are due to the Deity from all his creatures ; their action, like that of the myriads described in the fifth chapter, being in the character of a grand chorus—a response to the invocation of the Psalmist, “ Bless the Lord, ye his angels, that excel in strength, that do his commandments, hearkening unto the voice of his word. Bless ye the Lord, all ye his hosts ; ye ministers of his that do his pleasure. Bless the Lord, all his works, in all places of his dominion: bless the Lord, O my soul.” x The repetition of the same elements of praise, with the exception above noted, may be designed to remind us that God and the Lamb, although severally spoken of, are equally entitled to the same homage ; and this so 86 THE SEALS OPENED. precisely, that we cannot consider them otherwise, in fact, than one and the same Being. The word translated blessing, is literally to speak well, (benedicere,) sometimes rendered by the term benediction. When man blesses his fellow- man, it is in effect by offering a prayer in his behalf: when God blesses man, it is in fact the bestowment of a favour upon him; but when man blesses God, it is an act of praise—to speak well of God, is to praise Him. God and the Lamb are thus represented as equally the objects of praise. The glory of God is exhibited as he himself indicates, Ex. xxxiii. 19, in his goodness; a goodness, or loving-kindness, manifested especially in the work of redemption. Honour and glory, in common parlance, appear to be nearly synony- mous; but scripturally, honour may be supposed peculiar to the success of an achievement, glory to the goodness of the purpose. Honour is therefore ascribed to God for his accomplishment of that which his goodness pur- posed. If men achieve their own eternal salvation, although instrumentally only, the honour of this achievement must be theirs, or at least partially so ; but if God accomplish it all, the glory is entirely his: and this is the glory which he has declared that he ‘will not divide with another.” Power and might appear also to be nearly convertible terms; but power, δύναμις, is said to signify intrinsic ability, (Rob. Lex. 169,)—per- haps in contradistinction to transmitted ability. God has power in himself; man has no power except it be given him of God. Might, ἰσχύς, or efficacy, is applicable to the action of God in man, by which the means of salvation are made available. The wisdom of God is manifested in the plan by which the principles of justice and mercy are reconciled, and by which a new motive of obedi- ence is furnished the disciple, even for eternity. The word translated thanksgiving, is from a term properly signifying mindful of benefits, (edzaguozog,) that is, gratitude, (Rob. Lex. 276.) This ascription of praise on the part of the angels, thus appears equivalent to an exhibition of the truth, that in all things, in the work of creation, of pro- vidence, and of redemption, God is every thing, and man is nothing : there is no intervening instrumentality which can deprive him of the praise, honour, or glory, resulting from every operation in the universe, spiritual or natural Vs. 13, 14. And one of the elders an- swered, saying unto me, What are these which are arrayed in white robes? and whence came they? And I said unto him, Sir, thou knowest. And he said to me, These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. Kai ἀπεκρίϑη εἷς ἐκ τῶν πρεςβυτόρων — λέγων μοι: οὗτοι οἱ περιβεβλημένοι τὰς στολὰς τὰς λευκὰς τίνες εἶσι καὶ πόϑεν ἢλ- Sov; Καὶ εἴρηκα αὐτῷ" κύριέ μου, σὺ οἷ- δας. καὶ εἶπέ μοι" οὗτοϊ εἶσιν οἵ ἔρχόμενοι ἐκ τῆς ϑλίψεως τῆς μεγάλης, καὶ ἔπλυναν' τὰς στολὰς αὑτῶν καὶ ἐλεύκαγαν αὐτας ἐν τῷ αἵματι τοῦ ἀρνίου. ' CHORUS. 81 § 179. ‘One of the elders answered, saying,’—or, one of the elders spake, saying. The term answered, seems to suppose a previous inquiry ; but the original word, which primarily signifies to separate, is said to have been used in the New Testament at the commencement of a discourse. “In N. Test. ἀποχρίνεσϑαι, dicitur non tantum ille qui respondet, sed’ etiam qui sermonem inchoat,” (Suiceri Lex.) ‘What are these ?’—The Scriptures (the elder perhaps in this case being one of the elements of the Old Testament revelation) suggest inquiries at the same time that they answer them. [{ is in reading the Scriptures that questions occur to our mind, and it is only by reading them that our doubts can be solved. ‘These may be providentially started, sometimes in order to direct the mind to particulars which might otherwise pass unnoticed :—as if the elder had been fearful of the apostle’s neglecting to make the inquiry, and so losing the opportunity of knowing. ‘ These are they that have come out of great tribulation.’—Great press- ure, or compression, (ᾧ 54.) The sinner suffers from an oppressive sense of his transgressions ; but the sinner, merely as such, cannot be said to have any robe of righteousness or garment of salvation, of his own, to wash white; while those here represented appear to have had some garment, which they had washed white in the blood’ of the Lamb, and by so doing came out of a certain condition of pressure and compression. Those who go about to establish a righteousness of their own, feeling themselves dependent upon their own merits, may well be considered in a state of suffering from the pressure of the law—in a state of compression from legal requirements on all sides. They suppose themselves to be weaving a garment of salvation of their own—a robe of their own righteous- ness; but it resembles very much the poisoned garment of the fabled prodigy of strength: a cause of increasing distress to the wearer from the moment of its adoption, and resulting at last in his destruction. With a like garment, whatever may be the confidence of the self-righteous in his own strength, he is really in a position of great tribulation ; although he cannot be sensible of this till he has passed through a certain process of conviction. Suppose persons with the views just described to become so enlightened in faith as to lay aside all dependence upon their own merit, or upon their own works, whether of mind or body—throwing themselves altogether upon the atonement of their Redeemer, and looking to the effect of his vicarious sacrifice as the only remedy for their unworthiness and sinfulness. The robe of self-righteousness, which was once their source of confidence, is now changed for a garment of salvation of their Saviour’s merits;—pure and white ; by which change of views they may be said to have washed these garments, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. 15 88 THE SEALS OPENED. The disciple cannot divest himself of his own sinfulness or defilement ; in fact he himself must be ever the same unworthy being, but by sove- reign grace he may be accounted “clothed upon,” (2 Cor. v. 4,) and by faith he may count himself clothed upon with the righteousness of Christ ; and this again, as an act of faith, may be spoken of as the washing of his robe, and making it white in the blood of the Lamb; but, strictly speaking, even in the matter of faith the disciple cannot be said to wash his own robe, any more than he can be said in fact to cleanse himself. ‘The change of position, by which he is purified, is effected by the divine purpose alone: what God has cleansed, and that only, we may add, is no more to be called common, or unclean. So, in respect to the illumination of the mind of the believer, on this subject of doctrine as well as of all others, he can have no power of himself, except it be given him from on high. We accordingly suppose here, as elsewhere in this vision, principles of doctrime are personi- fied, and in apocalyptic language are spoken of, by way of illustration, as human beings, performing a certain operation as of themselves. The prin ciples of the disciple’s faith change the garment of “ filthy rags,” (Is. lxiv. 6,) once trusted in, for the robe pure and white of God’s providing. It is by the Spirit, or power of God, as it is in the blood or atonement of the Lord Jesus, that the believer is washed, and cleansed, and sanctified, (1 Cor. vi. 11, Zech. xii. 1.) Vs. 15, 16. Therefore are they before the throne of God, and serve him day and night in his temple: and he that sitteth on the throne shall dwell among them. They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more; neither shall the sun light on them, nor any heat. τ - , ~ a ~ Διὰ τοῦτο siawxévoertLoy τοῦ Fgovov τοῦ AB ΄ ye ay , ϑεοῦ, καὶ λατρεύουσιν αὐτῷ ἡμέρας καὶ ‘ 2 ~ ~ rd ~ “4 c Α γυχτὸς ἐν τῷ ναῷ αὐτοῦ" χαὶ ὁ καϑήμενος > Ov ΄ a 2 er ΄ ar ey πεινάσουσιν ἔτι, οὐδὲ διψήσουσιν ἔτι, οὐδὲ 1 2 2 ‘ c co > ~ ~ μὴ πέσῃ ἐπ αὑτοὺς ὁ ἡλιος οὐδὲ πᾶν καῦ- δι. ~ , ΄ Cee 2 7, ἐσὺ TOU ϑρόγου σχήνῶσει ET αὐὔυτους. μα, ᾧ 180. ‘Therefore are they before the throne of God, and serve him.’ —tTherefore, that is, as a consequence of the foregoing. They are before the throne of God ; they are continually in the sight of him who is of purer eyes than to look upon iniquity, Hab. i. 13. There can be, therefore, no iniquity in them, and there is not, because of the purification which they are just now said to have undergone ;—and serve him continually, day and night. ‘There is no intermission in this service, during which some other object of service is attended to:—the devotion is perpetual and entire, to God alone: and this as a consequence also of the ablution and deliverance before described. They serve God, too, in his temple,—in the only position in which he can be truly served or worshipped. We have described before the service of God as that which must arise from a principle of gratitude, (ᾧ 98,) something not admitting of a motive of self-interest ; a service having in view only the glory of God, and the CHORUS. 89 fulfilment of his purposes. So long, for example, as the disciple is going about to establish a righteousness, or to work out a propitiation of his own, so long his motive of action must be that of serving himself—promoting his own glory, and fulfilling his own purposes ; but after having been brought to an entire dependence upon what his Redeemer has done in his behalf, he has then no occasion to consult his own interests ; his only remaining motive of conduct is that of gratitude to the author of his salvation. In Christ, as in a temple, he is safe. In Christ, as a priest in the temple of Jehovah, he is provided for; he has no occasion for anxiety about his own welfare. He is thus shut up, in the nature of the case, to a serving of God in the strictest sense of the term. Parallel with this we suppose the principles of doctrine [serving God, and acceptable to him, are those growing out of the system of atonement and vicarious offering, perfected in Christ ; principles of grateful love alone being those contemplated with favourable regard by Him who searcheth the heart, as they are in fact the only principles bearing the characteristics of his service. ς And serve him.’—It is not said that they are to serve God and the Lamb ; because, the work of redemption being now accomplished, Gop is all in all. The Son has given up the kingdom. He has given up his claim to service from the redeemed to the Father. The Lamb was sent to establish this claim: he has performed the work assigned him; he has brought all motives into subjection to this one motive of gratitude for salvation, and he now transfers the whole to the Father. Hence all thus redeemed—-spiritual or natural, disciples or principles—n Christ serve Gop day and night; and this as a consequence of the deliverance wrought out by the Redeemer. The services of the literal temple were typical, both of the sacrifice of Christ and of the grateful self-devotion due from the disciple. But in this portion of the Apocalypse, we may suppose the last only to be contempla- ted. The propitiatory offering is no more to be made. ΑἹ] this portion of the temple service is supposed to have been completed. The thank-offer- ings alone remain to be made: not merely the service of the lips, but of the whole heart and life ; corresponding with the holy and acceptable sacrifice, spoken of by the apostle Paul as the reasonable service of the believer, Rom. xii. 1. Whatever the action be, the motive must be that of a thank-offering, or it will not correspond with the temple-service of the multitude clothed in white. Nor is this principle confined to the conduct, or faith, of the followers of Jesus on this globe of earth alone. It must be a principle universal in its nature. Throughout the vast expanse of immensity—amidst the myriads of worlds around us—no service can be acceptable to God which does not proceed from a grateful motive—a motive universally incumbent 90 THE SEALS OPENED. upon every created being, because the conferring of every benefit by the Creator upon the creature must be an act of Soverrien Grace. ᾧ 181. ‘And he that sitteth on the throne-shall dwell among them.’ —This should have been the commencement of the next verse, as it is more immediately connected with what follows than with what precedes it. The elder is now beginning to set forth what God will do for his redeemed, in addition to what he has done for them in accomplishing their salvation. The language, as it is translated, corresponds with that of the apostle Paul, 2 Cor. vi. 16: “ As God hath said, I will dwell in them, and walk in them ; and I will be their God, and they shall be my people.” There is a difference, however, in the original, in the words employed in the two passa- ges, as there is also some difference between the figures as we have rendered them. In Corinthians the disciples are represented either collectively, or individually, as themselves the temple ; to which it is added, as God has said, ἐνοικήσω ἐν αὐτοῖς, I will inhabit with, in, or amongst them. In the Apoca- lypse the redeemed are represented as worshipping or serving in the temple, to which is added the prediction that God will pitch his tent over them, σχηνώσει ἐπὶ αὐτούς. That is, he will take them under the shelter of his tabernacle : as ; we might suppose a powerful chief in the deserts of Arabia, after having redeemed, or ransomed a number of captives, to pitch for himself and for them an immense tent, under which they are received. He does not go 4 into their dwelling, but he takes them into his. He dwells with them, because he has thus admitted them to this shelter, Ezek. xxxvil. 27. ‘Their protection, as far as covering is concerned, is thus provided for ; as it is said, Is. iv. 6, ‘¢ And there shall be a tabernacle (or tent) for a shadow in the day-time from the heat, and for a place of refuge, and for a covert from storm and from rain,” (see also Rev. xxi. 3.) ‘They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more,’ &c.—This may be an allusion to the gracious provision predicted, Is. xlix. 9 and 10: ‘They shall feed in the ways, and their pastures shall be in the high places. They shall not hunger nor thirst, neither shall the heat nor sun smite them: for he that hath mercy on them shall lead them, even by the springs of water shall he guide them.” The words of the prophet in this passage so nearly accord with those of the elder, that we might almost suppose the one to represent the other —the reader of the book of Isaiah enjoying, in this particular, almost the same privilege as that granted the beloved apostle—that is, an explana- tion on the part of one of the elders of the blessed results of the mystery of redemption. The subjects of this distinguished favour are described, by both of these sacred writers, as clothed with garments of salvation—the robe of imputed righteousness ; as sheltered by the tabernacle of God—the covering of di- CHORUS. 91 vine perfection—a building of God, a house not made with hands,” 2 Cor. v. 1; a home of many mansions, in which there is room enough and to spare, John xiv. 2; as well as an ample provision of food, the means of quenching thirst, and of accomplishing the purposes of purification ; with an assurance of the removal of every cause of sorrow or distress. Happy are they that hunger and thirst after righteousness, it is said, Matt. v. 6, for they shall be filled—a promise, of the fulfilment of which we have here an illustration. ‘The happiness, or blessedness, does not consist in the suffering of hunger and thirst, but in the relief afforded. ‘The suffer- ing affords, however, a token of the coming relief. The multitude clothed in white had suffered hunger and thirst in their state of tribulation, or, as Isaiah represents it, of imprisonment, (Is. xlix. 9,)—“ That thou mayest say to the prisoners, Go forth ; to them that are in darkness, Show yourselves.” They had felt their need of righteousness, and their need of a propitiation. They had experienced their own inability to provide these elements of eter- nal life for themselves. But they are now in a new position—the reason of which is given in the subsequent verse. V.17. For the Lamb which is in the ὅτι τὸ ἀρνίον τὸ ἀνὰ μέσον τοῦ ϑρόνου midst of the throne shall feed them, and Moar αὐτοὺς καὶ δδηγήσει αὐτοὺς ἐπὶ shall lead them unto living fountains of Lunes ὐὴ κάθ ὑδύτῶν, wat! shakelioes eee waters: and God shall wipe away all 5 777 pnt TE Sys ath 5 tears from their eyes. σον δάκρυον EX Τῶν ὀφϑαλμῶν auTwy. § 182. ‘For the Lamb.’—The happy state of the redeemed is repre- sented as a consequence of the purification of their robes in the blood of the Lamb ; but besides this, the Lamb is here exhibited as the efficient cause, or instrument, of bringing them into this state of abundant provision. ‘They hunger no more, and thirst no more, because the Lamb feeds them, and leads them to living fountains ; or, as it is expressed by the prophet, they shall neither hunger nor thirst, because he that hath mercy on them shall lead them by the springs of water: God, in this exercise of his mercy, being in effect the Lamb in the midst of the throne—the propitiatory elements of divine sovereignty. ‘'The Lamb shall feed them.’—The merits of Christ are imputed to them. He furnishes the means of their eternal life. The Lamb leads them to living fountains—Christ himself, is the instrument of bringing the sinner to the means of purification from all his transgressions. The fountain opened for sin and for all uncleanness is the atonement—the full and abundant atone- ment offered by the Son of God. Adopted in Christ, the disciple shares in this atonement with all its benefits. Christ is the instrument of making: his own propitiation efficient for the pardon of his followers. The atoning blood of the Lamb, in which their robes have been washed, being also for 92 THE SEALS OPENED. them the well-spring of water, springing up unto eternal life, John iv. 14. He feeds, (ποιμανεῖ,) as a shepherd, his flock—* He shall feed his flock like a shepherd: he shall gather the lambs with his arms, and carry them in his bosom, and shall gently lead those that are with young,” (Is. xl. 11 ;) or, as it is said of him by David, He maketh me, (as the instrument or efficient cause,) he maketh me to lie down in green pastures: he leadeth me beside the still waters, (Ps. xxii. 2.) The source of the benefit is divine Sovereignty itself—the instrument by which it is conveyed, is Christ; as if we were to suppose the throne to represent a store-house, whence the supply of righteousness, or merit, is obtained ;—the Lamb, the Son, acting with full powers, takes of this supply and imparts of it to his followers, (John v. 26,)* as David, a type in this matter of Jesus, took of the shew bread from the temple, and gave it to his companions. The figures in this description, and in the parallel passages quoted from the Old Testament, are drawn from pastoral life ; such as it is in countries where shelter for the flocks at noon, on account of the extreme heat, is even more desirable than a covering at night. ‘The whole passage might be more freely, though as correctly, thus rendered: “ And God shall pitch his tent over them; they shall no more pine with hunger, nor be famished with thirst, neither shall the noon-day sun fall upon them, nor shall they suffer from extreme heat ; for the Lamb which is in the midst of the throne shall be their shepherd, and shall pasture them, and shall lead them to fountains of water.” ᾧ 183. ‘ And God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes.’ —This, we must remember, is spoken of those who came out of great tribulation—who had experienced the suffering from hunger, and thirst, and burning heat, from which they are now protected. If principles, as we suppose, in con- formity with the general tenor of the Apocalypse, they are personified as converts who have lamented, and have had occasion to lament their destitu- tion of righteousness, their need of propitiation, the insufficiency of their works, or merits, to withstand the trial of the fire destined to try every man’s works—that which is to burn as an oven or furnace, (Mal. iv. 1.) With the King of Israel they might have said, “ My tears have been my meat day and night,” (Ps. xlii. 3;) but now, with him also they may say, “ Return unto thy rest, O my soul, for the Lord hath dealt bountifully * “Horas the Father hath life in himself, so hath he given to the Sen to have life in himself :” that is, as the Father hath in himself the means of eternal life, (righteous- ness,) so hath he given unto the Son to have in himself the same means; which means he imparts to his followers, as it is figuratively expressed, by giving them his own flesh to eat; or, spiritually, imputing to them his own righteousness, CHORUS. 93 with thee,” (Ps. exvi. 7.) As it is also said, Is. xxv. 8, “ He will swal- low up death in victory ; and the Lord God will wipe away tears from all faces.” There is a godly sorrow which worketh a repentance unto life, not to be repented of; such we suppose to be the sorrow for sin and the sense of unworthiness leading to the sin-atoning Lamb, and resulting in the blessing of salvation—a result, of which the foregoing description of the elder affords a picture; and a result to which the prophet (perhaps mystically an elder) very plainly alludes, (Is. li. 11)— Therefore, the redeemed of the Lord shall return, and come with singing unto Zion ; and everlasting joy shall be upon their heads. They shall obtain gladness and joy, and sorrow and mourning shall flee away.” § 184. We have thus been presented, in this development of the sixth seal, Rev. vi. 12, vii. L7, with two several exhibitions of very opposite characters, two different classes of figures, two different conditions of men, two entirely different positions in matters of faith. On the one hand, a picture of distress and anxious apprehension ; on the other, a picture of joy and relief from all anxiety, or alarm, either for the present or future. One exhibition presents us with a scene of gloom, and darkness, and terrific commotion ; the other is a representation of perfect quietness, peace, and security. The one offers a prospect of immediate destruction ; the other that of eternal safety. We see the miserable subjects of one picture, in the midst of a general shaking of the earthly elements, flying to dens and caves of the mountains ; an expedient apparently, on such an occasion, the worst that could be adopted. The subjects of the other picture, having come out of a scene of trial and affliction—having found the only true means of afety —appear in white robes with tokens of victory, ascribing their deliverance to God and to the Lamb. With the members of one of these classes, there appears to be no hope —their view of their own position seems to be that of perfect desperation ; with the other, every hope is fulfilled. To the first, it may be said, in the language of the prophet, “ Fear, and the pit, and the snare, are upon thee, O inhabitant of the earth. And it shall come to pass, that he who fleeth from the noise of the fear shall fall into the pit ; and he that cometh up out of the midst of the pit shall be taken in the snare: for the windows from on high are open, and the foundations of the earth do shake,” Is. xxiv. 17, 18. The condition of the last appears to be parallel with that of which the same prophet sets forth the rich provision: “ And in this mountain shall the Lord of hosts make unto all people a feast of fat things, a feast of wines on the lees ; of fat things full of marrow, of wines on the lees well refined.” ‘ And it shall be said in that day, Lo, this is our God; we have waited for him: . . » » we will be glad and rejoice in his salvation,” Is, xxv. 6 and 9. 94 THE SEALS OPENED. This contrast illustrates the conditions and the views of those out of Christ, and of those in Christ: the consternation and the destitution of the one, and the certain comfort and consolation of the other. We are not restricted to the supposition that the reality of these pictures is to be found only in a future state of existence. The illustration may be applied to the difference of views entertained in this life by the self-right- eous and self-sufficient professor of Christianity on the one hand ; and those of the humble, hoping, trusting, confiding believer in Jesus, on the other. The revelation, as its introductory addresses purport, is intended for the instruction, and admonition, and comfort of the-churches of Christ. Their errors are pointed out, and they are rebuked and chastened. ‘The illustra- tion is that of the difference between the various systems of doctrine of pro- fessing Christianity, or those who cal] themselves Christians, and the truth as it is in Jesus. The infidel, the pagan, the Mahometan, as such, can hardly be supposed to be alluded to, as immediately connected with the design of this unveiling. Nor are we obliged to confine this illustration to the peculiar views of individuals just at the moment when they leave this state of existence— when their sentiments, as well as their approaching fate, may be said to be unchangeably fixed. It appears rather intended to depict the different pro- cesses taking place successively in the mind of the same individual—show- ing the change operated in the faith of the disciple, from the time of his conviction of his own entire unworthiness, to that of his simple reliance on the merits of his Saviour. : The careless, reckless unbeliever, living without God and without hope, and dying as the brutes that perish, can hardly be said to suffer tribulation in this life ; but‘those convinced of sin, of righteousness, and of judgment, anxiously though ignorantly endeavouring to establish a claim to salvation of their own, may strictly be said to be in a position of pressure and com- pression, and to come out of this tribulation, having washed their robes in the blood of the Lamb, when their faith becomes sufficiently enlightened to trust to the perfect work of Christ’s sufferimg in their behalf. They have been flying from rock to rock, and from cavern to cavern; from the noise of the fear to the pit, and from the pit to the snare. To them the Lamb appears only as a Judge—they anticipate only his wrath—they are indeed in great tribulation. Suppose them now to hear the voice of mercy :, “ Save him from going down to the pit! I have found a ransom!” suppose them now trusting to the atonement of their Saviour, and confiding in the efficacy of his righteousness: surely it may be said of them, that they have come out of great tribulation. We suppose the principles of two systems to be painted in this exhibi- tion: the commotion and the change depicted, being such as may take CHORUS. 95 place in the mind of every disciple of the Christian faith. The kings, the captains, and the mighty men of one picture, representing principles opposed to the system of salvation by sovereign grace; while the multitudes clothed in white represent a corresponding multitude of truths virtually ascribing salvation to God and to the Lamb alone. In confirmation of this, we may note that the exhibition at the close of the sixth chapter is that of a state of apprehension only, leaving room for the subsequent coming in of something like an unexpected means of deliver- ance; if not for all, at least for a portion of those who are suffering the deep anxiety and dread so strongly depicted. 96 THE SEVENTH SEAL, CHAP PE Revit THE SEVENTH SEAL, AND FOUR FIRST TRUMPETS. V.1. And when he had opened the καὶ ὅτε ἤνοιξε τὴν σφραγῖδα, τὴν §300- seventh seal, there was silence in heaven WY, Fd ἕγετο σιγγ ἐν τῷ οὐρανῷ ὡς ιώ- about the space of half an hour. yee γὴ i θΘι0». ᾧ 185. ‘And when he had opened,’ or, when he was opening, ‘ the seventh seal, there was silence,’ &c.— Silence in the Hebrew sometimes expresses rest ; a pause, during which nothing is done, (Cruden’s Concord.) The duration is not to be taken strictly, but as it is in the Greek, as it were half an hour. As in a dramatic exhibition a pause of half an hour, or ‘thereabouts, in the representation would denote not merely a change of scene but a change in the acts; so here we may suppose the pause indi- cates the commencement of a new sertes—something for which the previous representations had been preparatory: the silence at the same time enabling the reader, or the spectator, to take a retrospective glance at the past, in order to prepare his mind the better for that which is to come. An hour, indeed, might be supposed to represent a teme, or prophetic term of 360 days of years; the half hour thus expressing a chronological lapse of time of 180 years. But this does not appear to accord so well with the general term of the vision ; especially taking into consideration, as we shall see, that time in this vision is no longer (Ὁ 230) to be contem- plated in a literal sense. ‘The previous developments are not such as to involve the necessity of chronological succession, and the riders of the four horses apparently go all forth at the same time, each having his peculiar functions to perform. ‘The souls under the altar are in the interim4n a state of impatient expectation, and the different exhibitions of approaching judgment and of merciful provision simultaneously grow out, as we may suppose, of the four equestrian powers of development. 'The exhibition of the blissful position of the great multitude clothed in white, resulting from the action of the rider of the white horse, with his bow and crown ; and the awful spectacle of those who are without Christ and without hope, being a consequence of the joint actions of the riders upon the red, black, and green horses. The first showing the earthly system to afford no peace or recon- THE SEVEN TRUMPETS. 97 ciliation with God, its principles themselves being at war with each other ; the second exhibiting the standard of divine judgment ; and the third, with his attendant; showing the liability to judgment, and the certainty of con- demnation : all of which elements enter into the picture of imminent danger, utter helplessness, and extreme desperation, so vividly painted at the close of the sixth chapter. We are now to call to mind the position of things at the opening of the seventh seal. On the one hand, there is a fearful looking for of judgment, and of fiery indignation—a dread of impending wrath ; but the judgment, and the indignation or wrath are not yet exhibited as in actual operation. All the visible elements, it is true, are in commotion, and the hitherto self- confident inhabitants of the earth are awakened to a sense of their insecurity, and their need of a refuge—but the wrath itself has not yet come. On the other hand we see those so provided for that, whatever happen, they have nothing to apprehend ; the trying moment, however, even with these, has not yet approached, although, whenever it comes they are prepared for it. Their garments are white, not with a cleansing element of their own pro- viding, but washed in the blood of the Lamb. They have a covert from the storm, Is. xxxii. 2, and from the burning heat, Is. iv. 6 ; and they have the assurance, that their bread shall be given them, and their water shall be sure, (Is. xxxiil. 16.) Possibly, as we have suggested, (ὃ 81,) the first class may be finally merged in the second, or partially so, having under- gone a corresponding change of views. Under the recollection of the peculiar circumstances of these two differ- ent classes of expectants, we are now to attend to the particulars of the »wrathful visitation of which we have hitherto only contemplated the coming. V. 2. And I saw the seven*angels Kai εἶδον τοὺς ἐπτὰ ἀγγέλους, οἵ ἐνώπιον which stood before God; and to them τοῦ ϑεοῦ ἑστήκασι, καὶ ἐδόϑησαν αὐτοῖς were given seven trumpets. ἑπτὰ σάλπιγγες. ᾧ 186. ‘And I saw the seven angels.’—There are no seven angels previously spoken of as standing before God. The seven angels of the seven churches, represented by the seven stars in the hand of one like unto the Son of man, could hardly be considered as the seven angels which stood before God. ‘These angels are probably the seven spirits, spoken of as before the throne, (Rev. i. 4;) especially as Paul, speaking of the angels, represents them all as “ ministering spirits, sent forth to minister to them who shall be heirs of salvation,’ Heb. i. 14. This function being also that of the Comforter, these seven angels before God must be, as we have sup- posed, the seven spirits before the throne, (¢ 9)—so many emanations or elements of the Holy Spirit, constituting also a totality. ‘ And to them were given seven trumpets. —Each of these elements of . 98 THE SEVENTH SEAL. the Holy Spirit being charged with making his peculiar revelation, or with teaching a certain truth, or series of truths. This teaching being intended to be public and for the benefit of all, the commission to perform these several functions is figuratively spoken of as the giving of a trumpet. The trumpet of ancient times, in the hands of the herald, or of the trumpeter, was not merely the instrument of calling attention to the command uttered ; it also made known the authority by which the command was given, and itself announced by certain variations of sound the particulars of this command ; as itis said, (1 Cor. xiv. 8,) “If the trumpet give an uncertain sound, who shall prepare himself to the battle ?”” The trumpet, therefore, in the hands of these angels, may be supposed to represent an instrument or means of revealing the truths uttered. As the walls of Jericho fell after the repeated sounds of the trumpets of the priests, (Joshua vi. 8-16,) so the bulwarks of erroneous systems are demolished after repeated revelations or develop- ments of truth ; as it is said, also, 1 Thess. iv. 16, ‘‘ The Lord himself shall descend from heaven witha shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with the trump of God.” We do not suppose either the shout, the voice, or the trumpet, to be literally understood here ; but the manifestation spoken of is to be made through some instrumentality analogous to these: it being evident that the trump or trumpet of God is something very different in reality from the trumpet of a man, or even that of a priest. The use of the trumpet, however, amongst the Hebrews, was not con- fined to purposes of alarm, or to the utterance of comniands. We find the instrument spoken of, Ps. χουν]. 6, as making a joyful noise before the Lord ; and 1 Chron. xii. 8, They played with trumpets, as well as with cymbals. ‘The character of the revelation or proclamation, therefore, musts be gathered from the circumstances under which the instrument is supposed to be employed. ; In the great change described by Paul, 1 Cor. xv. 22, the last trumpet is spoken of, apparently intimating the sounding of certain previous trumpets ; all of which may have some correspondence with the action of the seven trumpets committed to these seven angels. V. 3. And another angel came and stood at the altar, having a golden censer; and there was given unto him much in- cense, that he should offer (it) with the prayers of all saints upon the golden altar which was before the throne. Καὶ ἄλλος ἄγγελος ἦλϑε, χαὶ ἐστάϑη ἐπὶ τὸ ϑυσιαστήριον ἔχων λιβανωτὸν χρυσοῦν" καὶ ἐδόϑη αὐτῷ ϑυμιάματα πολλά, ἵνα δώσῃ ταῖς προςευχαῖς τῶν ἁγίων πάντων ἐπὶ τὸ ϑυσιαστήριον τὸ χρυσοῦν τὸ ἐνώπιον τοῦ ϑρόνο U. § 187. The seven trumpets are given to the seven angels, but the description of the effects of their sounding is yet delayed, apparently to describe some process or processes going on at the same time. While the THE ALTAR OF INCENSE. 99 scene of judgment is being enacted, glory, and praise, and thanks, continue to be ascribed to God. ‘Another angel came.’—While the seven angels are commissioned to develope the purposes of God, another messenger, or instrument of revealing truth, is commissioned to develope what is doing amongst the redeemed, as also amongst others of an opposite character. ‘ And stood at the altar, having a golden censer.’—The altar we have already considered the purpose of God—the Logos, Christ under a certain aspect, (ὃ 161.) It is spoken of as golden, because the composition—the material—is pure truth; capable of standing the test or the trial of any assay. The censer, also of gold, is the instrument with which the incense is offered: it must represent some principle or instrumentality of truth, by which the offerings are set apart and made acceptable to God. The peculiar quality of incense is its sweet smell ; a smell, as it is used in the Kast, overcoming all others, and consequently overcoming all unpleasant odours. Thus, incense may be put for the quality in any sacrifice by which the offering is made acceptable to God. No propitiatory offering, as we learn from the whole tenor of divine revelation, can be acceptable to God, except it be made by Jesus Christ ; hence, incense is put for the atonement itself, as we find from the direction given to Aaron, Numbers xvi. 46-48: “ Take a censer, and put fire therein from off the altar, and put on incense, and go quickly into the congregation, and make an atonement for them, for there is wrath gone out from the Lord; the plague is begun. And Aaron took as Moses commanded, and ran into the midst of the congregation ; and behold, the plague was begun amongst the people: and he put in incense, and made an atonement for the people, and he stood between the dead and the living ; and the plague was stayed.” The incense was not all that was required. It must be offered by the high priest—Moses could not offer it; so the atonement of the Christian economy can only be offered by the high priest of our profession. Christ, however, is not only the priest, but the incense also; the sacrifice carrying in itself its acceptable qual- ity: as it is said, Eph. v. 2, that he hath given himself for us; an offering and a sacrifice to God of a sweet-smelling savour. On a cer- tain principle of gratitude, nevertheless, the disciple may offer his body an acceptable sacrifice, or thank-offering, Rom. xii. 1 ; and it is said, 2 Cor. ii. 15, that “ we are to God a sweet savour of Christ:’”? So, after the patriarch Noah had experienced the signal preservation vouchsafed him and his family, he built an altar and offered a sacrifice, evidently not in order that he might be delivered from peril, but because he had been deliy- ered: and the Lord’smelled, it is said, a sweet savour, Gen. viil. 21. The incense offered by the angel may thus represent the atonement, or propitiatory merits of Christ, going up with the prayers of saints; or it may 100 THE SEVENTH SEAL. represent that principle of gratitude resulting from the intercession of Christ, which renders the offerings of disciples acceptable to God. The angel standing in the place of the priest must represent Christ in his priestly character, by whom alone we have access unto God, and through whom alone our prayers or our worship can be accepted. The altar we may presume to be described as before the throne, because God has his purpose of mercy in Christ always in view, and always a subject of complacency. Vs. 4,5. And the smoke of the incense, καὶ ἀνέβη ὃ καπνὸς τῶν ϑυμιαμάτων ταῖς (which came) with the prayers of the προςευχαῖς τῶν ἁγίων ἐκ χειρὸς τοῦ ἀγγέλου saints, ascended up before God out of the RIESE 2 SNES NE MD. angel’s hands. And the angel took the ~, BOREL SSO Pet O SOUS τὸν λιβανωτὸν, καὶ ἐγέμισεν αὐτὸν ἐκ TOU censer, and filled it with fire of the altar, and cast (it) into the earth: and there πυρὸς τοῦ ϑυσιαστηρίου, καὶ ἔβαλεν εἰς τὴν were voices, and thunderings, and light- γῆν: καὶ ἐγένοντο φωναὺ καὶ βρονταὶ καὶ nings, and an earthquake. ἀστραπαὶ καὶ σεισμός. ᾧ 188. “Απα the smoke of the incense, with the prayers,’ &c.—This smoke may be denominated the vehicle by which the prayers are made to ascend ; the ascending before God being expressive of the favour with which these prayers are received: that is, they are rendered an acceptable sacrifice, Rom. xii. 1, by being incorporated with the offering of Christ— the sacrifice to God for a sweet-smelling savour, Eph. v. 2. These prayers of the saints, as before suggested, (ὃ 139,) are put for acts of worship gene- rally ; or for the entire self-devotion virtually constituting an act of wor- ship. No doubt the same prayers as those mentioned Rev. v. 8, in posses- sion of the twenty-four elders—retained, we may suppose, till they could go up with the smoke of the incense; the human offering being permitted to ascend before the Lord, only under cover of the divine oblation. So Aaron was directed (Lev. xvi. 12 and 18) to take ἃ censer full of burning coals of fire from off the altar, before the Lorn; and his hands full of sweet incense beaten small, and bring it within the vail: and to put incense upon the fire before the Lorn, that the cloud of incense might cover the mercy- seat: and this, it is added, ‘that he die not.” The apostle may be said to have witnessed on this occasion an illus- tration of the efficiency of Christ’s merits in rendermg the service of his fol- lowers, subsequent to their redemption, acceptable in the sight of God. ‘And the angel took the censer, and filled it with fire,’ &c.—The fire from the altar was necessary to elicit the perfume affording a sweet savour ; so the fire of the divine word, or revealed purpose of God, is requisite to elicit the principle upon which alone the disciple’s offermg of service can be acceptable. ς And cast it into the earth, and there were voices, and thunderings,’ &c. —The same element of trial, the fire of the altar, which exhibits the accept- able character of a grateful service, consequent to the work of Christ, is also the means of exhibiting the rigid character of the legal dispensation. ‘The THE FIRST TRUMPET. 101 voices, thunderings, lightnings, and shakings, constituting the paraphernalia of Sinai, show us that the fire, which is to try every man’s work, when applied to the earthly system, must necessarily prove the tendency of that system to condemnation, in respect to those dependent upon it ; while, in its action upon the heavenly system, it opens the access by which alone the services of the sinful but redeemed creature may be accepted. ‘The effect of the casting of this fire to the earth is that of showing the earthly system to be a legal system, and its dependents necessarily elements of self-right- eousness ; the exhibition of this twofold process of the altar-service being a prelude of the more extended illustrations about to be presented. Vs.6,7. And the seven angels which had the seven trumpets prepared themselves to sound. The first angel sounded, and - X Ὁ oy 4. 5, Ο» ‘ © ‘ Καὶ ot ἑπτὰ ἀγγέλοι οἱ ἔχοντες τὰς ἕπτ ’ c > ’ ͵ fs σάλπιγγας ἡτοίμασιν eavToLs, va σαλπί- there followed hail and fire mingled with blood, and they were cast upon the earth: and the third part of trees was burnt up, and all green grass was burnt up. oS ς ~ > , Ν ΓΕ Ὲ σωσι. Kati ὃ πρῶτος ἐσάλπισε, καὶ ἐγένετο χάλαζα καὶ πῦρ μεμιγμένα ἐν αἵματι, καὶ > , ‘ ~ ‘ ~ ~ ἐβλήϑη εἰς τὴν γῆν: καὶ TO τρίτον τῆς γῆς ’ ι - ' κατεκάη, καὶ TO τρίτον τῶν δένδρων κατε- ~ 4 ι ΄ κάη, καὶ πᾶς χόρτος χλωρὸς κατεκάη. ᾧ 189. ‘And the seven angels which had the seven trumpets prepared themselves to sound.’—An intimation of the simultaneous action of these trumpets. It is not said that the first angel prepared himself to sound, and afterwards, that the second angel did so, but they all prepared themselves together, and may be supposed to have sounded together, although the apos- tle could hear and describe but one ata time. The revelation of the events or things represented, we may suppose to be coincident, or synchronical, if indeed time is at all to be taken into consideration in respect to them. The action referred to by the several trumpets we do not suppose to be neces- sarily successive, unless we make an exception as to the three last, or woe- trumpets ; and here the separation may be rather in the sense than in the time, that is, time in a historical sense. We suppose the blasts of these several trumpets to be progressive developments of truth ; by which espe- cially the anti-Christian system, comprehending perhaps all false systems, is to be overthrown. The attack upon this system may have been pre- figured in some degree by the storming of the city of Jericho, as already cited : the sounding of the last angel’s trumpet, corresponding with the last day’s sounding of the priests, with their rams’ horns, under the conduct of Joshua, (Jesus,) the type of Christ. ‘The first angel sounded, and there followed hail and fire mingled with blood.’-—Hail and fire, in a natural or physical sense, are elements of the most opposite characters ; but in a spiritual sense, as figuratively em- ployed here, a like quality is attributed to both. Both are destructive instruments, and as such are repeatedly associated in Scripture exhibitions of the wrath of Almighty God; as it is said of Egypt—He gave them hail 102 THE SEVENTH SEAL. for rain, and flaming fire in their land. And as, in a spiritual sense, fire is represented to be the instrument of trying every doctrine or work ; so, in the same sense, hail is spoken of as the means of exposing the fallacy of every vain scheme of salvation: ‘“‘ Because ye have said, We have made a cove-" nant with death, and with Hades, are we (or we are) at agreement ; when the overflowing scourge shall pass through, it shall not come unto us: for we have made lies our refuge, and under falsehood have we hid ourselves : therefore, thus saith the Lord God, Behold, I lay in Zion for a foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious corner stone, a sure foundation: he that believeth shall not make haste. Judgment also will I lay to the line, and righteousness (justice) to the plummet: and the hail shall sweep away the refuge of lies, and the waters shall overflow the hiding-place. And your covenant with death shall be disannulled, and your agreement with Hades shall not stand,” Is. xxvii. 15-18. The same element of divine power which, when mercifully employed, falls like showers upon the mown grass, when sent judicially, is condensed (transformed) into a destructive agent. So, the same rays of the Sun of righteousness which, as messengers of mercy, appear to be instruments of consolation, when falling in judgment upon subjects of divine displeasure, are like the burning heat scorching the parched earth, and destroying vege- table as well as animal life. § 190 ‘ Mangled with blood.’—Blood is the life of the animal, and is accordingly a figure of the element of divine justice, demanding the life of the sinner. Like fire and water, however, blood has both its benign and its vindictive signification: the blood of Christ cleanseth from all sin; the blood of man is the witness of his guilt, the evidence of his pollution, and, like the blood of Abel, calls from the earth for vengeance. 'The blood of Christ is represented by the purifying, vivifyng element of water, when it is exhibited in showers, or fountains, or as a river of life; but if we sup- pose in the figure a shower of blood to be substituted for water, as was the case in Egypt, (Ex. vii. 1,) it is evident that the visitation is one of judg- ment, and not of mercy ; an element of putrefaction and of death is substi- tuted for one of life. Such we suppose to be the character of the exhibition elicited by the opening of the first seal. It is an exposure of the vindictive features of the judicial economy in their severest aspect. ‘ And they were cast upon the earth :’—or, according to the Latin of Leusden, missa sunt, they are sent to the earth. The earth we suppose to be a false system, or a system of a legal character—false, so far as it professes to provide a means of salvation for a guilty world. Its elements for the most part are false in the same rela- tion. There may be some exceptions, however; as the one hundred and forty-four thousand sealed ones were exceptions, amongst the other inhabit- THE FIRST TRUMPET. 103 ants of the earth, (Rev. vii. 3.) The elements of judicial visitation repre- sented by fire, hail, and blood, we may suppose to be brought to bear upon this legal or fallacious system, with its peculiar features. ‘The system has already proved to be false, and is now about to be destroyed—judgment having been laid to the line, and justice to the plummet: as an architect, after having ascertained by the line and plummet the deviation of the wall of his building from the true line of gravity, determines upon its entire destruction. § 191. ‘And the third part of the earth was burned up.’—This is not in our common English version, but it is found in the editions of the Greek generally supposed to be most correct, (vide Rob. ed. New Testament, New-York, 1842.) ‘The third part,’ τὸ zg’zov—The word part, it is to be noticed, is sup- plied in our translation in this and in other like places where the term is used. In the original, the words the third are all that is expressed, leaving the reader to supply the term apparently the most appropriate. It is very evident that this term part, τὸ μέρος, if admitted, is not to be construed | literally ; it must signify something else than a material part, and we have perhaps as good ground for supposing the word νόημα to be understood, as the word μέρος, or in English, the word sense, as part. ‘The Greek words being of the same gender, and νόημα being employed by ecclesiastical writers to express the spiritual sense, as opposed to the literal sense of the sacred writings—apud scriptores ecclesiast. νόημα notat sensum Scripture, et oppo- nitur 7% γράμματι, (Suiceri Lex.) We suppose, then, by the third of the earth, or of the trees, or of any thing else, in apocalyptic language, the thing spoken of is to be understood in its third sense, and that this third sense is its spiritual sense : accordingly we say here, “ And the earth in its third, or spiritual sense, was burned up.” In the version of Cranmer, 1539, to avoid the difficulty, it is said, “ And the thirde parte of the erth was set on fyre, and the thirde parte of trees was burnt,” (Bagster’s Hexapla,) but there is nothing to warrant this qualification in the original. ‘The Greek term trans- lated burnt, is the same as that employed by Peter in his prediction of the en- tire combustion and destruction of the earth, and of the things that are therein. It is said, Zech. xiii. 8, 9, “ And it shall come to pass in all the land, saith the Lord, two parts therein shall be cut off and die; the third shall be left therein, and I will bring the third (part) through the fire, and will refine them as silver is refined, and will try them as gold is tried :” or, according to the Septuagint, ‘and it shall be in all the earth, ἐν πάσῃ τῆ γῆ, says the Lord, the two parts of it, (that is, of the earth and all that belongs to it,) shall be utterly destroyed, and come to an end ; but the ¢hard shall remain, or survive in it; and I will bring the third through the fire, and I will submit them to the test of fire, as silver is submitted to the test, and I will try them as gold is tried.’ All three parts are to be tried, but the third only is to survive the trial. 16 104 THE SEVENTH SEAL. The words τὰ δυὸ μέρη, the two parts, are here used, it is true, but the term μέρος, Heb. in this passage 13, Lat. 0s, Trom. Concord., has also several sig- nifications, such as part, share, particular, head, respect, (Rob. Lex. 440.)* The third part, third time, third day, month, and year, and even the third heavens, are particularly distinguished in Scripture ; the third seeming to carry with it an idea of completion, or of perfection, not belonging to the other two; accordingly, if we substitute the term sense for part, we shall readily perceive that if there are three senses in which a figure or figurative passage may be understood, the third sense is the real or abiding sense—that which will remain when the other two are done with, or no longer needed. We say, for example, that the earth, the trees, &c., are destroyed in their third sense ; not that the sense is destroyed, but that the thing spoken of is destroyed, in this third, or spiritual sense. § 192. The three senses we suppose to be the material, the metaphori- cal, and the spiritual. “The sense in which any particular passage of Scripture is to be understood is to be known by the context, and the cir- cumstances under which the term is employed. When it is said of Saul, Acts ix. 4—8, that he fell to the earth, and rose from the earth, it is plain that the material or physical earth is spoken of. When it is said, 1 Kings x. 24, all the earth sought to Solomon, it is equally evident that the term is metaphorical—the earth being put for the inhabitants of the earth, and the term all expressing hyperbolically all the then known nations of the earth; but when it is said, Is. xii. 13, The earth shall remove out of her place, and Rey. xx. 11, From whose face the earth fled away, it is certain that neither this material globe of earth nor the mass of its inhabitants is alluded to. ‘The term cannot but be understood in a third sense, and this we call the spiritual or analogical sense. That is, as the earth in a physical or natural sense is that which affords to man the means of life, and upon which he depends, so, in a sense analogical to this, the spiritual earth of the Apoca- lypse is that legal system which supposes man to be dependent upon his own works or merits, and this spiritual sense we call the third of the earth, τὸ τρίτον νόημα τῆς γῆς: So in the Scriptural uses of the term light, we take the first sense to be literally physical light, the second sense, meta- phorivally, intellectual light, and the third sense, spiritually, righteousness or the glory of moral perfection. So likewise the term heaven, or heavens, * There is an apparent contradiction in these two passages; the third being in one case preserved, and fin the other destroyed. We suppose, however, the prophet to refer to the mode of interpreting the figurative language of Revelation,— pointing out the sense which is to endure the predicted trial. ‘The description of the Apocalypse, on the contrary, applies to the subject which in this enduring sense is to be destroyed ; by a figure of speech the third of ships, trees, &c., being put for these things spoken of spiritually, that is, in this third or enduring sense. THE FIRST TRUMPET 105 in its physical sense expresses the atmosphere around the earth, with the stars, planets, &c., as they appear to the human eye: in its metaphori- cal sense, all that we commonly understand by the revelation of heavenly things contained in the Scriptures, as ordinarily understood : in its third sense, an exhibition of the whole scheme of divine government, as contained in the Scriptures, spiritually understood ; manifesting the glory of God, especially in the work of redemption, analogically with the display of his wondrous works in the material firmament around us. This spiritual heaven, or dis- play of the divine economy, is apparently the third heaven or paradise spoken of by Paul, 2 Cor. xii. 2 and 4; Paul being caught up to this third heaven, in the same sense that John was in Spirit in heaven, imme- diately after seeing the door opened, and hearing the invitation, ‘“ Come up hither.” The design, in both cases, was that of communicating certain special revelations to these two favoured individuals ; the difference between the circumstances of the two apostles being principally this, that while one heard unspeakable words, which he was not permitted to repeat, the other received his revelation expressly for the purpose of transmitting it to his fellow-servants of every age and country. §$,193. The later Jews, it is said, (Rob. Lex. 526, 527,) spoke of three heavens: the atmosphere immediately around the earth, the space above this atmosphere, in which the stars were supposed to be placed, and the ethereal space beyond, considered the peculiar residence of Deity. We cannot suppose Paul to have adopted this mistaken theory, intending to be understood as having been literally taken up three strata of atmosphere, especially when perhaps none more readily than Paul would admit that the Deity can enlighten the mind of man as much and as well in one material atmosphere as in another. ‘The sense,’ says Robinson, “is, that he had received the most intimate and perfect communication of the divine will ;’ and this we suppose to be equivalent to what we denominate the enjoyment of an exhibition of heaven, or of paradise, in its third or spiritual sense. Paul, howevér, may have drawn his figure for illustration from this Jewish notion. If we choose to spiritualize the three heavens of Paul, so that they may all bear an analogy to the three Jewish heavens, the result will be nearly the same. The view of divine things afforded by the prophecies, types, institutions, and shadows of the Old Testament, may constitute the first, appearing as these do through the murky atmosphere of a literal understanding. Such we may suppose to be the view enjoyed by the patriarchs of old, as it was gradually unfolded by a succession of these figures. The second heaven we may say is that exhibition of the divine economy which we have in the literal or ordinary meaning of the New Testament, in which the material blood and body of the Lord Jesus are taken as the 106 THE SEVENTH SEAL. elements of his propitiatory sacrifice. A view to which, generally speaking, the faith of disciples has been hitherto for the most part confined. ‘This is an atmosphere clearer than the last, but still it is physical, natural, material, and literal. The third heaven we suppose to exhibit the same things or objects, but with their spiritual meaning; the atonement of Christ, or his substitution of himself, and God in him, in behalf of the sinner, and his righteousness imputed to the disciple, occupying the places of the material blood and body of Jesus. Such a view awaits the believer in the next state of exist- ence ; such a view we suppose to have been enjoyed by the apostles, Paul and John; and such a view may be enjoyed, even in this life, whenever the eyes of the disciple’s understanding are fully enlightened. Something like this, apparently, having been contemplated by the martyr Stephen, when filled with the Holy Spirit, he saw heaven opened, the glory of God and Jesus standing on the right hand of God, Acts. vil. 56. We have indulged the more freely in these suggestions as to the third part, because, as we shall find, the term repeatedly occurs, and appears to be susceptible of no other construction than that here put upon it. The earth, then, in its third sense, was burned up. ‘That is, the effect of the development resulting from the proclamation of this first trumpet was to destroy the earth, or legal system—the self-righteous platform of erro- neous views, figuratively spoken of as the earth—the fire with the hail being the fire to try every man’s work. § 194. ‘ And the third ( part) of trees,’ &c.—As the apostle Peter says, (2 Peter iii. 10,) the earth, with the works that are therein, shall be burned up, so it is said here that, with the third of the earth, the third also of the trees, and all green grass, or all kinds of herbage, were, in the same sense, burnt up. The word translated green is the same as that rendered pale when it is applied to the colour of a horse, (Rev. vi. 8;) and we might accordingly say here, and all pale grass; but we have already shown that the word strictly signifies green, and nothing else, at least in the Apocalypse. The word translated grass is said to apply especially to fodder for cat- tle; green fodder must signify this herbage while attached to the earth, furnishing both food for animals, and clothing or covering for the earth ; while fodder not green would apply only to the same herbage disconnected from the earth. Hay and stubble, it is true, would be judged by man most fit subjects for fire ; but what is here contemplated, we apprehend, is to show those things in which human pride is most prone to glory, to be those which God counts as worthless, and deals with only as chaff. As we have supposed the earth to be the figure of a system, or econo- my of salvation, in which man finds, as he thinks, a place of security—a THE SECOND TRUMPET. 107 rest, a foundation upon which to depend—so we suppose trees and green herbage to be appendages of the same system, so many principles emana- ting from and depending upon it. ‘Trees afford shade and shelter, protection and refuge to birds, and means of concealment and hiding places for man and other animals ; they afford also, in a degree, shelter from the scorch- Adam and Eve, after their first act of disobedience, Trees, there- ing rays of the sun. hid themselves, as they thought, in the trees of the garden. fore, as figures, are equivalent to a certain class of refuges of lies—fallacious principles of doctrine, exhibiting supposed means of safety from the requisi- tions of divine justice. So green grass, as a clothing of the earth, as well as an element of food, may represent pretensions to righteousness formed from the vain estimate of human merits—like grass beautiful in appearance, but of short duration, withering and fading away as soon as tried by the fire of that ordeal, of which it is said, it shall burn as an oven. Vs. 8,9. And the second angel sound- Ye , m” > 7 “18 ἱ Kat ὁ δεύτερος ἄγγελος ἐσαλπισε, καὶ ὡς ed, and as it were ἃ great mountain burn- or ’ Η , ἱ ΄ > ‘ Og0g μέγα πυρὶ καιόμενον ἐβληϑὴ εἰς THY ing with fire was cast into the sea: and the third (part) of the sea became blood ; and the third (part) of the creatures which were in the sea, and had life, died; and ἰῇ third (part) of the ships were destroy- ed. " ' ~ ϑάλασσαν: καὶ ἐγένετο τὸ τρίτον τῆς ϑα- , τ > ' 1 ~ λάσσης αἷμα, καὶ ἀπέθανε τὸ τρίτον τῶν ’ - ~ , ‘ i” κτισμάτων τῶν EY τῇ ϑαλάσσῃ, τὰ ἔχοντα , ‘ ~ , ψυχός, καὶ TO τρίτον τῶν πλοίων διερϑαρ- nowy. § 195. ‘And a great mountain,’ &e.—Mountains, as already noticed, (8. 167,) are places of refuge in a time of invasion or in a time of inunda- tion, and as such they represent means of salvation, real or supposed. It is said, Isaiah 11. 2, “ It shall come to pass in the last days, that the mountain of the Lord’s house shall be established in the top of the mountains, and shall be exalted above the hills, and all nations shall flow unto [1.7 There are other mountains, therefore, besides that of the Lord’s house, which are to be manifested as being subordinate to that one mountain, the only true refuge ; in allusion to which, apparently, it is said, Ps. xxxvi. 6, “ God’s righteousness is like the great mountains.” A stone is spoken of, Dan. ii. 35 and 45, as cut out of a mountain without hands, which itself became a great mountain, and filled the whole earth. The same mountain, no doubt, as that said to be exalted upon the tops of all other mountains and hills, for such would be a mountain filling the whole earth. The stone, too, is prob- ably the same as that spoken of 1 Peter ii. 7, ‘The stone which the build- ers refused, and which became the chief stone of the corner,” (the key-stone of the arch)—the chosen, precious key-stone—the rock upon which rests the The gracious provision of propitiation against which the elements of justice (the gates of Hades) can never prevail—a substratum of rock, of which it is whole economy of salvation, and all dependent upon that economy. 108 THE SEVENTH SEAL. said, 1 Cor. iii. 11, Other foundation can no man lay than that which is laid, which is Jesus Christ. This mountain, however, was not the great mountain, but only, as it were, a great mountain. It was not cast upon the land, or upon the hills, but into the sea, producing an effect corresponding in degree, though not in kind, with that which an immense body cast into the sea might be supposed to produce. ‘ Burning with fire.’—Not the instrument of setting fire to other objects, but itself in a state of combustion—subject to the action of fire. We may suppose this mountain to represent a false system, the destructibility of which is being manifested. It is, however, no ordinary system, but one of great pretensions, reminding us of the declaration by the mouth of the prophet, Jeremiah li. 25, 26, “ Behold, I am against thee, O destroying mountain, saith the Lord, which destroyest all the earth; and I will stretch out my hand upon thee, and roll thee down from the rocks, and will make thee a burnt mountain. And they shall not take of thee a stone for a corner, nor a stone for foundations ; but thou shalt be desolate forever, saith the Lord.” § 196. ‘ Was cast into the sea, and the third (part) of the sea became blood.’—The mountain, or system, while thus undergoing the trial by fire, comes in contact with the sea, or element of vindictive justice, sach as we have supposed this figure to represent, (ὃ 124.) This contact being also equivalent to the administration of a test. The destruction of the false foundation, (the mountain,) showing the element of judicial vengeance con- nected with it to be an element of blood. The reputed agent of purifica- tion is now manifested to be, like the law itself, not only incapable of giving life, but actually demanding the life of the criminal. The nature of the sea is not changed, but its true character is exhibited. A like figure we may find in the Red Sea, or sea of Edom, (red,) through which the Israelites could pass only under the conduct of him who had brought them out of the state of Egyptian bondage; and who, on this account, is spoken of as a prophet like unto Christ, (Acts iti, 22.) There are those, trusting in their own inherent or imparted ability te meet the requisitions of divine justice, who appear to think and even desire it to be their duty to brave this element of wrath themselves ; as the self-confident apostle seems to have supposed the evidence of his Master’s power to consist in enabling the disciple to walk upon the stormy wave, Matt. xiv. 28. Others think to wash away their sins by inflicting penalties upon themselves, or by doing for themselves some great thing ; and, like the swine beset by a legion, Mark v. 9-13, become the immediate instruments of their own destruction. Some allusion may be made to this error, Heb. x. 22 where the figurative expression of pure water is employed apparently im con . THE SECOND TRUMPET. 109 ‘ tradistinction to sea-water, which is both foul and bitter—the “ troubled sea casting up mire and dirt,” (Is. lvii. 20.) The apostle had just set before the Hebrews the new and living way of coming into the position of the holiest, by the blood and flesh of Jesus, which means of access he after- wards speaks of as a cleansing of the conscience, and a washing of the body in pure water; an opposite of pretended propitiations, bearing the bloody character of the legal dispensation, (Ex. iv. 25, 26.) The sea, in its third or spiritual sense, was manifested to be blood. In its first, or natural sense, the sea is a fearful and destructive element. In a metaphorical sense, it is said to represent a deluge, or multitude of enemies, (Cruden ;) but perhaps its second scriptural sense is that of the penal requi- sitions of the Mosaical economy, as commonly applied to the Jews ; while the third sense represents the vindictive bearing of inflexible Justice, ap- plicable throughout eternity to “ every soul of man that doeth evil.” § 197. ‘ And the third (part) of the creatures which were in the sea, and had life, died..—Were manifested to be without life. Things in the sea having life, we may suppose to signify things dependent upon the sea for life. The sea, having become blood, is no more capable of giving life to its dependents ; so when the legal or self-righteous element of purging away sin is manifestly destitute of the power of giving eternal life, every principle dependent upon it must be equally manifested to be destitute of a life-giving power. The penal observances of the Mosaical dispensation are now shown to be incapable of yielding life to the sinner; and so, in a spiritual sense, the efforts of man to atone for his own transgressions are manifested to be without efficacy in the work of salvation. As the sinner is dead un- der the law in trespasses and sins, so the principles of legality, when the truth is fully revealed, will appear equally lifeless. Fish, it is true, furnish a common article of diet; but these are fish frequenting rivers, or the mouths of rivers, or feeding upon banks in the vicinity of shores. The fish of the ocean, it is notorious, are not suitable for the sustenance of man: besides, fish to be eaten must be taken alive from the waters. There is with all persons ἃ natural abhorrence of fish supposed to be dead before it is taken ; and if the water of a lake or sea become so deleterious as to destroy the fish in it, it is very evident that these fish are no more fit for food. ' It is a peculiarity worth noticing, that fish, although used for food, were not employed for sacrificial purposes, under the levitical arrangement; as if the element represented by the sea, could not furnish a suitable offering to the Lord. Even as an article of diet, fish seem to be mentioned, Numbers xi. 5, in contradistinction to heavenly food; ‘‘ We remember the fish which we did eat in Egypt freely ; the cucumbers, and the melons, and ‘the leeks, - 110 THE SEVENTH SEAL. and the onions, and the garlic, (vegetables peculiarly earthy.) But now our soul is dried away ; there is nothing, besides this manna, before our eyes.”’ As some, in the pride of their hearts, call to mind the various theories of human invention upon which they had been encouraged to build the hope of a merit of their own. ‘They repine over the gospel exhibition in its simpli- city, because nothing, as a means of eternal life, but the imputed righteous- ness of a Divine Redeemer, is presented for their contemplation. They _ prefer the food of a state of bondage to the nourishment of a father’s table. § 198. ‘And the third (part) of the ships were destroyed.’—Ships are human means of preservation and safe conduct. They represent another class of self-righteous principles, or refuges of lies, to which presumptuous man resorts, in view of the retributive action of divine justice. ‘Trusting to ships, Ps. xlviil. 7, and trusting to horses, Is. xxx. 16, are both figures of misplaced confidence in vain and insufficient means of escape from the wrath to come. Ships are also the inventions of men for carrying on trade, and for acquiring wealth. Their employment represents the operation.of a mercenary sys- tem, in the acquisition of that which is the opposite of the true riches. Ships are also a species of ark—as the ships of 'Tarshish, Is. 1. 16, appear to be figurative opposites of the ship or ark of Noah, a type of Christ: this ark being something of divine construction, built under divine direc- tion, and by faith availed of, (Heb. xi. 7 ;) while self-righteous systems are ships of human construction. The insufficiency of ships or vessels to with- stand a mighty tempest, is typical of the insufficiency of any merit or mer- its of man to meet the storm of divine wrath. ‘To be in Christ, is to be in the only ark of safety. The first sense of ships is sufficiently obvious. The second sense may be metaphorical merely as applicable to means of safety in general, or, more strictly, as applied to legal observances in a literal sense ; the third or last construction being the supposed means of salvation furnished by human efforts to supply a meritorious propitiation, in place of that to be found in the atonement of Christ. The general destruction of earthly objects, manifested at the blowing of these trumpets, appears to be alluded to, Zeph. i. 2 and 3, under a figure somewhat different: “I will utterly consume all things from off the land, saith the Lord. I will consume man and beast; I will consume the fowls of the heaven, and the fish of the sea, and the stumbling-blocks from the wicked.” Vs. 10,11. And the third angel sound- Koto τρίτος ἄγγελος ἐσάλπισε, καὶ ἔπε- ed, and there fell a great star from heaven, gey 2» roy ovoavoy GoTHO Usya r : : ! t ς καιόμεν burning as it were a lamp, and it fell θ ps aie: ihe ἢ upon the third (part) of the rivers, and up- on the fountains of waters; and the name c , X37 jeg ‘ ἢ “ ὡς λαμπάς, καὶ ἔπεσεν ἐπὶ τὸ τρίτον τῶν ~ ‘ ~ ποταμῶν καὶ ἐπὶ τὰς πηγὰς τῶν ὑδάτων. THE THIRD TRUMPET. 41} οἵ the star is called Wormwood: and the Καὶ τὸ ὄνομα τοῦ ἀστέρος λέγεται 6 ἄψιν- third (part) of the waters became worm- ; wood ; and many men died of the waters, because they were made bitter. ‘ ~ , > Fos. καὶ γίνεται τὸ τρίτον τῶν ὑδάτων εἰς ἄψινϑον, καὶ πολλοὶ τῶν ἀνϑρώπων ἀπέϑα- ~ a U γον ἐκ τῶν ὑδάτων, ὅτι ἐπιχράνϑησαν. ᾧ 199. ‘And there fell ἃ great star,’ &c.—It is said, Is. Ixii. 1, “ For Zion’s sake I will not hold my peace, and for Jerusalem’s sake I will not rest, until the righteousness thereof go forth as brightness, and the salvation thereof as a lamp that burneth ;” and Ps. cxix. 105, “Thy word is a lamp unto my feet, and a light unto my paths.” The star here described is not, like the mountain, itself in a state of combustion, as about being consumed ; but it is burning like a lamp, to give light ; and is for this reason compared to an immense lamp, throwing forth, as we may suppose, its light upon all around it. It resembles a lamp in its burning for the purpose of giving light. The word translated fell is used in Scripture in a variety of senses. There appears to be no necessity for taking it here in the sense of an eject- ment from heaven, and consequent degradation. As the manna fell from heaven, as the seed sown fell on the ground, and as the Holy Spirit fell upon the converts in the times of the apostles, so this star we may suppose to come from heaven to earth as a communication of light, to give light wherever it is needed. It was a great star—an immense lighted lamp—a powerful instrument of developing truth, and of detecting falsehood, or of exhibiting errors of doc- trine in their true character: the apocalyptic heaven we take to be an exhi- bition of the economy of salvation, such as it is in truth. This star from heaven is accordingly some important portion of truth emanating from the heavenly display. § 200. ‘ And it fell upon the third of the rivers, and upon the fountains of waters.’—Rivers and fountains furnish means of ablution and of sus- tenance ; but these rivers are rivers of the earth, and these waters are waters of the earth. They are supposed means of propitiation, belonging to the earthly system ; streams emanating from the earthly scheme of salvation—of the earth, earthy—opposites of the pure river of the water of life, Rev. xxii. 1, and of the fountain coming forth of the house of the Lord, Joel iii. 18. The light of truth thrown upon these self-righteous and legal means of propitiation, causes them to appear in their true character. Bitter as the waters of the sea are bitter;—bitter as the waters of Marah. The terms sweet and bitter,,when applied to water in Eastern phrase- ology, being equivalent to our designation of fresh and salt water. ‘These earthly waters are thus manifested to be incapable of furnishing the means of eternal life, or of cleansing the soul from the pollution of sin. We may suppose, for example, in a certain scheme of salvation of a 112 THE SEVENTH SEAL. legal character, the elements of sorrow for sin, resolutions of amendment, remorse, self-mortification, endurance of some specific suffering, some self- inflicted chastisement ; all or any of them to be set forth as means of pro- pitiation. A development of divine truth, brought into contact with this mis- taken view, exhibits the exceeding sinfulness of sin ; showing the immensity of suffering required to atone for the transgressions of the sinner, and the consequent inadequacy of any human means of salvation of the character supposed; at the same time showing the extreme bitterness of such a pro- cess, the bitterness of the sorrow, of the remorse, and of the suffering required. ‘The nature of the pretended propitiation is not changed by this development, but its true character is exhibited. The disciple, brought to compare the gospel means of ablution (the atonement of Christ) with these vain pretensions, perceives his error ; the rivers and waters he trusted in now appear to him, as they are, bitter waters, unfit either for cleansing or for diet. These refuges of lies are thus swept away, and the now enlightened believer is prepared to cast himself without reserve upon the merits of Him who is described to be as rivers of water in a dry place, (Is. xxxii. 2.) § 201. ‘ And the name of the star is called Wormwood,’ ( Absinthe.) —So named, not as a matter of reproach, but on account of the design and effect of its mission. Wormwood itself, when administered as a medicine, strength- ens the stomach, and creates an appetite for wholesome food; so the bitter quality of this star is benignly intended to create a desire for the bread of life—a hungering and thirsting after righteousness. The same Greek term, ἄψινϑος, does not occur in the Septuagint, (Concord. Trommii,) although our translators have rendered another mixoia, bitterness, by wormwood, Lam. iii. 15. We may, perhaps, safely consider bitterness, wormwood, and gall, synonymous terms. ‘The people of Israel, on account of their idolatrous conduct, were to be fed with wormwood, or bitterness, and water of gall was to be given them to drink ; so it is with those who reject the sweet water of a Saviour’s atonement, and place their trust in some merit of their own bodily or mental suffering. They shut them- selves up to a dependence upon these waters of bitterness; nor do they perceive the folly of their choice, till enlightened by a further revelation of gospel truth. This revelation may appear to them a messenger of bitter- ness, by its exhibition of their real position, but it is nevertheless a messenger of mercy. The wormwood and water of gall given the Israelites for food, were instruments of judicial chastisement: the bitterness of the star Absinthe is designed as a medicine, and a preparation for better food ;— turning the disciple from darkness to light, and from the power of Satan, the accuser, to God, Jehovah our righteousness. A sorrow for sin, bitter as it may be, to which the disciple trusts, as to ἃ propitiation, is a sorrow of the world that worketh death; but a sorrow THE FOURTH TRUMPET. 113 for sin convincing the disciple of his need of a Saviour, and constraining him to fly for safety to the hope set before him in that Saviour’s atonement, is a godly sorrow, working a change of mind, a repentance unto life—a change not to be changed—a repentance not to be repented of, (¢ 44.) It is said of the children of Israel, Exod. i. 14, “ The Egyptians made their lives bitter ;” so the position of bondage under the law engenders ‘bitterness of soul ; yet the law is good and benign, for although it brings the knowledge of sin, it is also a leader to bring us to Christ. So the passover was to be eaten standing—staff in hand—with bitter herbs, show- ing that no time is to be lost between a conviction of sin and a participation by faith in the merits of Him who, as a paschal lamb, was slain for us. ‘The third (part) of the waters became wormwood ;’—that is, the waters spiritually understood, became bitter. So of the fountains of the waters in the preceding verse: it is not said the third of the fountains, but we may take the figure of the fountains, as connected with the waters, to be equivalent to the third of the waters—that is, the waters in their most im- portant spiritual sense, as the fountain gives its character to the stream. ‘ And many men died of the waters, because they were made bitter.’— As the star is not a material star, and as the rivers and fountains are not material objects, so neither are the men who died literally men ; nor is the death in contemplation a literal death. The men we suppose to be ele- ments of the earthly system, manifested to be without life and incapable of giving life—the exhibition of the bitterness of these fallacious systems, show- ing the deadly character of the elements of the earthly scheme of redemp- tion; these mistaken elements of propitiation resulting in condemnation instead of deliverance. V. 12. And the fourth angel sounded, = Kat 6 τέταρτος ἄγγελος ἐσάλπισε, xat and the third (part) of the sun was smitten, ἐπλήγη τὸ τρίτον τοῦ ἡλίου καὶ τὸ τρέτον andthe third (part) of the moon, and the «75. cette xad τὸ τρϑέδν τῶν ᾿ἀστέράν, Wa third (part) of the stars; so as the third 113 °**""S 9 ER (part) of them was darkened, and the day σκοτισϑῇ τὸ τρέτον αὐτῶν, καὶ ἢ ἡμέρα μὴ shone not for a third (part) of it, and the φαίνῃ τὸ τρίτον αὑτῆς, καὶ ἡ νὺξ ὁμοίως. night likewise. ‘ And the third (part) of the sun,’ &c.—The more particulars we have of this third, the more evident it is that the word part, in our ordinary accepta- tion of the term, does not express its meaning. If the third part of the heavenly bodies, or of each of them, were eclipsed, it would not prevent the day and night shining, they would only shine with one-third less light ; and if we suppose them to be darkened one-third of the time successively, so that there should be daylight only eight hours instead of twelve, the same con- struction could not be applied to what is said of the third of the earth, sea, rivers, &c. And as a fountain cannot send forth at the same time both bitter water and fresh, so neither can we divide the light of day or night, 114 ἢ THE SEVENTH SEAL. that one-third part of it may be light, and the other two-thirds dark at the same time. We can only get over this difficulty by supposing this third to refer, as we have suggested, (Ὁ 191,) to something like a third sense. The sounding of this fourth trumpet we accordingly presume to manifest this whole solar system, in its spiritual or third sense, to be devoid of the light of righteousness ; the third spoken of being, not the third of the spiritual sense, but the whole of the thing represented in that’sense, which is its third, or the third of it. We say this solar system, to adapt the expression to our modern views of the organization of the sun, moon, and planets ; but in the times of the apostles the common opinion was that the sun was created for the earth, and not the earth for the sun—that the earth was the centre around which the sun and all the heavenly bodies revolved. What we now call the solar, would then have been considered the terrestrial system, or the earthly sys- tem. Whatever name we give it, however, we suppose the system itself to have three senses: the physical or natural sense ; the figurative sense, as applied to the Jewish economy, or to the organization of the visible church on earth, and matters connected with it ; and thirdly, the spiritual sense, as applied to the economy of salvation, of which the Jewish or Levi- tical economy, or visible church, is but a type. In this spiritual or third sense, however, the system we have in view is not a heavenly, but an earthly system ; the difference between the two being as great at least as that between the ancient apprehension of this portion of the science of astronomy, and our modern views of it. This terrene-solar system, as we may call it, exhibits man’s views of the economy of salvation: this solar system, in its third or spiritual sense, is an exhibition of the economy of salvation, but it is such as man’s judgment forms of it. ‘The system has a sum: it has a righteousness belonging to it, but it is not the sun of divine righteousness. It supposes in effect a sun of self-righteousness: it has a moon, but this moon is supposed to shine with a light of its own: and it has its planets, but they are all supposed to be independent bodies, shining with their own light. The sun of this system is supposed to ¢mpart light, but it is not supposed to wmpute light. As in the common apprehension of mankind, while every one is sensible that the rays of the sun are required to enlighten this earth, so that its inhabitants may pursue their avocations, it scarcely occurs to the minds of any that whatever light or splendour this planet may exhibit to other worlds, it is not a light of its own, but only the reflected light of the sun to which it is indebted for all its beauty. Man, too, individually rejoices in the light of the sun, and prides himself upon his outward appearance ; but while admit- ting his dependence upon this light to enable him to perform his duties, he rarely recollects that he is indebted to the reflected rays of the same source THE FOURTH TRUMPET. 115 of light for all the beauty or perfection of his appearance in the sight of his fellow-mortals. Analogous with this, we suppose the system of divine things spoken of here as the third of the sun, moon, and stars, to be the system or economy of salvation in human apprehension—a system admitting the necessity of divine aid to enable man to perform his duty, and so far permitting the Deity to come in for a share of the glory of what the creature may perform ; but a system into which the idea of imputed moral perfection is not allowed to enter. ‘The self-righteous have their economy of salvation, their heaven, and their sun of righteousness, as they have also their rock and their vine ; but more enlightened believers may say of them, their heaven is not as our heaven—their sun is not as our sun—nor is their rock as our rock, our enemies themselves being judges ; their vine is the vine of Sodom, and the fields of Gomorrah—their grapes are grapes of gall, their clusters are bitter, (Deut. xxxii. 31, 32.) | This mistaken view of God’s plan of salvation, manifested by the action on the stars, we suppose to be void of light, or of the essential ingredient of righteousness ; a manifestation resulting from the sounding of the fourth trumpet, which sounding it is to be presumed characterizes some peculiar development of truth. τ § 203. There are three that bear witness in the earth: the spirit, the water, and the blood, 1 John v. 8; the water of baptism, the material blood of Christ, and his blood, in a spiritual sense, or his atonement. So we may say, first, there is a natural or literal sun ; second, a metaphorical sun, Christ in the flesh ; and third, a spiritual sun, Jehovah our righteousness : all three of these indicating the same divine object in his relation towards the subjects of his redeeming mercy—“ For the Lorp God is a sun and shield: the Lorp (Jehovah) will give grace and glory,” Ps. Ixxxiv. 11. The natural sun does not cease to exist when eclipsed ; he still shines to other worlds ; so Jehovah is ever the same, although we may not see him as our Sun, clothing us with the light of his perfection, or although we may substitute in our vain imaginations some other source of light in his place, and even conceive ourselves suns, and thus walk in the sparks of our own kindling. In this apocalyptic exhibition we do not suppose the true spiritual heaven to be darkened, but it is the heaven of human estimation substituted for the true, which is manifested to be as it is without light. The same manifestation appears to be contemplated in the declaration, Ezekiel xxxii, 7, “I will cover the heaven, and make the stars thereof dark ; I will cover the sun with a cloud, and the moon shall not give her light: all the bright lights of heaven will I make dark over thee, and set darkness upon thy land, saith the Lord God.” The prophecy is immediately applicable to Egypt, but it is evident that this Egypt must be some object in a spiritual 116 . THE SEVENTH SEAL. sense, of which the literal Egypt was a type; Assyria, Egypt, and Judea, being perhaps three successive types of the same exhibition of truth: Is. xix. 24. We suppose the prediction to allude to the manifestation of darkness, rather than to the fact of darkness; because the fact has always been the same since the creation of the world. Men have loved darkness rather than light ; they have called darkness light ; their minds have been blinded, yet while blind they supposed themselves to see. The great change to be brought about, is to show them that the light they imagine to be in them is darkness. 50, preceding the perfect development of divine truth, the pre- paratory step is probably to manifest the existing degree of darkness—as, according to Paul, the manifestation of the man of sin is to be the imme- diate prelude to the coming of Christ. The action of this fourth trumpet thus corresponds with that called for Joel ii. 1, 2, “ Blow ye the trumpet in Zion, and sound an alarm in my holy mountain : let all the inhabitants of the land tremble ; for the day of the Lord cometh, for it is nigh at hand ; a day of darkness and of gloominess, a day of clouds and of thick darkness ;”’ and 1. 15, “ The sun and the moon shall be darkened, and the stars shall withdraw their shining.” So Zeph. i. 14-16, “ The great day of the Lord is near—it is near, and hasteth greatly—even the voice of the day of the Lord: the mighty man shall cry there bitterly. That day is a day of wrath, a day of trouble and distress, a day of wasteness and desolation, a day of darkness and gloominess, a day of clouds and thick darkness, a day of the trumpet and alarm against the fenced cities, and against the high towers.” § 204. ‘The day shone not, and the night likewise,’ or in like manner. —While Jesus Christ was in the world, his followers metaphorically had the light with them, John xii. 35-46. So, in an exhibition of the economy of salvation, where Christ is seen as Jehovah our righteousness, there is light in a spiritual sense ; without this there must be a stumbling upon the dark mountains—upon stumbling-blocks of error—false foundations of hope. The day shone not, because, in the exhibition of this system, a sun of righteousness was no longer seen. ‘The night shone not, because the moon, representing the church, or the economy of salvation, exhibited no clothing of imputed righteousness ; and being without any righteousness in herself, was manifested to be, in a spiritual sense, as in a physical, merely an opaque body. The stars may be figures of elements of other systems, or they may be put for planets, corresponding in character with the moon. We do not suppose it necessary here to analyze the figures minutely ; the predominant idea calling for attention being that of a total darkness. Day and night signifying not a period of time, but a position, intellectually, of light or knowledge ; spiritually, of righteousness or moral perfection. So the land THE HERALD OF WO. 117 of darkness, and of the shadow of death, Job x. 22, we suppose to repre- sent the position of the sinner under the law, and obnoxious to its penalties, as he is in fact, or as he supposes himself to be. The region of the shadow of death, and the valley of the shadow of death, expressing the same posi- tion of destitution ; to provide against which the sinner can only trust in Christ as the Lord his righteousness, enabling him to say with the Psalmist, Though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death I will fear no evil, for thou art with me,” Ps. xxiii. 4. . It is not necessary for us to ascribe the state of darkness we have been contemplating to any particular period in the history of the church. It is something experienced by every convert ere the day dawn, and the day-star arise in his heart. Perhaps in a spiritual sense there is as much of this dark- ness amongst us of the present day, who say we see, as there was amongst those of the middle ages, whose blindness we are apt to look upon with so much proud commiseration. The sounding of the fourth angel’s trumpet is not said to be followed with an appearance of clouds, but, from a comparison of the passage with that quoted from Ezekiel, the instrument of obscuration may be presumed to be the same. Clouds emanate from the earth through the action of the sun, whose rays they at the same time intercept. So the misconceptions of revealed truth, arising from a literal construction, prevent the discernment of that truth. The revelation emanates from on high, but the misconceptions origi- nate, like vapours, from an earthly source. Were there no sun, there would be no exhalation; and if there were no revelation, there would be no mis- construction ; but the same sun which causes the vapour to arise, dissipates the cloud: the Sun of righteousness is to rise, with healing in his wings, The truth will then be manifested, and God’s exhibition of his plan of mercy, may then be apostrophized in the language of the prophet: “ Arise, shine, for thy light is come, and the glory of the Lord is risen upon thee. For darkness shall cover the earth, and gross darkness the people ; but the Lord shall arise upon thee, and his glory shall be seen upon thee,” Is. Ix. 1, 3. THE HERALD OF WO. V.13. And I beheld, and heard an Καὶ “εἶδον, καὶ ἤκουσα ἑνὸς & ἀετοῦ πετο- angel flying through the midst of heaven, μένου ἐν μεσουφαν ἤματι, λέγοντος φωνῇ με- saying with a loud voice, Wo, wo, wo, to ἢ the inhabiters of the earth, by reason of γαλη" οὐαί, οὐαί, οὐαὶ τοῖς κατοικοῦσιν ἐπὲ the other voices of the trumpet of the τῆς γῆς, ἐκ τῶν λοιπῶν φωνῶν τῆς σάλπιγγος three angels, which are yet to sound. τῶν τριῶν ἀγγέλων τῶν μελλόντων σαλπί- - ζειν. ᾧ 205. An angel, or eagle, according to some editions. If an angel, a messenger, or ministering spirit ; if an eagle, the figure of a communication 118 THE SEVENTH SEAL. of the Holy Spirit, or Comforter, (Ὁ 128.) The distinction is not material. The warning voice is that of some instrument of interpretation, directing at- tention to the three subsequent developments as causes of apprehension ; not to all beings, but to those denominated “ inhabiters of the earth.” That is, as we suppose, elements of the earthly system—doctrinal principles, depend- ent upon the earthly scheme of redemption, or upon the earthly view or construction of the divine scheme. Flying» through the midst of heaven, or through the middle heaven, or perhaps we may say the second heaven; that is, the exhibition of divine truth afforded by the revelation of the Old and New Testaments, taken in their ordinary sense: the spiritual construction of the same revelation being equivalent, as we have suggested, ($ 192, 193,) to that which Paul describes as the third heaven. An angel flying through the mid-heaven, is thus the figure of a spirit of interpretation running through the whole Scriptures, and virtually pro- nouncing the woes alluded to, as something particularly destructive to these earthly elements, or principles ; every preparation for this destruction having been previously made, as indicated in the exhibitions attending the sounding of the four previous trumpets. The destruction spiritually of the earth, of the trees, and the green herbage ; the bloody appearance of the sea, with its fatal action upon every thing in it; the destruction of the ships, the bitter- ness of the rivers and fountains of the earth, and the deleterious qualities of their waters, together with the state of universal darkness, or manifest ab- sence of every element of divine righteousness, all show a state of things incapable of affording a refuge or shelter. ‘The wrath itself has not yet been exhibited against these inhabiters, but the impossibility of escaping has been shown—all retreat has been cut off; and in this desperate position, the objects “ fitted to destruction” await the impending visitation. These inhabiters of the earth we suppose to be the principles of the earthly system—the peculiar objects of wrath—principles dependent upon this fallacious system, as the inhabitants of the earth are literally dependent upon the globe which they inhabit ; and principles dependent upon subordi- nate elements, as the inhabitants of this globe are literally dependent upon its productions for life and protection. ‘These subordinate principles, or subordinate earthly elements, are now taken away. It is therefore against the distinguishing and most important of these doctrinal elements, with their systems, that the action of coming wrath remains to be exhibited; this last class of elements bearing the same comparative relations to the first, that the human race bears to the rest of created things belonging to the earth, animate and inanimate. We must ascertain, however, from the action of these coming woes, who or what are the subjects of this fearful denunci ation. THE HERALD OF WO. 119 The heavenly messenger uttering this premonition of the scenes to be exhibited, apparently occupies the place of an interlocutory personage in a dramatic representation, indicating a pause, or separation ; equivalent to the introduction of a new act, not however as of something succeeding the pre- vious scenes, but as of something which may have been in operation at the same time, although separately contemplated. The parties engaged in the new exhibition being different in some measure from those before represented, but the action in both cases being contemporaneous. We must suspend our judgment on this point, however, for the present. 17 120 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. CHAPTER IX. FIRST, WO—THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. Vs. 1,2. And the fifth angel sounded, and I saw a star fall from heaven unto the earth: and to him was given the key of the bottomless pit. And he opened the bottomless pit; and there arose a smoke out of the pit, as the smoke of a great fur- nace ; and the sun and the air were dark- ened by reason of the smoke of the pit. V © J 3 , - Καὶ ὃ πέμπτος ἄγγελος ἐσάλπισε, καὶ εἰ- > > ~ 2 - δον ἀστέρα ἐκ τοῦ οὐρανοῦ πεπτωκότα εἰς . ~ ΝΥ > , > ~ c ἣν ~ ’ τὴν γῆν, καὶ ἐδόϑη αὐτῷ ἡ κλεὶς τοῦ φρέ- * Sins ” ‘ ' «ὦ ατος τῆς ἀβύσσου" καὶ ἤγοιξε τὸ φρέαρ τῆς IQ” >) ig > re ἀβύσσου. uxt ἀνέβη καπνὸς ἐκ τοῦ φρέατος c ‘ A 2 ὡς καπνὸς χαμίνου μεγάλης, καὶ ἐσκοτίσϑη coe c = Jas | 2 ~ ~ ~ ὁ ἥλιος καὶ ὁ ἀὴρ ἐκ τοῦ καπνοῦ τοῦ φρέ- ατος. ᾧ 206. ‘ And the fifth angel sounded.’—Here there appears to be a partial change of scenery in the foreground of the exhibition ; the succes- sion of trumpet representations being resumed. 1 saw a star fall,’ &c.—As we noticed, in remarking upon the star Wormwood, the word translated fall does not necessarily involve the idea of degradation, (ὃ 199.) The expression occurs in the Scriptures only in these two passages. A star, an instrument of light, comes from heaven to earth. A revelation from the heavenly system is brought into contact, or into juxtaposition, with the earthly system. »Some important principle of interpretation, perhaps, is evolved from the heavenly exhibition and applied to the earthly, so as to become the means of exposing certain errors or falla- cies of this latter scheme. ‘To him was given the key.—That is, to the star, the heavenly mes- senger, not to the fifth angel. As already suggested, ($$ 37, 89,) we sup- pose a key to be the figure of a power to open or reveal a mystery. To this star or instrument of revelation is given, allotted, or committed the func- tion of developing the mystery, figuratively termed the bottomless pit ; show- ing the destructive character, or baleful tendency of its principles. ‘Of the bottomless pit,’ or verbatim, of the pit of the bottomless ; the shaft of the profound deep, or infinite deep, or deep without a bottom.— . The Greek word φρέαρ, signifies a pit of any kind ; the word ἀβύσσος, con- nected with it in the genitive, is expressive of something without a bottom ; of which there is of course no end to the depth, (Rob. Lex. 2, 114,) infi- nite profunditatis vorago, ex a priv. and Ion. βύσσος pro βύϑος fundum, (bottom,) Suiceri. Lex. We have adopted the term abyss in English, ap- plying it to any supposed bottomless gulf. The same Greek term, Luke vill. 31, expresses a lake or sea; and Rom. x. 7, the place of the dead, or THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 121 the opposite of heaven. So we sometimes speak of the ocean, from its im- mense depth, hyperbolically, as the abyss, or bottomless. In the Old Test- ament the Hebrew term, expressed in our common version by the deep, the depths, and sometimes the sea, is rendered in the Septuagint by abyss and abysses, as an equivalent, or something more than an equivalent of the term sea or seas, (ϑάλασσα.) The compound term pit of the abyss, occurs nowhere else in the sacred writings. The Greek term rendered pit here, is employed in common with λάκκος in the Septuagint, for the rendering of a Hebrew term signifying pit, well, and cistern. We must judge therefore of the pit, or shaft, by that which is connected with it. Here the pit of the abyss is the passage lead- ing to that which is without a bottom; the key of the pit corresponding with the key of a door or gate. A pit is the opposite of a rock or mountain ; and a pit leading down to a chasm of infinite depth, or without a bottom, must be the converse of a mount, or hill, or any structure having a solid foundation. . As the abyss or deep is an opposite of heaven, (Rom. x. 7,) so the key of the entrance of the abyss may be considered an opposite of the keys of the kingdom of heaven ; and as we suppose the kingdom of heaven to be a figure of the system or economy of salvation, so we may suppose this abyss to be put for an opposite system—a system of salvation affording no basis or foundation— a system placing the disciple in the position of one who is in a bottomless pit without a foothold, without a rock or stone upon which to build his hope of escape. As the shaft of a dry well or a miry pit is the opposite of a well of living water, so an abyss is a figure the opposite of that of a city which hath foundations, (Heb. xi. 10 ;) or perhaps, more strictly, the pit is an opposite of the city, and the abyss the opposite of the foundations of the city ; Christ being the foundation of the city system, and the pit system being entirely bottomless. It is of course a system which does not exhibit Christ as the foundation, stone, or rock, upon which the disciple’s faith is to rest. The position peculiar to a system of this character must be one of legal condemnation, without a hope of escape ; the miserable occupant of this position being out of Christ, under the law, obnoxious to its penalties, with- out a righteousness of his own, convicted of sin, and without a Saviour, To such a peculiar position repeated allusion is made in the Old Testa- ment, in view of the gracious provision of redeeming mercy : ‘“ He keepeth back his soul from the pit ;” “ Deliver him from going down to the pit: J have found a ransom,” Job xxxiii. 18 and 24; “ He brought me out of the horrible pit, and set my foot upon a rock,” Ps. xl. 2; and Is. li. 1, “Look to the hole of the pit whence ye are digged’’—look back to the desperate condition in which you were placed by nature when, under the law, depend- 122 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. ent upon your own merits, there was no intercessor, and none to help, (Is. lix. 16.) § 207. ‘ And he opened the bottomless pit..—This mystery of iniquity ls now being developed; its principles are to be brought forth, and their true nature exhibited. This exhibition, too, constitutes the first wo—a wo falling upon the inhabiters of the earth, or upon the elements of the earthly view of the economy of divine government. ‘ And there arose a smoke out of the pit, as the smoke of a great furnace.’ —The peculiar employment of a furnace is that of testing the purity of metals: ‘“ The fining pot for silver, and the furnace for gold; but the Lord trieth the hearts,” Prov. xvii. 5. The feet of the Son of man, Rev. i. 15, appeared as if they burned in a furnace. So the bush (Ex. 11. 2) burned with fire, but was not consumed,—as truth may be subjected to the most powerful scrutiny without being impaired by it. The appearance of smoke from a furnace is an indication that the pro- cess of trial by combustion is in operation. The smoke of a great furnace indicates the magnitude of this trial. The fire which is to try every man’s work, (1 Cor. iii. 18,) we may suppose to be here employed. Not that the pit itself is a furnace, but that there is a trial going on with the elements of this pit system, which is like that of a furnace. We are not obliged to sup- pose this trial to have just commenced as the pit was opened. It may have been previously in operation, but the unlocking and opening of the pit shows now what was before concealed. The tares were suffered to grow with the wheat until the harvest, that the characteristics of both becoming more promi- nent and decided, as they advanced to maturity, the necessary discrimina- tion, at the proper time, might more easily be made. So, while the advo- cates of truth are lamenting the prevalence of erroneous views and doc- trines, the test of the divine crucible is being applied. The process of dis- crimination is going on, although the manifestation of the process and of its results may be reserved for a distant period. ᾧ 208. ‘ And the sun and the air were darkened by reason of the smoke of the pit..—Smoke is the unavoidable accompaniment of a trial by fire, and where there is a great smoke all objects of vision beyond it are necessarily obscured. During the trial undergone by the elements of this pit system, in the nature of the case there is an obscuration of the heavenly bodies. This, perhaps, is one of the means requisite for rendering the elements of the pit system more prominent and distinguishable; as we often find it to be not till the effect of certain errors has reached an extreme in the con- cealment of truth, that we are fully convinced of their mischievous ten- dency. ‘The sun was darkened.’—The emanation from the bottomless pit sys- tem, while under trial, manifests its tendency to obscure the Sun of right- THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 123 eousness—to hide from the eye of faith the important truth that the Lord God is a sun and shield. The Saviour no longer appearing as Jehovah our righteousness, the disciple sees no refuge from the terrors of the law ; and thus the smoke of the pit and the smoke of Sinai correspond in their results, (Ex. xx. 18.) The atmosphere is darkened.—This emanation, or exhalation, from the pit affects the medium through which heavenly things or the truths of the Gospel are contemplated. The exhibition of the economy of grace is not perceptible in consequence of, and during the emanation from, the pit. This darkening of the heavens corresponds with the effect produced by the star Wormwood, as also with the results of the opening of the sixth seal, (Rev. vi. 12, 13,) showing these changes not to be successive and accumulative, as following one upon another, but to be each of them dis- tinct and independent pictures. We are not to imagine the sun first black as sackcloth of hair, and then, in addition to this, one third of it to be smit- ten. and then to be further darkened by the smoke; but we are to take each of these representations as separate illustrations, not immediately con- nected with each other, although perhaps applicable to the same truths— each seal, each trumpet, &c., furnishing a series of figures of its own. The Greek term ao, translated air, is said to be applicable especially to the thick atmosphere encompassing the earth, in contradistinction to the pure air αἰϑὴρ, (ether,) supposed to pervade the celestial regions beyond the attraction of this material globe, (Jones’s Lex.,) our own gross atinosphere representing, perhaps, an imperfect medium of contemplating revealed truth —a literal construction, or a mode of interpretation encumbered with literal and erroneous apprehensions. Accordingly, we find the spirit working in the children of disobedience denominated, Eph. ii. 2, the prince of the power of the air, ἀέρος, the foul atmosphere. This medium of vision, encumbered as it is in its own nature, is rendered still more dense by the exhalations from the pit. V. 3. And there came out of the smoke Kat ἐκ τοῦ καπνοῦ ἐξῆλϑον ἀκρίδες εἰς locusts upon the earth: and unto them τὴν γῆν, καὶ ἐδόϑη αὐταῖς ἐξουσία ὡς ἔχου- was given power, as the scorpions of the By depiGlo OL oxebntbe’ rie Hee earth have power. Ἡ ἘΣ ΠΣ - § 209. ‘And there came out of the smoke locusts, &c.—Here we have the characteristics of the principles of the pit system, as they are evolved by the refming process whence the smoke originates. The princi- ples of this bottomless system are tried as with fire—subjected to a test— to ascertain their true character, nature, and tendency. ‘They are permit- ted to operate, and power is given them to develope themselves, that their peculiar features may be fully exhibited. The locust was one of the plagues of Egypt; it was probably an " 194 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. unclean animal Levitically—a flying creeping thing with four feet, an abom- ination. The locust permitted to be eaten, being designated in the Hebrew by a different appellation from that given to the destructive plague,* and being elsewhere rendered in our common version by the term grasshopper, Ley. xi. 23. Locusts were remarkable, it is said, not only for their voracity and vast numbers, but also for their infectious touch, and the deleterious effects of their dead bodies upon the atmosphere. Hence they have been supposed to represent in Revelation “authors or teachers of false doctrines, who infect others by distilling their poisonous doctrines into them,” (Cruden.) We sup- pose them rather to represent the elements or principles of such doctrines, in conformity with our general rule of interpretation. Not that these false principles are strictly and literally as multitudinous as an army of locusts, but that they are sufficiently so to admit of the hyperbole in a description of them. Egypt was a land of bondage ; as such it was a type of the position of man by nature under the law, and dependent upon his own merits. A locust plague apparently is designed to represent a spiritual plague or legal consequence peculiar to this position of bondage. As an unclean animal, the locust may represent certain pretended merits of man resulting from legal observances ; as an unclean animal armed with a sting, they repre- sent these elements of merit, involving, as they necessarily must,’the sting of death or sin, the strength or power of which is in the law. ‘ And unto them was given power, as the scorpions of the earth have power.’—The natural action of the locust is upon the vegetable productions of the earth, injuring man only indirectly, by depriving him of the means of sustaining life—acting upon the green covering of the earth as the moth acts upon the woollen garment, showing its corruptibility. The one figure illustrating the insufficiency of all human merits as a means of eternal life ; the other the nothingness of every righteousness of human fabric as a gar- ment of salvation. But besides their natural action, a special power is given to these locusts —a power compared to that of the scorpions of the earth. Scorpions are bred and nourished amidst the corruption of the earth. They are generally found under and amidst stony rubbish and old ruins. Their power is in their sting—deprived of this, they are harmless animals, incapable even of self-defence; but their sting is exceedingly venomous, producing most excruciating, torturmg pain: the wound not generally mortal, but capable of becoming so, especially where there is a predisposition to mortification, unless a remedy be speedily provided. In this respect * M|IN “Axois, Locusta, Ex. X. 337 ἀκρίς Locusta etiam cicada, Lev. xi. 22. Trommii. Con, Tom. I. 62. THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 125 they resemble the serpent—the venom of the sting being the same in kind, but differing in degree. A difference perhaps comparable to that between the action of the conscience of a criminal before he is brought to justice, and the action of the public prosecutor in bringing about his apprehension and condemnation. Scorpions, as generated from the earth, and drawing the poison of their stings from the earth, represent principles of the ‘earthly system, drawing their tendency to condemnation from the system to which they belong. The sting of death is sin: the sting of the great serpent (the accuser) re- sults in death or legal condemnation. The sting of the scorpion conscience tortures and torments, although it may not produce condemnation till the accuser’s power is brought into action. The strength of sin is the law: there would be no sting or power to destroy in sin if there were no law; because without law there could be no transgression, and sin, strictly speaking, is the transgression of the law. The earthly system we suppose to be a legal system ; the scorpion principle is an element of this earthly system, and draws his power to sting, torture, and torment, from the legality of that system. These locust-principles, therefore, originating from the bottomless pit system, have the power of bringing the law to act upon the conscience— convincing of sin, showing the sinner’s destitution of righteousness or merit —producing a state of torture next only in degree to that of actual con- demnation. To them was given, that is, to them it was allotted—such was the It was designed to manifest that these bottomless pit showing these principles to be in part assigned them. elements possess in fact this legal sting ; effect of the same character and tendency as those of the legal dispensation, in the most extensive acceptation of the term. The subject affected by this scorpion sting is operated upon as an individual under the law is affected by the power of accusation: the elements of corruption within him, and the accusing power of the principles of his own earthly system, as locusts mani- festing his destitution of all merit, depriving him of every refuge ; and, as scorpions, bringing him into a position of positive transgression, threatening him with immediate legal death or condemnation, Vs. 4,5. And it was commanded them that they should not hurt the grass of the earth, neither any green thing, neither any tree; but only those men which have pot the seal of God in their foreheads. And to them it was given that they should not kill them, but that they should be tormented five months: and their tor- ment was as the torment of a scorpion, when he striketh a man. ws Pre > ~ « ‘ = , Kai ἐῤῥέϑη αὑταῖς, ἵνα μὴ ἀδικήσωσι ‘ , ~ ~ > ‘ ~ TOY χόρτον τῆς γῆς, οὐδὲ πᾶν χλωρόν, οὐδὲ ~ ’ > ‘ . > , πᾶν δένδρον, εἰ μὴ τοὺς ἀνθρώπους, οἵτινες > ΕΣ , ~ ~ ~ ~ οὐκ ἔχουσι τὴν σφραγῖδα τοῦ ϑεοῦ ἐπὶ τῶν , c ~ > ΄ ~ ’ μετώπων αὐτῶν. Καὶ ἐδόϑη αὐταῖς, ἵνα ' > » ΄ > 2 «κ᾿ μὴ ἀποκτείνωσιν αὐτούς, ἀλλ᾿ ἵνα βασανι- ~ ~ ’ c σϑῶσι μῆνας πέντε" καὶ ὃ βασανισμὸς av- ~ © ‘ ° τῶν ὡς βασωνισμὸς σχορπίου, ὅταν παίσῃ ε ἄνϑρωπον, 126 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. ᾧ 210 ‘And it was commanded them that they should not hurt,’ &c. —The term rendered hurt, we have already shown to signify something the opposite of justifying, (ὃ 174,) or of manifesting a person or thing to be just. We suppose the action of these locusts to represent the operation of the principles of a certain system in showing the incompatibility of other principles with the process of justification ; these other principles being those figuratively denominated inhabiters of the earth—principles of the earthly system, the insufficiency of which is shown by the operation of the elements of the bottomless pit system. Of these mhabiters of the earth, however, the one hundred and forty-four thousand sealed ones are excep- tions ; all the rest spoken of as men are subject to the action of the locusts, ( 175 ;) although the natural propensity of these locusts to destroy vege- table productions is restramed, and their force is directed only against things figuratively designated as men not sealed. We are not to suppose the pro- hibition as to the grass and every green thing to exhibit these productigns of the earth as subjects of favour. At the first trumpet’s sound all green grass was burnt up, under the visitation of hail and fire mingled with blood cast upon the earth. This prohibition, therefore, only shows the action of the locust-principles to be configed to certain objects, leaving other unsealed objects equally fitted for destruction subject to the action of other instruments of judicial visitation. ‘The part assigned to the locust was to operate upon one class of beings only ; we must look elsewhere to ascer- tain the fate of any other class or classes.* ‘And it was given to them that they should not slay them, but that they should be tormented (tortured) five months.’—The part allotted to the locusts was not to destroy, but only to try or to put to the test. ‘The word translated torment signifying the kind of torture used in extorting confession from accused persons, when subjected to the rack ; the term bemg derived from the name of a stone (βάσανος, lapis Lydius) employed in testing the purity of metals, indicating the alloy with which they may he mixed, (Rob. Lex. 101.) * Some editions of the Greek have the word μόνους after ἀνϑρώπους, and Leusden yenders the passage nisi homines solos, except the men only ; while Beza’s rendering corresponds better with that of our common version: Sed ipsis est dictum ne lederent gramen terre, 6. ; sed tantum homines qui non haberent signum Dei in Srontibus suis, —that they should not injure the grass of the earth, &c., but only the men which had not the sign of God in their foreheads. The difference is not material, so long as we consider the term men to be figurative as well as the terms grass, green things, trees, &c.; and it seems unreasonable to suppose, that in the same divinely inspired composition, vegetables, birds, beasts, serpents, monsters, and even women, are uniformly figures, while the term men and its equivalents are to he literally inter- preted. THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 127 ‘Five months.’—This power to torture or to try was to continue five months, a term supposed by some to signify a chronological period in the history of Christendom, equal to one hundred and fifty years ; correspond- ing, it is said, with the incursion of the Saracens under Mahomet. Perhaps there would be no difficulty in finding other periods of literal torment, or of similar incursions, of an equal duration, either in political or ecclesiastical history. This, however, may not be necessary; the term may be only a mystic term—a key of correspondence with some other figure or scrip- tural type—as this period of five months’ trial by the locust power corres- ponds with the five months during which the waters “ prevailed upon the earth,” (Gen. vii. 24,) as also with the time during which the waters were retiring from the face of the earth. If, however, these five months designate, literally, a period of time in the history of the world, we may presume it is not to be understood till the final development of truth takes place. It is not for us to know the times and the seasons, (Acts i. 7.) The periods of time mentioned in the Apocalypse have not like those of the prophet |Daniel an epoch assigned them, a from and after, from which we may date their commencement; and the termination of a dura- tion, of which the commencement may be assigned ad labitum to meet one event or another, can afford no proof by which to verify the fulfilment of a prediction. Besides, the expiration of Daniel’s periods affords proofs, cal- culated as they may be from their dates, of the identity of the coming of Christ in the flesh, with the advent of him who, as the Jews well under- stood, “‘ was to come.” But there cannot be the same proof required of the second coming of the Saviour, for, from all that is said of that event, it is plain that whenever it takes place there can be no misjudging respecting it: “ As the lightning that cometh out of the one part under heaven, and shineth unto the other part, so will the coming of the Son of man be.” Until this is in some sense apparent, we may be confident that the time has not arrived ; the assurance being repeatedly given in the Scriptures that the day of the Lord, whenever it does come, will come as a thief in the night,—suddenly and unexpectedly. ‘There seems to be a degree of presumption in assum- ing dates and calculating periods, to defeat if possible this declared purpose of the Almighty ; we incline therefore to the opinion that these five months are not a portion of the history of the world, but that they have some other signification, in respect to which we must for the present suspend our opinions. § 211. ‘And their torment was as the torment of a scorpion, when he striketh a man.’—It is said of the scorpion that it fixes itself violently with its mouth and with its feet upon those whom it wounds, so that it cannot be plucked off without great difficulty. The figure in this respect may represent the almost fatal adhesion of certain deductions from legal princi- 128 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. ples to human pretensions of merit ; trying their validity, and, if not utterly destroying them, showing at least their corrupt tendency—their inability to stand in the fiery trial, alluded to 1 Peter i. 7, and 1 Cor. iii. 13, destined to try every man’s work. (1 beheld,” said Jesus to his disciples, ‘Satan (the accuser) as light- ning fall from heaven. Behold, I give you power to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and nothing shall by any means hurt you,” (Luke x. 18, 19,) οὐδὲν ὑμᾶς οὐ μὴ ἀδικήσει. To see Satan fall from heaven is equivalent to seeing the triumph of the economy of grace over the legal dispensation ; and the power of the apostles to tread on ser- pents and scorpions unharmed, may be taken as a figure of the power of the elements of the gospel (sealed ones) to overcome those principles of legal condemnation, arising from the transgression, which constitute the sting of death ;—that action of sin which must result in spiritual death. Corresponding with the same figure, the disciple adopted in Christ, by virtue of his imputed merits, triumphs over all the power of the enemy, having the same encouragement for his faith and confidence as that given to the prophet: ‘“ And thou, son of man, be not afraid of them, neither be afraid of their words, though briers and thorns be with thee, and thou dost dwell among scorpions: be not afraid of their words, nor be dismayed at their looks,”’ Ezek. 11. 6. V.6. And in oe cen ΕΗ men Καὶ ἐν ταῖς ἡμέραις ἐκείναις ζητήσουσιν seek death, and shall not find it: and οὗ ἄνϑρωποι τὸν ϑάνατον, καὶ οὐ μὴ εὕ- shall desire to die, and death shall flee ° ‘ εἴ > ΄ Π ~ Mol αὐτόν ° χαὶ ἐπιϑι' ησουσιν ἀποϑανεῖν from them f ᾿ Ny Tee c ΄ ee) 2 καὶ φευξεται ὁ ϑανατος ἀπ QUTWY. ᾧ 212. ‘And in those days,’ &c.—This is a strong hyperbolical descrip- tion of a state of mental distress incident to the plague of the scorpion sting, and indicating an extremity of trial. The action of this visitation is not final ; it appears rather preparative for something else. ‘The scorpion- locust power was directed against but one class of objects ; even the mem- bers of this class were not to'be destroyed, they were only to be tried; a part of their trial or torture appears, however, to have consisted in a fearful looking for of something still more to be deprecated: ‘‘ Men’s hearts failing them for fear, and looking after those things which are coming on the earth,” (Luke xxi. 26.) In a literal sense, those exposed to the fire and sword of the Saracen could hardly be said to have desired death without being able to find it ; and, in a spiritual sense, the state of condemnation figuratively spoken of as death, cannot be supposed to have been at any period desired or sought for. As to the desire of annihilation, it may be said to be and to have been always common with every conyicted sinner without a better hope, It THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 129 may be “an after-thought—a wish unborn till virtue dies ;” but where sin is, virtue has died; and hence the after-thought. This is not a pecu- liarity, however, to be confined to five months, or to one hundred and fifty years ; it has existed ever since our first parents strove to hide them- selves amidst the trees of the garden. The locusts from the smoke of the pit were not literally animals bear- ing that name, nor were they literally armed with the sting of other animals termed scorpions, nor were those stung or Aurt by them literally animals termed men or human beings. This, we think, must be evident, if we sup- pose the figures of divine revelation to be consistent with each other; and we can conceive of no other construction to be put upon the passage, than that these tortured beings are principles of self-rightousness, tried, as on the rack to the utmost, by elements of legal condemnation springing from the bottomless pit. Vs. 7, 8. And the shapes of the locusts se like unto horses prepared unto bat- e; and on their heads (were) as it were crowns like gold, and their faces (were) as the faces of men. And they had hair as the hair of women, and their teeth were as (the teeth) of lions. Καὶ τὰ ὁμοιώματα τῶν ἀχρίδων ὅμοια ἵπποις ἡτοιμασμένοις εἰς πόλεμον, καὶ ἐπὲ τὰς κεφαλὰς αὐτῶν ὡς στέφανοι ὅμοιοι χρυ- σῷ, καὶ τὰ πρόζωπα αὐτῶν ὡς πρόςωπα On’ ϑρώπων, καὶ εἶχον τρίχας ὡς τρίχας γυναι- κῶν, καὶ οἵ ὀδόντες αὐτῶν ὡς λεόντων ἦσαν, § 213. ‘And the shapes,’ &c.—The general appearance, (ὁμοίωμα.) The locusts resembled war-horses in their state of preparation for battle. The allusion is probably to the ancient custom of covering the horse as well as the rider with armour. Horses, at the same time, as well as their armour, are human means of safety or of power to contend with an enemy ; and thus represent principles of self-righteousness, upon which some may expect to justify themselves or to contend with the requisitions of the law ; as it is said, “Some trust in chariots, and some in horses: but we will remember the name of the Lord our God,” Ps. xx. 7. So, also, they may represent principles or legal elements acting against the self-righteous by their ten- dency to enforce the requisitions of the law: “ Those that take the sword shall perish by the sword,’ (Matt. xxvi. 52 ;) so those who depend upon legal elements for their justification, must by the same elements meet their condemnation. We may say metaphorically of a polemic, with his array of arguments, that he appears as a war-horse equipped for battle ; and so we say spiritually of these scorpio-locust principles from the abyss system with their legal furniture armed for the contest. ‘On their heads were as it were crowns like gold ;’ ozépavoi—the kind of crown given to victors at the games. ‘The crowns appeared like gold, and in a certain respect, perhaps, were justly entitled to this appearance. The action of these locust-principles, we are to remember, is against other principles represented by inhabiters of the earth, not having the seat 130 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. or mark of God in their foreheads. ‘They war against principles not belonging to God’s plan of redemption, as set forth and testified to by the one hundred and forty-four thousand elements of the Old and New Testa- ment revelations—the twelve multiplied by twelve, (ᾧ 175.) Gold we suppose to represent truth, and a crown of gold to be the token of triumph in the cause of truth. These locust-principles appear crowned as victors in the cause of legal truth, although they are not the champions of gospel truth. The law is good when it is used lawfully ; so these elements of the law, bringing the scorpion-sting to act upon the elements of self-righteous- ness, appear crowned as successful champions of truth. The elements of the bottomless pit system, represented by these locusts, are victorious in their contest with the elements of the earthly system ; they would not be so, if they were contending, with principles of the heavenly system of sovereign grace. ‘ And their faces were as the faces of men.’—The human face we have already supposed (ᾧ 128) to indicate wisdom, reason, &c. These faces of the locusts may be the characteristic of wisdom generally, or of human wisdom only. The law in its strictest sense bears the stamp of divine wisdom, and, lawfully applied, this wisdom is manifest in it. So the legal elements of the abyss system, crowned as they are with legal truth, and employed against the fallacious elements of self-justification, must bear the character- istic of divine wisdom. On the other hand, the same elements of legality, if employed to sustain a system of self-righteousness, would bear the stamp of human wisdom ; for, strange as it may appear, man’s wisdom favours most the elements of divine government least favourable to sinful humanity. Here, however, the locust-principles, operating against the inhabiters of the earth, representing elements of legal truth acting upon fallacious elements of a human system, must bear the stamp of divine wisdom, or of wisdom in the general sense of the term. ᾧ 214. ‘They had hair as the hair of women.’—The hair of women is given them for a covering or veil, (1 Cor. xi. 15,) symbolical of the cover- ing of righteousness with which the disciple must be arrayed, or must be accounted to be arrayed, ere he can appear in the presence of his God. Such a covering of righteousness is at the same time a protection and a glory ; woman, in this respect, is the image or symbol of the man. Her hair, it is said, was given for a covering: God gave it to her; and so the ascription or imputation of divine righteousness (the only true righteousness) to man, is the gift of God. ‘The hair of the Nazarite was a similar figure. The disciple, though strong in the Lord, and in the power of his might, loses his strength when out of this position ; because, out of this position, he is without the imputation of his Redeemer’s righteousness, and is no longer capable of meeting the requisitions of the law. Long hair, except THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 131 in a Nazarite, is, as it is said 1 Cor. xi. 14, a shame to man; because man in this particular is an image or symbol of the Redeemer, bearing the same relation towards the woman that Christ bears towards his redeemed ; for which reason also the disciple is to come boldly to the throne of grace— without hair, uncovered—trusting to his adoption in Him in whose name he comes. But if a man wear long hair, he places himself as a symbol in the position of a woman, or, figuratively speaking, he makes a woman of himself; an act of effeminacy to which there is in the mind of man an almost universal repugnance. If the disciple, instead of coming boldly to the throne of grace, trusting in the name and merits of his Saviour, come in his own name, trusting in his own merits, he is as a man glorying in his own long hair—trusting in a righteousness of his own—in a covering emanating from his own strength. So Absalom gloried in his hair, which proved to be the instrument of his destruction. As these locusts represent legal principles, so their hair or covering represents a legal righteousness, or that righteousness which the law requires. They exhibit this necessary covering as a standard under which they con- tend—a formidable equipment intimidating their adversaries. If these locusts contended on the side of the earthly system, we should consider their long hair a symbol of self-righteousness ; but they contend against the earthly system of self-justification, and the hair of woman is a symbol of the legiti- mate and proper covering or veil—a legitimate and proper righteousness. Their exhibition of this hair, therefore, is a portion of their martial array, equivalent to their exhibition of the legal position—the soul that sinneth, it shall die. ‘And their teeth were as the teeth of lions. —The lion we have assumed to be a figure of the element of justice, (ᾧ 126.) The teeth of the lion may be said to be the power of justice, capable of destroying the criminal—the sinner; as, in the divine denunciation against a rebellious people, it is said, Deut. xxxii. 24, “They shall be burnt with hunger, and devoured with burning heat, and with bitter destruction. I will also send the teeth of beasts upon them, with the poison of serpents of the dust.” As these legal elements of the pit thus showed the righteousness re- quired by the law, so they exhibited the power and right of divine justice to exact the life of the sinner, to destroy where this righteousness is wanting ; as it is said, Joel i. 6, “For a nation is come up upon my land, strong and without number, whose teeth are the teeth of a lion, and he hath the cheek teeth of a young lion.” So the Psalmist, in allusion to the same action of legal elements exclaims, ‘‘ Break their teeth, Ὁ God, in their mouth ; break out the great teeth of the young lions ;” and Ps. exxiv. 6, “ Blessed be the Lord, who hath not given us as a prey to their teeth. Our soul is escaped ΄ 132 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. as a bird out of the snare of the fowler: the snare is broken, and we are escaped.” All these passages confirm the supposition that the teeth of lions, such as possessed by. these locust-principles, represent elements of divine justice, adverse indeed to the salvation of the sinner, but still more adverse to every pretension of that sinner to self-justification. In this con- test the teeth of the lion remain unbroken: they are broken only by the power of sovereign grace—by that exercise of mercy which finds a ransom for the victim of justice. Vs. 9, 10. And they had breast-plates, v } καὶ εἶχον ϑώρακας ὡς ϑώρακας σιδηροῦς, as it were breast-plates of iren; and the καὶ ἢ φωνὴ τῶν πτερύγων αὐτῶν ὡς φωνὴ sound of their wings (was) as the sound of chariots of many horses running to battle. And they had tails like unto scor- pions, and there were stings in their tails: and their power (was) to hurt men five ἁρμάτων ἵππων πολλῶν τρεχόντων εἰς πό- λεμον. Kai ἔχουσιν οὐρὰς ὁμοίας aa πίοις, καὶ κέν Too ἥν ἐν ταῖς οὐραῖς αὐτῶν, καὶ ἡ ἐξουσία αὐτῶν ἀδικῆσαι τοὺς ἀνϑρώ- months. πους μῆνας πέντε. ᾧ 215. ‘And they had breast-plates.’—Ogaf, armour for the body, covering the breast and back, (Rob. Lex. 309.) Old English, habergeon, a coat of mail, (Webster,) a complete covering for the trunk of the body— a cuirass. ‘As it were breast-plates of iron.’—Iron is a metal proverbially dis- tinguished in Scripture, as well as in common parlance, for its strength ; it is however an earthy material. The breast-plate of the locust is not the breast-plate of imputed divine righteousness, (Eph. vi. 14.) It is a legal breast-plate—the righteousness required by the law from all who are under the law. The legal principle in its contest with the elements of self-justifi- cation has its strength in the rigid exactions of law ; as if the accuser him- self appealed to this principle of divine justice to urge the condemnation of all those depending upon their own merits—the habiters of the earth. ‘ And the sound of their wings,’ &c.—The sound of the onset of a mul- titude of chariots and horses must be an alarming sound, calculated to strike the opposing ranks with panic and fear. ‘Terrific sounds are one of the characteristics of legal denunciation ; as, in the giving of the law from Sinai, there were voices and sounds, as well as thunderings and lightnings. ‘Thus we may say the charge of these locust-principles upon the elements of the earthly systems possesses the peculiar characteristic of the terrors of the law. ‘And they had tails like unto scorpions..—The prophet that speaketh lies is said to be the tail, Is. ix. 15, and the devil (the accuser) is declared to be a liar, and the father of lies, John viii. 44. A prophet, as we have noticed, is an interpreter of the divine will or purpose—a prophet or inter- preter of revelation, representing the purpose of God as a system of condem- nation, acts the part of the accuser; while he is at the same time the father of a lie in respect to this misinterpretation of the economy of . THE SCORPION LOCUSTS. 133 grace, to which he attributes a sting of death belonging only to the legal dispensation. In allusion to this peculiarity, perhaps, it is represented that these locust-principles from the bottomless pit system, not only have the sting of the scorpion, but also that the tail is the seat of the poison, the instrument by which the sting of death (sin) is brought into action. «And stings were in their tails,’—or, the stings were in their tails.— There is no article in the original, but it may be supplied with propriety ; as the sting spoken of is no doubt the scorpion power said to be given to these locusts in the third verse, and their instrument of torment or torture, spoken of in the fifth verse, already noticed, (¢ 209.) ‘ And their power was to hurt (ἀδικῆσαι) men five months.’—The hurt being the same as that supposed to be the opposite of justification. The whole equipment of these locust-principles exhibits them as legal elements arrayed with all the power of the law, except that they do not enforce con- demnation. They are strong in the law, and exhibit the terrors of the law, but they do not exhibit the requisitions of the law as carried out to the death. ‘The scorpion power may be said to be that of the law carried out to an extreme of refinement, corresponding with doctrinal views rendering the requisitions of the Gospel even more severe and more grievous to be borne than those of the Levitical dispensations ; views exhibiting the spirit expressed in the threatening of the ill-advised king of Judea, 1 Kings xii. 11: “ My father made your yoke heavy, and I will add to your yoke: my father hath chastened you with whips, but I will chastise you with scor- pions ;’’—and this too as the construction of the language of him who invited all labouring under this bondage to come unto him, with the assurance that his yoke is easy and his burden light, (Matt. xi. 30.) ‘To hurt men five months.’—We can only at present compare this period of time with that of the prevailing or increasing of the waters of the deluge, by which the elements of the material earth were tried—indicating a trial of a character somewhat analogous; the earth representing a system, of which its men or inhabiters are the principles, to which principles the legal elements, styled the scorpions of the earth, are peculiarly hostile, although both are peculiar to the same system, (¢ 210.) V. 11. And they had a king over them, "Eyovow ἐφ᾽ αὑτῶν βασιλέα τὸν ἄγγελον Sg is) the hats ses it de pa δι) τῆς ἀβύσσου, ὄνομα αὐτῷ “βραϊστὶ ᾿Αβαδ. whose name in Θ ebrew tongue (18 ΄ δ δὺ χα datas ἀρ 2 Abaddon, but in the Greek tongue hath ag mab ἐν τῇ λληνιαῇ ὀνόμα ἔχεν IARI: (his) name Apollyon. ~ agate § 216. ‘ And they had a king,’ &c.—It is said of the destructive species of locusts, Prov. xxx. 27, that “ they have no king,” although they have the wisdom to go forth in bands. In allusion to this, it may be stated of these spiritual locusts, as something the more remarkable, that they have a king or 134 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. leader. The word rendered king signifies a chief of almost any kind. We suppose the king here to be a chief or leading principle, the ministering spirit, a controlling tendency of the bottomless system. 'The name Apollyon signifying, as generally admitted, the destroyer, from the verb ἀπόλλυμι; to destroy. ‘The action of these locusts, as that of this first wo itself, is against the wnsealed inhabiters of the earth, or the elements of the earthly or self-righteous system. The destruction in view is, consequently, that of these self-righteous elements ; as the elements of the law, when brought to bear upon the pretensions of man to a merit of his own, must exhibit the folly of these pretensions, and thus destroy them. Apollyon is the destroyer, not of gospel principles, for these bear the seal in their foreheads, and are protected from his power, but he destroys those elements of justification by works upon which man would depend if there were no economy of grace. This ruling spirit of the bottomless pit is thus in effect the destroyer of those out of Christ, but not of those in Christ: in this respect, the action of Apollyon very nearly corresponds with that of Satan the accuser, and justifies the general supposition of the identity of the two characters. The province of Apollyon, however, may be limited to the destruction of the hopes of sinners derived from any merits of their own, while the power of Satan, the devil, the accuser, is excited to destroy the hopes of the sinner, whatsoever may be their foundation: the work of the Redeemer, as we shall hereafter find, consisting in a contest between the power of propitiation and the power of legal accusation—between the power of sovereign grace, and the unmiti- gated claims of justice. RETROSPECT. V. 12. One wo is past; (and) behold, “Ἢ οὐαὶ ἡ μία ἀπῆλϑεν: ἰδού, ἔρχονται ἔτι there come two woes more hereafter. δύο οὐαὶ μετὰ ταῦτα. τς § 217. ‘One wo is past.’—That is, the exhibition of the character of one wo is finished. -We are not obliged to consider these woes as literally successive events ; nor is the final result of this first wo fully detailed. We are told only that men, in consequence apparently of the torture to which they were subjected, desired death without being able to obtain it. The name of the leader of this band of tormentors was the destroyer, and we may presume that he acted as a destroyer; and if we suppose the five months to be put for something else than a chronological period, we may say perhaps the same principles still hurt and still destroy not men literally, but doctrinal elements, figuratively spoken of as men. In what then does this wo consist? Our thoughts on this subject must be taken merely as suggestions, for we are decided only in believing these locusts to represent something else than Saracen or Mahometan troops. » RETROSPECT. 135 We have supposed the design of opening the bottomless pit to be, that of developing the true character of its elements. |The question still presents itself, how such a development can be a wo to the inbabiters of the earth? what connection is there between the earth and the bottomless pit? When the fifth angel sounded, a star was seen to fall from heaven to the earth, to which the key of the bottomless pit was given. The bottomless pit must be therefore something belonging to the earth; else why should the messenger employed to open it be sent to the earth? This pit must be a pit in the earth ;—the figure corresponding with the ancient notion of the earth as a large, square, flat surface, of a certain undefined thickness, but of such a character, that a pit or shaft passing entirely through this stratum of earth would finally reach an abyss where there was nothing more of matter to be met with, or nothing capable of furnishing a bottom. But as the shaft of a well requires earth around it to make it a shaft, so this pit could not be a pit without the existence of the earth in which it is supposed to be located. Analogous with this, we suppose the bottomless pit system to be a part of what we call the earthly system, the first being an important feature in the character of the last: the principles of the earthly system depend- ing for their supposed correctness upon the nature of the pit system. For which reason, to exhibit the real incorrectness of this earthly system, the true character of the elements of the pit system must be developed. We have seen (¢ 206) that the word rendered pit in English, and τὸ φρέαρ in the Greek, is in the Hebrew as well as in the Septuagint ap- plied to what we call a well, whether it be full or dry—a well or pit of living water, or a dry well. By way of illustration, we may suppose a person about to take up his residence in a tract of country where he must depend upon a single well for his supply of water—the whole char- acter of this tract of country we may say is involved in that of this well. If it be a never-failmg spring of wholesome water, the location is a good one, it will afford the means of existence or support ; but if the well prove to be a dry pit having no water, or if the water be unwholesome and destructive to life, the whole tract of country is worthless. Under such circumstances the new settler’s first object will be to have this well or pit opened, that he may know what the character of its contents is before he hazards his future happiness by a dependence upon it. What we call the earthly system, corresponds with the tract of country we have imagined. In the midst, and as a part of this earthly system, is a provision for eternal life, the distinguishing feature of the system, and that upon which its whole value depends. If the principles of this provision be sound and well-founded, all is well; but if they be incorrect and entirely without foundation, and even of a character hostile to every hope of salva- tion, then the whole system involving this provision, and depending upon LE no 136 .THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE FIFTH TRUMPET. it, must be equally worthless, its elements being entirely incapable of being ¢ sustained. We find in the history of the patriarchs a well of pure water to be con- sidered an essential of life. As such, we consider a well symbolic of what- ever is essential to eternal life, comprehending all that is requisite to justify men in the sight of God. Wells are not spoken of, however, as means of ablution ; we therefore do not suppose them to represent the element of pro- pitiation or atonement, but rather what was supposed under the old dis- pensation to be the essential of eternal life, that is, fulfilment of the law. So the wells of the patriarchs were deserving of little confidence, for they held good but for a short time, and were frequently found to be dry. Accordingly, we suppose the bottomless pit system to represent a self- righteous scheme for the inheritance of eternal life, which precludes the idea of propitiation ; something anterior to the supposition of man’s need of an atonement. It isa pit without water, as well as a pit without a bottom. It is a plan of self-justification by works of the law, the elements of which, when fully analyzed and exhibited, show the subjection of man to the law; and thus bringing the elements of the law to act upon the principles of self- justification, exhibit the sting of death, and operate on the mind a convic- tion of sin, preparatory to further views of man’s insufficiency and of God’s gracious purpose. The true character of the elements of the abyss system is thus exhibited ; and such an exhibition is a wo to the inhabiters of the earth, because this development is the first step towards the destruction of the elements of the earthly system generally. Man being thus convinced of sin, the next step, as we shall see, will be to expose the folly, on the part of man, of any at- tempt to atone for this sin by a propitiation of his own working out ; still less can he depend upon any atonement wrought out by a fallen man in his behalf: ‘None of them can by any means redeem his brother, nor give to God a ransom for him,” (Ps. xlix.7.) But this we suppose to be the sub- ject of the next wo.* * The first wo occupies but eleven verses of the ninth chapter; whereas ten verses of the ninth chapter, the whole of the tenth chapter, and thirteen verses of the eleventh bapter, in all thirty-four verses, are taken up with the relation of the second wo ; and the third wo appears to extend from the fifteenth verse of the eleventh chapter to the conclusion of the Apocalypse, or at least as far as the end of the twentieth chapter,—the remaining two chapters being occupied principally with the descrip- tion of a scene of triumph and blessedness, the converse or opposite of the scenes represented under the three woes. We see nothing in this first wo which may not take place in the mind of every disciple, as an exhibition of the true character of certain doctrines: a process in the development of truth entirely distinct from matters of political and ecclesiastical history. RETROSPECT. 137 Under the first wo the earthly supply of sustenance is not cut off: men are tormented or tortured by the sting of the scorpion-locusts, but they still depend upon the productions of the earth, the grass, green things, and trees, for the means of life, and perhaps for remedies under their sufferings. So the self-righteous man, even under the conviction of sin, may still depend upon some system of works to furnish the means of eternal life ; and analo- gous with this, the elements of an earthly system may continue to be set off as the means of eternal life, against the principles of legal condemnation exhibited under the character of these venomous locusts. 138 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. CHAPTER IX .—(Continued.) SECOND WO.—THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. Vs. 13, 14. And the sixth angel sound- ed, and I heard a voice from the four horns of the golden altar which is before God, saying to the sixth angel which had the trumpet, Loose the four angels which are bound in the great river Ku- phrates. SE a 7 SP iy ἄγ 53} Kat ὁ ἕκτος ἄγγελος ἐσάλπισε, καὶ ἤκου- . - σα φωνὴν μέαν ἐκ τῶν τεσσάρων κεράτων τοῦ ϑυσιαστηρίου τοῦ χρυσοῦ τοῦ ἐνώπιον ~ ~ ' ~ idZ 2 c Tov ϑεοῦ, λέγουσαν τῷ ἕκτῳ ἀγγέλῳ, ὁ 2 ‘ 7 > ‘ ' ἔχων τὴν σαλπιγγα: λῦσον τοὺς τέσσαρας > ' ‘ r ~ ~ ἀγγέλους τοὺς δεδεμένους ἐπὶ τῷ ποταμῷ τῷ μεγάλῳ Ligouty. ᾧ 218. ‘A voice from the four horns,’ &c.—We have already sup- posed the altar to represent the Logos, or sovereign purpose of God, (ὃ 161 ;) its material, gold, being mdicative of the truth of the doctrine or principle of divine sovereignty involved in this purpose. The four horns may represent the same elements of power as those exhibited under the figure of the four living creatures, in the midst of and round about the throne, (Rev. iv. 6, $$ 126, 7, 8;)—Horns also representing powers, ($ 137,) as the horn of an animal constitutes its weapon, or power of defence or attack. The horns of the altar, accordingly, represent the principles of divine government upon which, or by the aid of which, the plan of redemp- tion is carried into effect. The horns of the altar were made use of for securing the sacrifice to, or upon, the altar, Ps. exvii. 27: ‘“ Bind the sacri- fice with cords, even unto the horns of the altar.” The great sacrifice ever in contemplation with the Most High, is the propitiation of Christ. Appa- rently, these four horns are so many important principles connecting this sacrifice for sin with the sovereign purpose of God. The altar of burnt-offering was to have horns upon the four corners, Ex. xxvii. 2, and xxx. 10. Aaron was to offer the yearly sacrifice on the horns of the altar of incense. The horns are not put for the atonement itself, but for something exhibiting the vicarious offering of Christ, as neces- sarily involved in the purpose of Sovereign Grace. So our trust in the atonement of Christ, as effectual in the salvation of sinners is confirmed by the belief that the sovereignty, the purity, the justice, the mercy of God, all co-operate in showing the intimate connection of such a propitiation with the purpose of grace. As the altar sanctifies the gift, and not the gift the THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. 139 altar, so the divine purpose sets apart the atonement of Christ ; it is not the atonement which sets apart the purpose. God’s sovereignty gives him the right to require and to accept any pro- pitiation he pleases. His purity involves the infinite distance between his perfection and the imperfection of man, showing the corresponding infinite degree of propitiation required. His justice exhibits the necessity of some adequate means, by which its claims may be satisfied ; and his mercy affords the assurance that the adequate propitiation required will be provided. ‘The attribute of wisdom being involved in that of merey or goodness, the coun- sels of wisdom are those of goodness or loving-kindness, as we find from the general tenor of Scripture, especially from the book of Proverbs. We lay hold of one of the horns of this altar when, with deep convic- tion of our sinfulness, we humble ourselves before God ; acknowledging his sovereignty, and relying for pardon upon his grace, through the great Sacri- fice offered in our behalf. We lay hold upon another of these horns when, convinced of our sins, we feel ourselves deserving of the punishment his justice requires, having no hope but in the same vicarious sacrifice. So, when we contemplate the infinite distance there is between the perfection of the Deity and our unworthiness, and thence infer our need of redeeming mercy, we lay hold of another of these horns ; and this, if possible, still more when we look to his goodness and loving-kindness, and trust in his promises of salvation. § 219. ‘Saying to the sixth angel which had the trumpet,’ &c.—The sixth messenger or instrument of revelation, is called upon by the four ele- ments just enumerated to loose certain other messengers previously re- strained or bound. The whole process refers to a development of truth ; the loosing of these angels being a figure of the same kind as that of the opening of the bottomless pit. , ‘ Loose the four angels which are bound in the great river Euphrates.’ —This river, like the bottomless pit, we take to be the figure of a system. The four'messengers (angels) bound in it must be four elements, which as soon as loosed become instruments of revealing the true character of this system, and that of its principles. The Euphrates bounded the land of Canaan on the east, but was not a portion of the promised territory. It was rather a heathen river. It ran through the city of Babylon, being a means of purification and sustenance, upon which the inhabitants of that city depended ; although eventually it became the instrument of delivering the city into the hands of a foreign power. Its figurative use in Scripture seems to be that of an opposite of the river alluded to by David, “the stream whereof shall make glad the city of our God,” Ps, xlvi. 4; as it is also probably an opposite of the river 140 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. of the water of life, described Rev. xxii. 1, as proceeding from the throne of the Most High. The term great may be applied to the Euphrates here, to direct the mind to that which is represented by the river; the spiritual river bemg the ereat river as distinguished from the literal ; or it may be a sarcastic allusion “Ts said the vain-glorious monarch, “ great Babylon, which I have to human apprehensions of the river—that which man esteems great. not this,” built.” As we suppose the river of the water of life to be the real means of purification from sin, so we may take the Euphrates to be a figure of some human system, or pretended means of propitiation—means really calculated to prove the ruin of those depending upon them—the river bearing a rela- tion to the city of Babylon afterwards spoken of, (Rev. xiv. 8,) similar to that borne by the bottomless pit to the earth, (ᾧ 217 ;) the Euphrates being a source of purification and sustenance depended upon by the inhabiters of the earth. The approaching exhibition of the false and destructive charac- ter of this source is a wo, or the commencement of a wo, to the elements of the earthly system spoken of as the men or inhabiters of the earth. Vs. 15, 16. And the four angels were Καὶ ἐλύϑησαν οἱ τέσσαρες ἄγγελοι ob loosed, which were prepared for an hour, and a day, and a month, and a year, for to slay the third part of men. And the number of the army of the horsemen (were) two hundred thousand thousand : c > ‘ co c ' ἡτοιμασμένοι εἰς THY ὥραν καὶ ἡμέραν καὶ - la ὁ 2 μῆνα καὶ ἐνιαυτόν, ἵνα ἀποκχτείγωσι τὸ τρί- - 2 ΄ aN) 1 ~ tov τῶν ἀνϑρώπων. Καὶ ὃ ἀριϑμὸς τῶν , ~ ~ , , στρατευμάτων τοῦ ἱππικοῦ, δύο μυριάδες and I heard the number of them. μυριάδων: ἤκουσα τὸν ἀρυϑμὸν αὐτῶν. ᾧ 220. ‘And the four angels were loosed.’—This call from the horns of the altar is a fiat of the Almighty ; the requisition of his attributes being as imperative as his command: and God said, Let there be light, and there was light. He spake, and it wags done. ‘The voice said, Loose the four angels, and the four angels were loosed. ‘ Which were prepared for an hour,’ &c.—or, more strictly, acc ording to the Greek, which were prepared unto the hour, day, month, and year; the enumeration of these portions of time giving intensity to the expression designed to show that this particular revelation is kept back until the proper moment for it, and the use of the definite article before the word hour marking such an appointed time.* ‘The indefinite article an, of our com- mon version, does not appear warranted by the text of any edition of the Greek. As the four angels holding the four winds of the earth were pre- * This also appears to be the common use of the Greek preposition εἰς, with an accusative, (Rob. Lex. 191,) as 2 Tim. i. 12, εἰς ἐχείνην τὴν ἡμέραν. See also the use of the same preposition, Jude 6, even without the article: sg zgfow μεγάλης ἡμέρας. THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. | 141 vented from hurting any earthly element till the one hundred and _forty- four thousand were sealed ; and as the locusts were not permitted to kill, but only to Aurt, during the reign of terror allotted them ; so these four angels have been kept back from making their revelation till the precise moment for bringing it forth. This moment, however, may not be literally an epoch in the history of the world: it may be designed to point out a certain stage of development ; the exposure of a certain error being necessary, before its opposite truth can be fully exhibited.* ‘To slay the third of men ;’ that is, men in the third, or spiritual sense, (Ὁ 191.)—We presume these men to be the inhabiters of the earth against whom the three woes are pronounced, (Rev. viii. 13,)—unsealed principles or elements of the earthly system, not intended to be preserved. ‘The word translated slay signifies simply to kill, as distinguished from slaughtering a victim for sacrifice. ΤῸ kill is to destroy—to deprive of life—perhaps, in matters of doctrine, to show the elements of a system to be altogether literal, without the spirit or essential of life. The issuing of the four angels with their forces being equivalent to a revelation, the tendency of the revelation is to destroy especially certain erroneous principles, manifesting them to be without life, or without the principle of life. The elements of the pit sys- tem were not permitted to destroy ; they were only to torture—to elicit truth ; but the elements of the Great River go further—they are permitted to kill; the verb translated in the fifth verse to kill, being the same as that in the fifteenth verse rendered to slay—as if to direct us to com- pare the prohibition in the one case with the express design in the other. ‘ And the number of the army of the horsemen (were) two hundred thou- sand thousand, —Gr. two myriads of myriads—or twice ten thousand times ten thousand, equal to two hundred millions: a number very far beyond that of any literally invading forces ever yet known, horse and foot included ; and perhaps equal, at the time of the prophecy, to one third or one quarter of the whole population of the globe. We suppose this number to represent some- thing infinite or countless. There may besides be a further meaning in the duplex sign, two. Calculating one horseman to every six individuals of a family, one hundred millions of horsemen would require a population of six hundred millions of men, women, and children, to permit them to be drafted. This number alone therefore appears sufficiently countless ; why then should it be doubled? Why should the sign of an infinite number be represented * This hour, day, month, and year, has been computed as three hundred and ninety-one years and fifteen days, a period said to correspond with the progress of the Turks from the time of the Crusades, A. 1). 1281, to their taking of Carmeniac from the Poles, 1672, (Bagster’s C. B.) But we leave the benefit of this calculation to those who take a different view of the design of the Apocalypse from that here proposed. 142 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. twofold? And why should the emphatic declaration be added—‘* I heard the number of them?’ There seems to be also a correspondence between the number of twice ten thousand times ten thousand, and the number of the angels round about the throne, Rev. v. 11, “ten thousand times ten thousand and thousands of thousands.’”’ We suppose these horsemen to represent doctrinal powers or elements of a system, figuratively styled the great Euphrates: these elements being designed to act upon those of the earthly system spoken of as the third ef men. The twofold character of the number of these destroying elements we may suppose to represent the twofold action of both the letter and the spirit. That is, whatever this Euphratean system may represent, its elements, both in a literal and spiritual sense, tend to show the fallacy of the principles of the earthly system. So we suppose the cloven tongues of the Holy Spirit to represent the twofold action of the literal and spiritual meaning of the language of inspiration. There can be no doubt but that the two hundred millions of horsemen represent the same power as that figured by the four angels; the sudden change of this number four into such a multitude, being somewhat similar to that met with in the account of the evil spirits, Mark v. 9, first spoken in the singular number, and immediately afterwards represented as a legion, several thousands, or a multitude. The term λεγεών, indeed, is supposed by some to be the name of a prince or commander of a multitude, (Rab. Lex. 406.) So these four angels may represent four chiefs of the two hundred millions of horsemen. The difference as a figure is not material ; it is only the difference between speaking of a certain assailing power as the leader of a band, or as a band with its leader. We may suppose the quadruple figure of the four angels to represent all the leading features of a system ; as the four comers of the earth are put for all the earth, (¢ 172.) V.17. And thus 1 saw the horses in Kat οὕτως εἶδον τοὺς ἵππους ἐν τῇ ὁρά- the vision, and them that sat on them, having breast- plates of fire, and of jacinth, and brimstone: and the heads of the je Ti geet: : horses (were) as the heads of lions; and ϑειώδεις, shape ie of kage ἘΠ ἘΠΕ tsi: out of their mouths issued fire,and smoke, φαλαὶ λεόντων, καὶ & τῶν στομάτων αὐτῶν and brimstone. ἐχπορεύεται σεῦρ χαὶ καπνὸς καὶ ϑεῖον. Ν ‘ UG 3 Ὁ > ~ 2» Tél, καὶ τοὺς καϑημένους ἐπ᾿ αὐτῶν, ἔχον- , c tus ϑώρακας πυρίνους καὶ υσκινϑένους καὶ ᾧ 221. : Απά thus I saw,’ &c.—We have supposed the Apocalypse te be a revelation, through the instrumentality of a vision or waking dream ; but here we have a specific application of the term to it: “I saw in the vision,” ἐν τῇ ὁράσει. The same term occurs only in one other passage of the New Testament, Acts ii. 17, “ your young men shall see visions.” In the Septuagint it is of frequent occurrence. ‘The predictions of the prophets are called visions—* prophetarum predictiones vocantur ὁράσεις, Lex. Suice- ri. The Hebrew word rendered in our common version burden, is expressed by this term in the Greek, Is. xix. 1, ὁράσεις αἰγύπτου, and xxx. 6, the bur- THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. 143 den or vision of the beasts of the south, (Concord. Tromii.) [τ is applied, Zech. x. 2, to the false dreams or visions of soothsayers and divines, οἱ μάντεις ὁράσεις wevdeis—* the diviners have seen a lie,” or false vision. The term may have been first applied amongst the Greeks to pictures supposed to be presented to the minds of those who professed to interpret the will of the gods, and whose pretensions to visions probably took their rise from a traditionary knowledge of the mode in which the Hebrew prophets were instructed. The apostle John no doubt used the word as it was commonly understood in his time, viz., as a waking dream: the mental vision of one whose thoughts are entirely abstracted from earthly objects, and in this situation contemplates a symbolic exhibition, to be interpreted by its own rules. ‘The horses in the vision, and them that sat on them.’—These were war-horses, and their riders warriors, representing doctrinal powers engaging in what we may call a contest of principles. The white horse and his rider, (Rev. vi. 2,) we have supposed to represent the. redeeming power, going forth to overcome the legal elements opposed to the salvation of the sinner ; the great champion not only going forth himself, but controlling the action of subordinate powers, to carry his purpose into effect. As, in a lit- eral sense, the wars between nations are subordinate to the purposes of God for carrying out his designs, so the war between the elements of the Eu- phratean system, and the elemehts of the earthly system, is something sub- ordinate to the action of the Rider of the white horse. If the two hundred millions of horsemen be not conducted by this champion, their action is something under his control. They are employed to destroy certain erroneous principles, in order to prepare the way for his coming, and his final victory. As in the invasion of a country by a foreign power, one portion of the inhab- itants may contend with another portion, and thus facilitate the conquest on the part of the invader; so, preparatory to the victory of Gideon, in the host of the Philistines every man’s sword was set against his fellow, Judges vil. 22. As the bottomless pit was a portion of the earth, so the Euphrates is also an earthly river; and as the blinded inhabitants of the earth may have taken their pestiferous abyss for a well of living water, so, with the same blindness, they may have depended upon this great earthly river as a river of the water of life. The true character of the elements of this great Euphrates is now developed, and the inhabiters of the earth proved to be destroyed by the very power to which they trusted. This delusive system of atonement being unfolded, an infinite number of legal principles are seen to proceed from it. These principles, like those who seek to justify them- selves, resembling the war-horse in his eagerness for the conflict, heedless of the consequences: as it is said, Jeremiah vill. 6, “ No man repented him of his wickedness, saying, What have I done? Every one turned to his 144 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. course, as the horse rusheth into the battle.” At the same time these prin- ciples are just those upon which it is to be shown that sinful man can have no power to provide a propitiation for himself. If he perform all required of him by the law, he does no more than his duty ; consequently, if he come short in the performance of a single requisition, he can subsequently do nothing more than his duty to atone for that single transgression. On legal or judicial principles, a whole eternity of obedience cannot atone fora single hour of rebellion. The angels that excel in strength, that do the com- mandments of God, hearkening unto the voice of his word, (Ps. ciii. 20,) can do no more than their duty. They cannot, therefore, atone for the short- coming of others; and the same may be said of every created being—yea, the heavens are unclean in the sight of the Most High! How much more abominable and filthy is man, who drinketh in iniquity like water! Such is the axiom of the divine law ; and such the action of every principle ema- nating from it. A system of atonement therefore involving these princi- ples, must have in effect the operation of δαδριαρω σον ΘΥ̓ΘΡΥ. earthly ele- ment of cKcanarenane § 222. ‘Having breast-plates of fire, of hyacinth, and brimstone.’— These warriors were arrayed in armour of very extraordinary materials, and this not merely in appearance. Such was the real character of these breast- plates. The hyacinth is said to be a gem of a yellowish-red colour ; but is described by Pliny (Rob. Lex. 773) as of a dark cerulean colour, probably the bluish tinge peculiar to the flame of burning sulphur; the hyacinth of these breast-plates being a compound of the two other mate- rials, fire and brimstone ; the composition of the armour for protection, corres- ponding with the materials of what is afterwards described as the weapon of offence, or means of destruction. ‘The cuirass, or coat of mail of heavy cavalry, is not simply a means of defence ; such troops being principally employed to bear down and break the enemies’ line by the weight of their charge, which they are enabled to do as much by their armour as by the use of sword and spear. So the shield or buckler of the ancients was some- times employed as an instrument of attack, as well as of defence, beg armed with sharp spikes, or pointed bosses; as, to rush on the thick bosses of Jenovan’s buckler, Job xv. 26, is expressive not merely of a vain and fruitless attack, but of the madness of determined self-destruction, The hya- cinth or jacinth gem is an impenetrable substance, and therefore an appro~ priate figure for a material of the breast-plate ; the gem being supposed to combine the qualities of the fire and sulphur with its own solidity. In the description of the means of offence, we find smoke substituted for jacinth; this smoke also combining the same qualities, But a breast-plate of fire and smoke and sulphur would be a figure hardly admissible. We suppose fire to represent the trying power of the revealed word, THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. 145 and brimstone the perpetuity of the action of this fire. The employment of these breast-plates, therefore, is something equivalent to the perpetual action of the revealed word, in opposing the erroneous influence of the elements of the earthly system. ‘ And the heads of the horses were as the heads of liens.’ —The defen- sive armour only of the rider is mentioned; the means of offence or attack are ascribed to the horse. These had the heads of lions. 'They possess the characteristic quality of lions ; as animals with a human face are sup- The lion we have con- These, horses are posed to possess the characteristic of man—reason. sidered as representing the attribute of justice, (¢ 126.) therefore elements or powers of justice ; powers by which the opposing ele- ments of a self-righteous or earthly system are destroyed. The locusts had teeth as of lions, but as they were not permitted to kill, their teeth could These horses with the judicial characteristic the lion’s head only intimidate or torture. of the lion, had also the lion’s power to destroy or to kill: possessing the lion’s mouth. ‘ And out of their mouths issued fire, and smoke, and brimstone.’-——That is, out of the mouths of the horses, whose heads had just been described. The horse and the rider, however, may be taken as one figure of the power and action of a principle of doctrine. The fire, smoke, and brimstone; cor- respond in all but the middle term with the composition of the breast-plates ; smoke also combining the qualities of the fire and sulphur. The weapon of attack, therefore, whether proceeding from the mouth of the horse or of the rider, may be said to be of the same composition as that of the breast- plates. The offensive and defensive arms are alike composed of these ele- ments of trial, of perpetuity, and of the two combined. The armour of the locusts was as of iron—passively defensive only. The armour of the horse- men is of fire, and jacinth, and brimstone, actively defensive ; as the arrow, falling upon a breast-plate of iron, may be unable to penetrate it, but is un- injured by it; while an arrow falling upon a breast-plate of fire and sulphur, as well as of an impenetrable gem, may be supposed to be consumed and destroyed by these combustible materials with which it comes in contact. ‘Vs. 18, 19. By these three was the third (part) of men killed, by the fire, and by the smoke, and by the brimstone, which issued out of their mouths. For their power is in their mouth, and in their tails: for their tails (were) like unto ser- pents, and had heads, and with them they do hurt. ᾿Ιπὸ τῶν τριῶν πληγῶν τούτων ἀπεκτάν- ϑησαν τὸ τρίτον τῶν ἀνθρώπων, ἐκ τοῦ πυρὸς καὶ τοῦ καπγοῦ καὶ τοῦ ϑείου ἐχπτο-Ἅ QEVOMEVOU ἐκ τῶν στομάτων αὐτῶν, “I γὰρ i ’ ~ c > ~ ’ > ~ ἐξουσία τῶν ἵππὼν ἐν τῷ στόματι αὐτῶν ἐστι καὶ ἐν ταῖς οὐραῖς αὐτῶν" αἵ γὰρ οὐ- ραὶ αὐτῶν ὅμοιαι ὄφεσιν, ἔχουσαι κεφαλάς, χαὶ ἐν αὐταῖς ἀδικοῦσι. ᾧ 223. ‘ By these three,’ or by these three plagues, ‘ was the third of men killed. —The third of men, corresponding with the view we have taken of 146 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. the terms third (δ 191) and men, or inhabiters of the earth, (ᾧ 195,) are principles of the earthly system—doctrinal elements depending upon that system. The Euphratean cavalry constitutes the doctrinal power of the system represented by that great river. ‘The weapon of offence of this cavalry, as well as its armour, is the unquenchable fire of revealed truth, or the deductions from that truth, as smoke is a result of the combustion of fire and sulphur. ‘The source whence this portion of revealed truth emanates is the judicial attribute of the Supreme Being—the element of vindictive justice—the head and mouth of the lion; for if the heads of the horses were as the heads of lions, their mouths must have been as the mouths of lions. And this is just that object of dread which the convicted sinner, in view of the justice of God, must fearfully contemplate ; and which, in being contem- plated, must break down, champ, crush, and grind to powder every preten- sion to self-justification. ‘They gaped upon me,” says David, in allusion to such a state of conviction, “with their mouths, as a ravening and roaring lion. Save me,” he adds, “from the lion’s mouth,” Ps. xxii. 13, 21. The lion first described as in the midst and round about the throne, Rev. iv. 6, 7, is like a lion; and perhaps we may say, in any plan of redemption, the first attribute of the Deity to be satisfied is justice. It is then the emana- tion of truth from this attribute of justice, which destroys the pretensions of human merit spoken of as the third of men. ‘For their power is in their mouth, and in their tails.X—In their mouth, because, as we have seen, their mouth is the mouth of the lion; in their tails, for the reason subsequently given. ‘ For their tails were like serpents, and had heads, and with them they do hurt,’—to hurt, being an opposite of justifying, (ᾧ 174.) Their tails were like serpents, in their use and action. They had heads, that is, serpent-heads : —as a lion’s head implies a lion’s mouth, so a serpent’s head implies a serpent’s sting. The serpent is the accuser—the accuser’s sting is the transgression of the law: the action of the accuser is to bring the trans- gressor under the law. ‘The false prophet, or false interpreter of the divine will, (the tail,) maintains the necessity of justification by the works of the law. Thus the principles of legality represented by these tails operate to hurt or counteract justification, and so expose its victim to the action of the sting of death, or sin,—the transgression of the law. Here, then, we perceive a double operation in this Euphratean-horse power. Principles emanating from the attribute of inflexible justice call for the death of the transgressor ; while principles of subjection to the law, in opposition to the justification of the disciple, pronounce the sentence of condemnation upon every soul that doeth evil, though he offend only in one point. § 224. This view of the operation of these Kuphratean principles may throw some light on the character of the system. As a river of the earth, THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. 147 we have supposed this Euphrates to be the figure of a human scheme or proposed means of atonement. This scheme, we may suppose, admits the fact of man’s sinfulness ; but it proposes to atone for this sinfulness by works of propitiation of man’s performance, so as to compensate for the past by subsequent obedience, or to make up for past transgression and neglect of duty on one hand, by some extraordinary acts of submission or certain scrupulous performances. Such is the system of human wisdom. Very specious in appearance, so long as its real elements are bound, or not developed ; but as soon as they are fully exhibited, and the four angels are loosed, (four being put for all,) then the true character of its multi- farious principles is manifested, and they are all found to be composed of two elements alike destructive to man’s pretensions of justification by his own works. These two distinguishing elements may afford a reason, if that already given be deemed insufficient, (ὃ 220,) for the duplex denomi- nation of the centenary number of the horsemen, showing that whatever may be their multitude or variety, these emanations from the great river scheme are all of the twofold character alluded to. The mouth of the lion, and the serpent’s sting, is to be perceived in both. The bottomless pit system, we suppose to be a system of self-righteous- ness—a resting upon one’s own merits, unconvinced of sin—neither ad- mitting nor contemplating the necessity of atonement; recognizing the existence and power of the law, but proposing to meet its requisitions by works. Here the remedy required is an exhibition of the exceeding sinful- ness of sin ; not resulting in actual condemnation, (death,) but showing the call for some propitiatory provision, to meet the case of delinquency. Accordingly, the secret nature of this mystery being laid open, it is mani- fested to afford no bottom or foundation upon which a hope or trust of justification by works of the law can be built; while the features of the system, in proportion as they are developed, exhibit their direct tendency to hurt, or bring about the condemnation of the disciple, or to leave him at least in an unjustified position. The operation of the first wo we apprehend to be that of so exhibiting the folly of human pretensions to righteousness as to provide for the con- viction of sin. The necessity of some propitiation being now admitted, the next error to be combated is the supposition of the sinner’s ability to atone for himself. This error is exposed by showing what must be the true character of the elements of an atoning provision (a river) of this kind; how its principles directly counteract the claims of human merit to justifica- tion, and virtually cause the condemnation of those depending upon such a delusive scheme of redemption, instead of contributing in any degree to cleanse them from their guilt. The exhibition of this latter folly is the subject of the second wo—a wo 148 THE SEVENTH SEAL —THE SIXTH TRUMPET. to the inhabitants of the earth, (ᾧ 205,) or to the elements of the earthly system, because these false pretensions are destroyed by the exhibition of the legal elements,* represented by the overwhelming body of cavalry, brought into action in this second process of trial. We do not pretend to apply either of these exhibitions to a particular denomination or portion of the visible church. It is for all denominations, and all individuals of that church, to employ the mirror themselves, and to contemplate in it the peculiar features of their respective systems, as far as they may find them represented. Vs. 20,21. Aad the rest of the men which were not killed by these plagues yet repented not of the works of their hands, that they should not worship dev- ils, and idols of gold, and silver, and brass, and stone, and of wood: which neither can see, nor hear, nor walk: neither re- pented they of their murders, nor of their sorceries, nor of their fornication, nor of ty ε - > , . Καὶ ot λοιποὶ τῶν ἀνθρώπων, ot οὐκ > , ~ ~ ἀπεχκτάνϑησαν ἐν ταῖς πληγαῖς ταύταις, οὔ- , ~ 2 - - c τε μετενόησαν &% τῶν ἔργων τῶν χειρῶν αὖ- - « ΄ ‘ , τῶν, We μὴ προςχυνγήσωσι τὰ δαιμόνια καὶ ‘ , ‘ ~ 4 > ~ τὰ εἴδωλα τὰ χρυσᾶ καὶ τὰ ἀργυρᾶ καὶ τὰ - ‘ ‘ ' ‘\ ‘ - κα a ΡΒ χαλκᾶ καὶ τὰ λίϑινα καὶ τὰ ξυλινα, α οὔτε , , ” > , »" βλέπειν δύναται οὔτε ἀκούειν οὔτε περιπα- Ξ 2 ΄ id , τεῖν, καὶ οὐ μετενόησαν ἐκ τῶν φόνων αὖ- their thefts. εὖ ” 2 = = ΣΌΣ ΕΠ ἐξ TOW OUTE EX τῶν φαρμακειῶν αὐτῶν OUTE EX ~ c ~ ” ~ 7 τῆς ποργείας αὐτῶν οὔτε ἐκ τῶν κλεμμάτων c ~ αὐτῶν. § 225. ‘And the rest of the men.’—It is difficult to say even what is probably to be understood by this rest, or remainder, or those left of the men. By these three it is said, in the 18th verse, was the third (part) of men killed, leaving us no room to suppose but that the whole of this third was destroyed ; in which case there can be no remainder. On the other hand, the trees, the sea, the creatures in the sea, the ships, the rivers, the sun, the moon, the day, and even the night, (Rev. vii. 7-12,) all suffer in their third, and nothing is intimated with respect to their remaining two-thirds. We suppose men, or inhabiters of the earth, to be figures of doctrinal * We apply this term legal elements to these horsemen with less hesitation, be- cause the fire, smoke, and brimstone, of their equipment, correspond so nearly with the volcanic chacteristics of Sinai, that we think there can be no mistake in this particular. We may add here that, in addition to the feature of perpetuity supposed to be indicated by sulphur or brimstone, the smoke and effluvia arising from its com- bustion have been long considered antidotes to the infection of contagious diseases— purifying and cleansing substances submitted to their action; the exhalation from burning sulphur being perhaps destructive to the life of the animalcula entering into the composition of pestilential virus. Thus, as fire is the purifier and trier of metals, the smoke of burning sulphur is the trier and purifier of other substances ; while the sulphur itself, like the fuel of voleanic combustion, is that which gives per- petuity to both of these agents. The fire, and smoke, and sulphur, from the mouths of the horses, in their destruction of the one-third of men, thus represent the revealed word in its destruction of certain errors, combining three elements, two of which have the characteristic of trying and purifying, and one that of continual ceaseless operation. - THE EUPHRATEAN CAVALRY. 149 principles of self-justification ; deductions from revelation, capable of being made in three different senses, that is, by taking Scripture in the literal sense, in the metaphorical sense, and in the spiritual sense. In this last sense these elements of self-justification are destroyed by the develop- ment of the great river system ; but in the other two senses they still remain unchanged and unaflected:—as we may say that no argument drawn from the literal, or metaphorical sense of revelation, will destroy these elements or change their tendency. » Something like this may be represented by the impeuitent state of the rest of the men. The literal construction of this vision, for example, does not counteract the erroneous view usually formed of man’s dependence upon his own works; neither does the ordinary figurative application of the vision to matters of church history ; but the spiritual view of it, when fully attained, we think will have this effect. If it do not appear so from the manner in which we have exhibited these truths, the fault is in our feeble ability, and not in the nature of the case. ‘Yet repented not,’ &c.—The word yet is unnecessarily introduced here. Some editions of the Greek have οὐ μετενοῆσαν in the twentieth verse, instead of οὔτε. We should either read, the rest of the men repented not of the works of their hands, and repented not of their murders, &c., or neither repented of their works, nor of their murders, &c. This would givea finish to the sentence, which it seems to require ; for with these two verses the relation of thjs wo, so far as the four angels and the horsemen are concerned, ends ;—the one-third of men are killed, and the other two-thirds remain unchanged ; the next chapter commencing with an entire new exhibition. Whatever this res¢ or remainder of men may be, however, it is com- posed of those chargeable with idolatry, murder, sorcery, fornication, and theft. The idolatry, too, seems to be of the lowest kind,—the worship of demons and of dumb idols; and the crimes those of the grossest character, such as literally but a small portion of mankind actually commit; the reason and experience of man in every stage of society showing the neces- sity of punishing these crimes for the common welfare. We cannot but take it for granted, therefore, that something else than the ordinary literal meaning is here intended. ‘That they should not worship,’ &e.—Idolatry, in a spiritual sense, we have already ($ 61) shown to consist in the motive of action—an intention to serve and promote the glory of self, instead of serving and glorifying God; and we suppose doctrinal principles favouring these motives to be here alluded to, under the figure of idolaters. Men worship idols made of earthly materials, and the work of their own hands, when they ascribe their salvation and eternal happiness to works of righteousness of their own per- 150 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXHT TRUMPET. formance. They worship devils or demons, when their motive of action is a slavish fear of punishment, or a mercenary expectation of reward. There may be a variety of grades in this species of idolatry, according as the individuals chargeable with it are more or less intellectual and intel- ligent. One man may give a penny to a charitable or religious object, and another may build a temple or endow an asylum. If the motive be to establish a claim of merit, or to compensate for a want of merit, the act of idolatry is the same. One man may count his beads, and another may make long prayers ; one may fast once or twice a week, and another may be scrupulously abstemious throughout his life; one may observe days and months, and forms, and another may be as punctilious in certain outward acts of devotion, public and private ; one may depend upon the repetition of a creed, or the maintenance of a single point of doctrine, and another may contend for the importance of a code of doctrine. In all, if the motive be to establish a merit, the performance is a mere act of idolatry. The idols may be of different materials, but they are still the works of men’s hands ; the works have really no more merit in themselves than an idol of wood or stone has ability to save. They that make them are like unto them; so is every one that trusteth in them. In this respect the self-right- eous disciple of the most enlightened portion of the visible church of Christ may be as really an zdolater as the ignorant pagan of antiquity, or the infatu- ated South-sea worshipper of stocks and stones. In the apocalyptic sense, however, we suppose not the man, but the doctrinal principles leading to the idolatry in contemplation, are the rest of the men not killed, and not repent- ing. This subject of idolatry, as it will be perceived, occupies the whole of the twentieth verse; we can hardly therefore be blamable for having dwelt so much upon it here. § 226. ‘Neither repented they of their murders, &c.—There are those, it is said, Heb. vi. 6, who crucify to themselves the son of God afresh, and put him to an open shame ; something analogous certainly to the crime of murder: and these are they, as it appears from the same passage, who, after having enjoyed the knowledge of the truth of salvation by sovereign grace, have turned back to a dependence upon their own merits. After having tasted of the heavenly gift—after having enjoyed the blessed assur- ance of pardoning mercy, through the atoning blood of a Saviour, they have rejected all for the vain purpose of working out a propitiation and a righteousness of their own ; returning as the sow that is washed to her wal- lowing in the mire. The devil is said to have been a murderer from the beginning, John viii. 44. His first act was to persuade his victims to make themselves as gods—bringing them into a position of condemnation or spiritual death, by rendering them obnoxious to the provisions of the law. RETROSPECT. 151 So we may say, every principle of doctrine tending to bring man into this position, as opposed to the position of grace, is the principle or doctrine of a murderer, and may be spiritually so denominated. The term translated sorcerer, is that from which we derive the appella- tion given to the science of compounding drugs and medicines—pharmacy. The sorcerers of ancient times probably acquired their reputation in the first instance by professing to cure diseases, relieve complaints, and gratify the wishes of those coming to them for aid. A sorcerer is therefore, in Scrip- ture, an opposite of the true physician ; and is thus appropriately a figure of elements of doctrine professing to furnish other remedies for the diseases of the soul than those to be found in the merits of Christ. Perhaps, too, as sorcerers of old practised their arts for the purpose of obtaining money from the ignorant, and as Simon the sorcerer (Acts viii. 9) esteemed it a fair matter of trade to purchase the gift of the Holy Ghost, that he might sell it again ; so the apocalyptic sorcerer may be put for principles of a mercenary character, representing the work of salvation in the light of an affair of trade or barter, in which the sinner is supposed to have given an equivalent for the grace or benefit bestowed upon him. The nature of spiritual fornication we have already considered (¢ 62) as an opposite of the dependence of the believer upon his union and ac- counted identity with Christ. The principles figuratively spoken of as those not repenting of this crime, we suppose to be elements of doctrine leading to other views than those of reliance upon the merits of that Redeemer, who declares himself to be also the husband of his church, Is. liv. 5. Of thefts, or in allusion to such thefts as are here contemplated, it is said,,Mal. iii. 8, “ Will a man rob God?” Yet ye have robbed me.” We rob God, we commit a sacrilegious theft, when we set up any principle of doctrine tending to deprive Him of the glory due for our redemption. So every principle of self-righteousness, or doctrine of that character, is justly represented under the figure of a thief. We thus suppose the rest of the men (οἱ λοιποῖδ to be deductions from literal or figurative views of Scripture, as distinguished from spiritual views ; or they may be more loosely considered legal elements generally, treating the term the rest, or the remaining ones, as a license of vision of a character similar to that by which the four angels became suddenly metamorphosed into two hundred millions of horsemen, (vide ᾧ 255, note.) RETROSPECT. This development of the great river sy:tem we may consider the prin- cipal feature of the second wo, although that wo is not announced as passed 19 152 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. till after the account given of the two witnesses, and of the destruction of the tenth of the city by earthquakes, Rev. xi. 14; the tenth chapter being taken up with something like an intermediate scene or interlude, showing, as it were, what is taking place in the councils of heaven while this second wo is being in operation upon earth. As the prophesying, death, and resur- rection of the two witnesses is part of the second wo, we conclude that the incursion of the horsemen covers the same space as that represented by the history of the witnesses and the earthquake ; consequently, that the period of action of the two hundred millions of horse comprehends the twelve hun- dred and sixty days, and other periods of time mentioned in the vision of the witnesses. That is, if time be literally intended by these terms, the events of chapter xi. 1-14, synchronize with those of chapter ix. 14-21. We have, however, some doubts whether tzme, in a literal sense, is to be taken at all into contemplation. Meanwhile, we rest on the supposition that the first wo (the locust vision) developes the baseless and self-destructive character of the system, or of any system of man’s dependence upon his own righteousness, or of justification by his own works. ‘The second wo, as far as represented by the four angels and their forces, equally developes the folly of the sinner’s dependence upon any propitiation or system of atonement of his own work- ing out; the subsequent part of the second wo probably containing matter in confirmation of this development. “ὐπὸ Ὡππὰπ ων ως THE MIGHTY ANGEL, | 153 CHAPTER X. THE MIGHTY ANGEL.—TIME NO LONGER.—THE LITTLE BOOK. V. 1. And I saw another mighty angel Καὶ εἶδον ἄλλον ἄγγελον ἰσχυρὸν κατα- come down from heaven, clothed with a βαίνοντα ἐκ τοῦ οὐρανοῦ, περιβεβλημένον cloud: and a rainbow (was) upon his > head, and his face (was mae 5 oa the »εφέλην, καὶ ἢ ἶρις ἐπὶ τῇς κεφαλῆς αὐτοῦ, sun, and his feet as pillars of fire. καὶ τὸ πρόζωπον αὐτοῦ ὡς ὃ ἥλιος, καὶ οἵ A 2 - c ~ ’ πόδες αὐτοῦ ὡς στῦλοι πυρός" ᾧ 227. ‘ Ann I saw another mighty angel :᾿--τοῦ, in the Greek order, ‘another angel mighty,’ or strong. ‘The word another, may refer to any or all of the preceding angels ; amongst which we suppose the star, Rev. ix. 1, to have been one. ‘The scene is not changed ; there is only an addi- tional personage introduced—pending, we may suppose, the action of the horsemen just described. But this is not merely another angel, he is an angel mighty or strong ; so was that proclaiming the challenge for open- ing the sealed book, Rev. v.2. The design of the first mighty angel seems to have been to show, in the most pointed manner, that the inter- pretation of the sealed book was to be made virtually by the Lamb, and by him only. The design of the second mighty angel is himself to present a revelation, under the figure of the little book or scroll, held in his hand ;— a message, of the character of which we may form some idea by the descrip- tion given of the messenger. ‘Come down from heaven.’—As the new Jerusalem was seen coming down from God out of heaven, Rev. xxi. 2. It is a heavenly spiritual revelation, in contradistinction to any thing earthly, or emanating from the earth, or partaking of the earthly system. ‘Clothed with a cloud..—Having wrapped himself in a cloud. So the second coming of Christ is said to be with clouds, Rev. i. 7, and elsewhere. These clouds being, as we suppose, the typical and figurative representation of him and of his second coming contained in the Scripture descriptions, through the medium of which he is intellectually to manifest himself, (John xiv. 21-26.) . 154 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. ‘And a rainbow upon (or over) his head ;/—or the rainbow, as it is in some editions ; referring to the rainbow before seen encircling the throne, Rev. iv. 3; supposed (ᾧ 120) to represent the assurance of divine mercy— the token of the new covenant. ‘ And his face as it were the sun ;’—as it is said, Rev. i. 16, of the one © like unto the Son of man, ‘‘ His countenance was as the sun shineth in his strength ;” spiritually, the Sun of righteousness, (Mal. iv. 2.) ‘And his feet as pillars of fire ;—corresponding also with the form described, Rev. i. 16, ‘ His feet like unto fine brass, as if they burned in a furnace.” From all these particulars, we seem to be warranted in supposing this mighty or strong angel to be “ the messenger of the covenant,” (Mal. iii. 1,) or, according to the Septuagint, the angel of the covenant, whom ye desire or wish for. If not Christ himself, a manifestation of the Holy Spirit, exhibiting the attributes of Christ—the promised Comforter—mighty, because his message was mighty ; fully equal to that comprehended in the almost inscrutable mystery of the sealed book. Ve. 2, 3. And he had in his hand a little καὶ evan ἐν τῇ χειρὶ αὐτοῦ βιβλαρίδιον ‘book open: and he set his right foot upon ἀνεῳγμένον. καὶ ἔϑηκε τὸν πόδα αὑτοῦ τὸν the sea, and (his) left (foot) on the earth, 5... and cried with a loud voice, as (when) a δεξιὸν ἐπὶ τῆς ϑαλάσσης, τὸν δὲ εὐώνυμον ἄνες ae ν 2» - hen Be ae lion roareth: and when he had CERIO, «(hi 179 Ὁ. 715; RO Seen noel μεγάλῃ ὠςπερ . . ’ ~ Vo oy] 34 7 seven thunders uttered their voices. λέων μυχκᾶται. καὶ ots Exouser, ἐλάλησαν αἵ ἑπτὰ βρονταὶ τὰς ἑαυτῶν φωνάς. ᾧ 228. « He had in his hand alittle book open.’—The original is ἃ dimin- utive of the word signifying a scroll. The term βιβλαρίδιον occurs nowhere else than in this chapter, either inthe New Testament or in the Septuagint. He had in his hand a small scroll. We are not to associate, however, with this term small the idea of insignificance ; such a diminutive being applied in some languages to any thing valued or cherished—not the less valued or less important because it is small. As in the divine manifestation to the prophet, 1 Kings xix. 11, 12, “ The Lord was not i the wind, nor in the earthquake, nor in the fire, but in the stall small voice.’ From the array of the messenger, and from the presumption that the small scroll in his hand contained his message, it appears probable that this book or scroll is a representation of the subject matter of what we call the New Testament ; that is, the gospel, the still small voice, as revealed to us through the instrumentality of the evangelists and apostles. This book was open, and so is the gospel open to investigation : it requires no subsequent dispensation for the interpretation of its contents ; although it may require a certain enlightening of the mind to be rightly understood. THE MIGHTY ANGEL. 155 ‘ And he set his right foot upon the sea, and his left* upon the earth.’— The sea is said to be God’s, for he made it, as he formed also the dry land, (Ps. xev. 5;) and the earth is also said to be his footstool, (Is. lxvi. 1.) Both of these elements are literally subservient to the power of the Creator. But we suppose, besides this, the sea to be put for a system of wrath—the legal dispensation, or something equivalent to it; and the earth to be put for the system of man’s position under the law, dependent upon his works— eating his bread by the sweat of his brow. In the attitude of this angel, we have a symbolic picture of the complete subjection of these two systems to.the gospel message :—the messenger taking his position, as it were, upon these two systems, and delivering his glad tédings as something called forth by them, or rendered necessary by them. © And he cried with a loud voice, as a lion roareth.—The Lamb slain is also the Lion of the tribe of Judah. The Paschal Lamb, the peace-offering for sinful man, is the lion towards every element opposed to his work of redemption. The roaring of the lion is the voice of intimidation: the time is now come for those opposed to the messenger and to his message to tremble. The purport of the voice appears to be to call attention to the subject of the message, or to the delivery of the little book, about to take place; or we may connect this loud cry with the solemn declaration afterwards uttered, considering the intermediat- action of the seven thunders as simultaneous. ς And when he cried, the seven thunders 'ittered their voices.’-—What- ever may have been the purporf of this tenific ery, it was such apparently as to call forth the opposition of these thunders. They are spoken of as the seven thunders specifically, according to tie Greek ; although we do not find any mention elsewhere in the Scriptures of them by that number. We suppose, however, the number seven to c.mprehend the whole of a class, as the seven spirits before the throne, (ὃ 7.) Thunders and thunderings are characteristics of the legal dispensation ; we may suppose, therefore, the loud voice of the gospel messenger to call forth something in the nature of a protest on the part of the attribute of divine justice. Sinai puts in, as it were, her last claim, uttering her seven denunciations: all indeed that the law can urge for the condemnation of the sinner. But the voice of the Lion of the tribe of Judah is heard simultaneously with that of these judicial elements, and the Lion’s voice prevails over all others. * The term rendered left, in this passage, is said to be a word of good omen sub- stituted by the Greeks for ἀριστερός, which was one of sinister, or bad import. So the action of this angel, whether as to the sea, or as to the earth, is one of good omen to men ; the messenger is one of glad tidings—Rob. Lex. 277, art. Εὐώνυμος. 156 V.4. And when the seven thunders had uttered their voices, I was about to write: and I heard a voice from heaven saying unto me, Seal up those things which the seven thunders uttered, and THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. Καὶ ὅτε ἐλάλησαν αἵ into βρονταΐ, Ἐμελ- ov γράφειν" καὶ ἤκουσα φωνὴν ἐκ τοῦ ov- ρανοῦ λέγουσαν σφράγισον ἃ ἐλάλησαν αἵ ἑπτὰ βρονταί, καὶ μὴ αὐτὰ γράψης. write them not. § 229. ‘I was about to write, and I heard,’ &c.—Whatever may have been the import of the language of these thunders, it is very evident that it is not permitted to form a part of this unveiling of Jesus Christ. The voice of wrath is now silenced, the law has been fulfilled “by the obedience of one,” (Rom. v. 19,) and a declaration now of its claims, like irrelevant matter, is not permitted to go upon the record. ‘Seal up those things which the seven thunders uttered, and write them not.’—So far as the message of this angel is concerned, the denuncia- tory or accusatory matter contained in the voice of these thunders is done with; like documents offered upon a trial, not admitted as evidence, they are to be laid aside. ‘They are not permitted to interfere with the delivery of the little book, or to pervert the interpretation of its contents. Accordingly we find no further mention made, either of the seven thunders or of their voices. Who shall lay any thing to the charge of God’s elect? It is God that justifieth ; who is he that condemneth ? Vs. 5, 6, 7. And the angel which I saw stand upon the sea and upon the earth, lifted up his hand to heaven, and sware by him that liveth for ever and ever. who created heaven, and the things that there- in are, and the earth, and the things that therein are, and the sea, and the things which are therein, that there should be [shall be] time no longer. But in the days of the voice of the seventh angel, when he shall begin to sound, the mystery of God should be finished, as he hath declared to his servants the prophets. r c ” a s ~ ~ Καὶ ὁ wyyshos, ὃν εἶδον ἑστῶτα ἐπὶ τῆς ΄ - - 5 ‘ ~ ϑαλάσσης καὶ ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς, NOE τὴν χεῖροι ε - ‘ A A 2 , ΡῚ αὑτοῦ τὴν δεξιὰν εἰς τὸν οὐρανόν, καὶ ὦμο- - - ‘ ~ ~ oy ἐν τῷ ζῶντι εἰς τοὺς αἰῶνας τῶν αἰώ- a A 2 - VO, ὃς ἔκτισε τὸν οὐρανὸν καὶ τὰ ἐν αὐτῷ, (ῳ ‘ ~ Ἂ χ > > ~ UN 4 , καὶ THY γῆν καὶ τὰ ἐν αὑτῇ, καὶ THY ϑά- ‘ ~ ΄ 1 λασσαν καὶ τὰ ἐν αὐτῇ, OTL χρόνος οὐκέτι 3 ‘ ~ c ' ~ ~ ~ ἔσται" ἀλλὰ ἕν ταῖς ἡμέραις τῆς φωνῆς τοῦ ΤᾺ 2 , a ἑβδόμου ἀγγέλου, ὅταν μέλλῃ σαλπίζειν, καὶ Naat ‘ - τς c > ἐτελέσϑη τὸ μυστήριον τοῦ ϑεοῦ, ὡς εὕῃγ- γέλισε τοὺς ἑχυτοῦ δούλους τοὺς προφήτας. ᾧ 230. ‘Lifted up his hand to heaven, and sware by him that liveth,’ &c.—Here we have a confirmation of the supposition, that the mighty angel controlling the sea and the earth, or the mysteries represented by them, is the Deity himself, either in the character of the Son, or that of the Holy Spirit, or Comforter. “Swear (vow) not at all,” is an injunction applicable to every created being. He only can swear to what shall be, or what shall not be, who is himself the efficient cause of all things ; and this oath of the angel is not merely an attestation as to a fact; it is the expression of a determination that such shall be the fact. The angel does not swear by the earth, or by the sea, but by the living God, who made these creatures of his power, both in a natural and in a spiritual sense. So, TIME NO LONGER. 157 when God made a promise to Abraham, because he could swear by no greater, he sware by himself, Heb. vi. 13. ‘That there should be [shall be] time no longer..—This declaration appears the more extraordinary, since immediately after it, in the three suc- ceeding chapters, specific periods of duration are seven times mentioned, under the different forms of days, months, and years or times. Our first thought is, that the Greek compound particle οὐκέτι should be rendered as two separate particles, οὐκ and ἔτι, not yet, instead of no more, signifying that the time of development should not be till after the expiration of the several periods about to be mentioned ; but in this supposition we are not borne out either by the use assigned by grammarians to this compound particle alone or to the two particles ; or by the construction necessarily given them in other portions of Scripture ; or by the rendering of this passage in other versions, which all, as far as we have examined, agree in assigning the mean- ing no longer to the term employed. “Ἔτι alone” (says Buttman) “ signifies yet, further; and with the negatives οὐκέτι, μηκέτι, no more.” (Everett’s trans. Boston, 1822, p. 265.) So Rev. xxi. 4, ϑανάτος οὐκ ἔσται cannot be otherwise rendered than there shall be no more death; and πόνος οὐκ ἔσται ἔτι, there shall be no more pain. So Luke xv. 19, οὐκέτι εἰμὶ ἄξιος, 1 am no more worthy ; and Phi- lemon 16, οὐκέτι ὡς δοὔλον, not now, or no longer asa servant. The six versions of Bagster’s Hexapla accord with this rendering, there shall be time no longer, or there should be no longer time. To which we may add the Latin of Leusden, tempus non amplius esset, and of Beza, tempus non fore amplius: the Spanish, que no habrad ya mas tiempo ; and the Italian, che il tempo non sarebbe pitt, both from the Vulgate: the German, (Luther,) das hinfort keine zeit mehr seyn soll: and the French, qwil n’y aurait plus de tems. ‘This uniformity of rendering leaves us no room to suppose any other meaning to the particles in question, whether written in connection or separately, than that of no more, no longer. (See also Rob. Lex. 525, Suiceri Lex. et al.) What then is the apocalyptic sense of the declaration, that time shall no more be, or no more shall be? the verb being in the future tense, and precisely of the same form as that rendered, Rev. xxi. 4, by the sign shall. We presume the expression is no more to be taken in a literal sense than others of this mystic relation. The word χρόνος strictly denotes, it is said, the idea of time, in its simple abstract form, which we perceive and measure by the succession of objects and events. (Tittmann y. Rob. Lex. 835.) It would be difficult to imagine a state of things, even in eternity, in which there is literally no succession of objects and events—in which there are no revolutions of the heavenly bodies, or in which these revolu- tions are. not successive, or if successive, incapable of marking duration or 158 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. portions of time. But if this were the fact, there is nothing in this portion of the vision calling for the introduction of the subject. Whether we take the book spiritually, or literally, there is nothing in this part of the revela- tion, apparently, having any connection with the question, whether the idea of eternity admits of that of time or not. There is, however, an important point coming under consideration, connected with the subject of chronology, and that is, what we are to understand of the periods of time, forty-two months, one thousand two hundred and threescore days, &c., mentioned in the next and succeeding chapters. ‘To meet this case the preparatory ex- planation is now given, in the form of a solemn declaration; as if to set any question on the matter entirely at rest. There shall be no more time. Time in a literal sense, as far as the objects of this vision are concerned, is no longer to be contemplated. The several periods alluded to as measures of time, are spiritually measures of vision—indices of parallelisms, showing, perhaps, the correspondence of one series of figures with another. When we meet with these, therefore, we are to set the idea of duration, in its literal sense, entirely aside ; as in the measurement of the space covered by the blood of the wine-press, (Rev. xiv. 20,) we set aside the idea of length or breadth, in a literal sense, of the sixteen hundred furlongs ; and as we also set aside the association of any literal ideas with the number (two hundred millions) of the horsemen mentioned in the last chapter. ᾧ 231. ‘But in the days of the voice of the seventh angel,’ &c.—If this term days be taken in a literal sense, there is apparently a great incon- sistency in the oath: first, that time shall be no more, and then that certain things are to take place in a time to come, or in a subsequent period specified. The reasonable conclsion seems to be, that the expression, “ in the days,” &c., is put for the whole of the development of truth or revela- tion made through the instrumentality of this angel; the days of the voice of the seventh angel being a figure of speech for the portion of revela- tion allotted to that angel. ‘Time, as regards the matter of this vision, is not to be taken into consideration ; but the revelation of the seventh trumpet will be the conclusion of the mystery of God. The expression in the original ὅταν μέλλῃ σαλπίζειν would be more properly rendered, when he is to sound, equivalent to when he ts sounding, or when his trumpet is being sounded ; corresponding with the previous expression, in the days of the voice, &c., which comprehends the whole compass of the voice. We are to look, therefore, to the whole matter announced under this seventh trumpet, as the finishing of the mystery of God. The conjunction καὶ immediately before the word ἐτελέσϑη, if rendered by and, throws a difficulty in the way of the interpretation. Our common ver- sion does not notice it at all, neither does that of Wiclif, 1380, or of Rheims, 1582; but the Tyndale, Cranmer, and Geneva versions, render it by the 4 TIME NO LONGER. 159 word even: “ but in the dayes of the voyce of the seventh angell, when he shall begyn to blowe, even the mistery of God shall be fynysshed.” The Latin of Leusden renders it by et, which, like the Greek καὶ, may signify etiam, also ; the version of Luther by the German particle so, equivalent to even, which may be considered in the light of an intensive ; and as the declaration corresponds very much in character with that of Jesus, John iv. 23, the καὶ may have the same sense as it is supposed to have there, viz., that of yea, verily, &c., Rob. Lex. 333, and 334. “ But the hour cometh, and now is: yea, verily, now is.”’ So, in this passage of the Apocalypse, the angel solemnly avers that time is not to be considered in the vision; nevertheless the revelation under the seventh trumpet’s sound shall verily complete, or finish, the unfolding of the mystery of God. If, besides, we give to but at the commencement of the seventh verse the force of a sign of contradistinction, the declaration will then be equivalent to this,—that time shall be no longer ; but, that is, so far from there being a continuance of time, (in this vision,) as soon as the seventh angel begins to sound, even then the mystery of God is to be con- sidered as finished. Time is not to be supposed to elapse afterwards ; con- sequently the periods of days, times, and months, mentioned under the sounding of that seventh trumpet, are not to be considered literally terms of duration. Here we have a sufficient reason for the solemnity of the oath, as nothing but this construction of the declaration can put an end to calcu- lations respecting the periods afterwards mentioned ; while this construction itself is all-important to a proper understanding of the whole book. We find the term mystery of GOD employed nowhere else in the Scrip- tures except Col. 11. 2; and there, according to the common version, it is also put for the mystery of Christ—the apostle praying for them of Laodi- cea, “that their hearts might be comforted, being knit together in love, and unto all riches of the full assurance of understanding, to the acknowledgment of the mystery of God, and of the Father, and of Christ, in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge ;” or, as the original might be rendered, the mystery of God, both of the Father and of Christ, (τοῦ Θεοῦ, καὶ πατρὸς καὶ τοῦ Χριστοῦ,) in which, that is, in which mystery—év the Greek pronoun being in this case masculine or neuter—in which mystery are all the hidden treasures (οἱ ϑησαυροὶ ἀπόκρυφοι) of wisdom and know- ledge. Such we suppose to be the mystery of God, the finishing of which is the subject of the seventh trumpet’s voice. No doubt the same as the mys- tery of faith, 1 Tim. 111. 9; the mystery of godliness, 1 Tim. iii. 16 ; the wis- dom of God in a mystery, 1 Cor. ii. 7 ; the mystery of Christ, Eph. iii. 4 ; the mystery of the Gospel, Eph. vi. 19, and elsewhere : the same mystery, per- haps, viewed under so many different aspects. In conformity with this con- struction, we presume the subject of the seventh trumpet’s voice to be a final development of the doctrinal elements of the divine plan of redemption—the 160 THE SEVENTH SEAL—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. hidden or mystic treasures of wisdom and knowledge ; as in contradistinction to all other wisdom and knowledge not immediately pertaining to this mys- terious subject. § 232. ‘ As he hath declared to his servants the prophets ;’—or, verba- tim, as he evangelized his servants the prophets. 'The prophets were made the repositories of this mystery. Itis not expressly stated that they declared it to others, but it may be fairly inferred that this mystery constituted the subject or burden of their predictions. This fact is important in guiding us to a right understanding of the vision; for if the mystery of God, unfolded by the voice of the seventh trumpet, be the same as that committed to the pro- phets, and contained in their symbolical writings, then this vision must cor- respond with the prophecies ; and a true construction of the one must admit and conform to a Jike construction of the other. Unless our interpretation, of this portion of the New Testament especially, be sustained by something of a similar import in the books of the Old Testament, we can have no confidence in it. And this is to be predicated not merely of the writings of one prophet, but of those of all who in Scripture language are denominated prophets ;—as Jesus, in his walk with the two disciples after his resurrection, beginning at Moses and all the prophets, expounded unto them in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself. The mystery of this vision is not a new one: it is the old mystery committed to the prophets—given them in charge ; perhaps in figures, of which some of them had more understand- ing than others ;—all (angels or messengers) desiring to look into these things, (1 Pet. i. 12,) as Jesus himself says many prophets and kings desired to see and hear things which the Jews were permitted to see and hear while he was upon earth. Still more, no doubt, did they desire to know things with the knowledge of which the disciples were favoured after the descent of the Holy Spirit. In the same figures in which this mystery was received by the prophets, it was probably handed down by them. With these pro- phetic figures, therefore, we must compare those of the Apocalypse, that our interpretation may be in conformity with both. We do not mean by this a mere correspondence of dates and events, in the ordinary sense of those terms ; but a correspondence of truths or doctrinal principles, showing that the gospel mystery preached by the apostles, and exhibited in this vision, is the same as that predicted by the prophets, and illustrated by the symbols of the Old Testament dispensation. Vs. 8, 9, 10. And the voice which I Kat ἢ φωνή, ἣν ἤκουσα ἐκ τοῦ οὐρανοῦ" heard from heaven spake unto me again, “πάλιν λαλοῦσα pst ἐμοῦ καὶ λέγουσα" ὕπ- i and) take the little book top hcad ; 19 "ὦ ΩΣ hich id Zou re neat of the anual aye λάβε τὸ βιβλαρίδιον τὸ ἠνεῳγμένον ἐν which standeth upon the sea and upon τῇ χειρὶ τοῦ ἀγγέλου τοῦ ἑστῶτος ἐπὶ τῆς the earth. AndIwent unto the angel, ϑαλάσσης καὶ ἐπὶ τῆς γῆς. Καὶ ἀπῆλϑον and said unto him, Give me the little πρὸς τὸν ἄγγελον, λέγων αὐτῷ δοῦναί μοι book. And he said unto me, Take (it,) τὸ βιβλαρίδιον. καὶ λέγεν μοι" λάβε καὶ THE LITTLE BOOK. 161 and eat it up; and it shall make thy: belly κατάφαγε αὐτό" καὶ πικρανεῖ σου τὴν κοι- Der, but στον he ΩΣ litle be oa λίαν, GAR ἐν τῷ στόματέ σου ἔσται γλυκὺ shoney. And I took the little book out «| ᾿, \» \ pli rege of the ne hand, and ate it up; and it “*“ it ne ἢ aay + et B ἐδλαρτῦιον oe ὴ was in my mouth sweet as honey: and 4*90s τοῦ ἀγγέλου, πον ον ΤΠ as soon as! had eaten it my belly was καὶ yy ἐν τῷ στόματί μου ὡς μέλι γλυκὺ" bitter. καὶ ὅτε ἔφαγον αὐτό, ἐπικράνϑη ἢ κοιλία μου. § 233. ‘And the voice which I heard from heaven,’ &c.—Apparently the voice mentioned in the fourth verse of this chapter, as directing the apostle to seal the things spoken by the seven thunders, and not to write them. The same voice, probably, as that calling the apostle up into heaven, Rev. iv. 1. The voice from the heavenly economy checking the expression of judicial intimidation, while it favours the promulgation of gospel truth. ‘Go and take the little book.’—The apostle is directed to procure the little book, no doubt for the purpose of qualifying himself for the duty he is afterwards to perform. The direction to go and take, &c., is given with the prescience that the book, when taken, is to be eaten or participated in. ‘ And he said unto me, Take it, and eat it up,’ &c.—The figure is not so strange as it appears to be when first noticed. The Psalmist says of the law, commandments, testimony, precepts of God, ‘‘ How sweet are thy words unto my taste! (yea, sweeter) than honey to my mouth. Through thy precepts I get understanding: therefore I hate every false way,” Ps. exix. 103, 104. Here is a supposed eating of the book; for if not eaten its sweetness could not be known. And the reason for this sweetness is at the same time made known, viz., that it gives understanding ; such an un- derstanding of the truth as to excite a hatred of every thing false. So we may presume the cause of the sweetness of the little book, in the mouth of the apostle, to be in the understanding which it affords—the understanding of spiritual things. Where the book is understood it is sweet, where it is not understood it is bitter. ‘ And it shall make thy belly bitter, but it shall be in thy mouth sweet as honey.” ‘ And it was in my mouth sweet as honey : and as soon as I had eaten it my belly was bitter.” This we may presume is not a vain repetition. The prediction on the part of him who gave the book, and the statement of the correctness of this prediction on the part of the recipient, like the testimony of two witnesses, establishes the fact ; and this no doubt is done to show the peculiar importance of this fact, as something to be borne in mind throughout the narration. The mouth, as the organ of the mind, and as a member of the head— the nobler part—we suppose to be a figure of the spiritual understanding ; the faculty of taking the language of revelation in its spiritual sense. The belly, on the contrary, as the organ merely of the physical appetites, and as constituting the ignobler portion of the body, we suppose to be put for the 162 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. literal understanding, or of the inferior faculty of the mind, capable only of receiving the word of revelation in its ordinary or literal sense. The little book, when eaten, produced two different sensations ; the cause of this difference being not in the book, but in the organs by which it was received. The same scroll was sweet to the mouth, but bitter to the belly. So to the literal understanding the revelation of the New ‘Testament appears to be a refinement upon the Jaw, pointing out a more perfect and exact method by which man is required to work out a righteousness of his own. ΤῸ such, the new dispensation is even more bitter than the old. They see in it no provision of divine mercy. They admire its searching moral precepts, extending to the heart or mind, as well as to the outward con- duct, which is all they understand by its sprrituality ; but they groan under its requisitions, as under a burden which conscience, in proportion to their knowledge of themselves, teaches them they are unable to bear. The letter killeth, but the Spirit giveth life. 'The natural understanding sees in the letter of the Gospel only the sentence of condemnation. ‘To the spiritual understanding, on the contrary, there is throughout the New Testament an exhibition of the plan of divine mercy. ‘The rigid exactions of the law indeed are perceived, but they are recognized as conductors, leading the humbled, convinced sinner, to feel his need of a Redeemer. The more the spiritual mind perceives its inability to fulfil the law, the greater is its reli- ance upon the provision of divine mercy. ‘Thus, to be literal, or to be car- nally-minded, is death ; but to be spiritually-minded 15 life and peace: and thus the same word of revelation which to one recipient is as honey and the honey-comb, to another appears as the bitter of gall, and as the poison of asps. When, by a spiritual understanding of the whole tenor of Scripture, we perceive our justification and salvation to be wrought out, through the im- puted merits and suffermgs of our Redeemer—when we see that, as Christ has suffered for us, we are not to suffer for ourselyves—then the contents of the little book appear sweet, yea, as honey to the mouth; for we then enjoy an antepast of the blessedness of him whose iniquities are forgiven—of him to whom sin is not imputed. But when, by a literal construction of the lan- guage of revelation, we conceive ourselves called upon to propitiate divine justice by atoning for ourselves, then the same gospel loses all its sweetness ; like the afflicted Hezekiah, for peace we have great bitterness, (Is. xxxviii. 17.) To the hungry soul (Prov. xxvii. 7) every bitter thing is sweet ; so those who feel their need of justification while ignorant of the gospel mode of providing for it, (as drowning men catch at straws,) eagerly rest their hopes upon some requisition of the law, which they think themselves able THE LITTLE BOOK. 163 to fulfil. Their hope, however fallacious, is sweet to them, for they know nothing better; and in this ignorance of God’s righteousness, while going about to establish their own righteousness, they put bitter for sweet, and sweet for bitter, (Is. v. 20.) V. 11. And he said unto me, Thou χζαὶ λέγει μοι" δεῖ σε πάλιν προρητεῦσαε must prophesy again before many peoples, o ‘ ἐπὶ λαοῖς καὶ ἔϑνεσι καὶ γλώσσαις καὶ βασι- and nations, and tongues, and kings. λεῦσι πολλοῖς. ᾧ 234. ‘Thou must prophesy again,’—or, it behoveth thee to prophesy. This we may suppose to be assigned as a reason why the apostle was re- quired to eat the little book, or scroll, viz., that by receiving this revelation in both senses, he might be qualified so to transmit it to others in the same manner. A case somewhat similar to this is described by one of the pro- phets, (Ezek. ii. 9, and iii. 1—4,) «* And when I looked, behold, a hand (was) sent unto me ; and lo, a roll of a book (was) therein. * * * * Moreover he said unto me, Son of man, eat that thou findest ; eat this roll, and go speak unto the house of Israel. So I opened my mouth, and he caused me to eat that roll. And he said unto me, Son of man, cause thy belly to eat, and fill thy bowels with this roll that I give thee. Then did I eat it; and it was in my mouth as honey for sweetness. And he said unto me, Son of man, go, get thee unto the house of Israel, and speak with my words unto them.” So the apostle is made in this vision to eat of the little book or scroll, and to receive it in both senses, and to experience the difference alluded to in the two ways of receiving it, in order that he may speak with the words of Him from whom the revelation is received—transmitting it as he received it, and ' giving his own experience of the difference as stated, that others may com- pare this difference with their experience, and make the discrimination necessary to render the communication sweet—or to know the cause of its bitterness, if such should be its taste. ‘ Before many peoples,’ &c.—The interpretation of Scripture, as of the divine will, is prophecy. The testimony of Jesus is the spirit of prophecy, Rey. xix. 10. All who bear testimony of the truth, as it is in Jesus, pro- phesy. The testimony itself prophesies. So John might be here addressed as the representative of all who succeed him in laying this portion of the word of God before the world. Indeed we may say of this apostle that, by his gospel, his epistles, and this book, he does prophesy, and has done so before many peoples and nations, &c.; but this may be equally said of other apostles, and we think the text implies something more. The word ἐπὶ, rendered here before, might be more properly translated upon, in the sense of about or concerning; as to speak or write wpona subject, is to speak or write concerning it. So ἐπὶ with a dative is used, it is said, instead of ἐπὶ with the genitive, after verbs of speaking, signifying 164 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. of, about, &c., as in this passage, προφητεῦσαι ἐπὶ λαοῖς καὶ ἔϑνεσι, x.7.1., “ to utter predictions respecting,’ &c. (Rob. Lex. 243.)* The word πάλιν, again, involves the idea of repetition, as does also its Latin equivalent iterum, from the verb itero, iterare, to do a thing the second time, to begin again, to begin afresh. (Ainsworth.) It behoveth thee to prophesy over again, or anew—di nuovo, as we find it expressed in an Italian version of the Bible of 1716—to begin again, to prophesy a second time, concerning many people and nations, (Gentiles,) and tongues, and kings or kingdoms. The ground of the prophecy, we suppose to be the same as that already gone over, but the manner in which it is to be put forth is different—the same truths illustrated by different figures. The apostle could not be said to have prophesied previously before many people, &c., but he had been prophesying concerning them, or con- cerning that which is represented by them ; as Rev. v. 9, and vii. 9, where some are represented as rejoicing; and Rev. vi. 15, and ix. 6, where others are exhibited as suffering. He is now, therefore, to repeat, or to go over afresh, exhibitions of a similar character, and pertaining to the same sub- jects. For this end he is to be qualified by receiving the little book ; by having it as it were in him—being fully imbued with its contents, both in their spiritual and literal sense. Thus qualified, he is prepared to impart what he receives to others in the same twofold sense. This is not expressed, but it is implied, else what has the exhibition of this chapter to do either with the previous or subsequent matter of the book ? RETROSPECT. ᾧ 235. The scene presented by this chapter appears to be of the char- acter of an interlude, not however to divert or distract attention, but to pre- pare the mind for a right understanding of the subsequent exhibition. The mission of the mighty angel has a threefold object: to deliver the little book—to announce the cessation of time—and to make known the double sense of the revelation contained in the little book. Connecting the account given of this extraordinary book with the declar- ation of the angel concerning the mystery to be finished in the sounding of the seventh trumpet, it appears reasonable to suppose that this book con- .* Eni with the accusative has the same signification after verbs of speaking, (Rob. Lex. 245.) So προφήτευσον ἐπὶ τὰ ουτᾶ ταῦτα, (Ezek. xxxvii. 4, Sept.) should be rendered prophesy concerning these bones, instead of on these bones ; or such is the idea to be associated with the term on. See also Ezek. xxxiv. 2, where about may be substituted for against. RETROSPECT. 165 tains the mystery alluded to; as if it were in consequence of eating the book, that the apostle was enabled to contemplate and to record the myste- ries of the seventh trumpet. Not that these mysteries are in the nature of addenda to the gospel, or that they have not been otherwise exhibited, but that this little book and the voice of the seventh trumpet contain a summary of the gospel revelation ; the revelation of the mystery of God, under the head of this seventh trumpet, being the last mode of illustration by which this mystery of the gospel is*made known. For when it is said, that in the days of the voice of this trumpet the mystery of God shall be finished, it is very plain that the mystery is put for the exhibition of the mystery. ‘The mystery itself, or purpose of the divine mind, has been com- plete from all eternity ; the making of it known only is the thing to be finished: as if it had been said, in the days of the voice of the seventh trumpet the development of the mystery of God shall be completed. Preparatory to understanding this development, we are then to be taught that the terms of days, months, times, &c., occurring frequently in the voice of this trumpet, are not terms of time ; that no chronological period literally is intended by them; and further, that whatever may be the descriptions and language of this vision, the whole of which may be represented by the little book, they are susceptible of being taken in two senses—the spiritual and literal—the first of which is as sweet as the other is bitter. We do not suppose these peculiarities of the Apocalypse to commence in this place ; we suppose them to belong to the former part of the narra- tion as much as to the subsequent; but this is the stage of revelation in which it has become proper more especially to make these explanations. As it might be said that thus far there was scarcely a possibility of taking the matter revealed in a literal or temporal sense, but in the subsequent portion of the book there is much which might be so taken; so, in the former part, the notion of time is hardly hinted at; but in the part to come, chronological terms are so much employed, that it is now absolutely necessary to guard against their misconstruction. It may be said that under the proposed construction of the term time no longer, we must set aside also the periods of time mentioned in the book of Daniel, and thus lose the support of so much prophecy in identifying the epoch of the coming of the Messiah. But, besides that in the book of Daniel there is no such angelic declaration as we have here, there is also this important difference between the two: Daniel assigns an era, a from and after (Dan. ix. 25, 26) whence to calculate his periods of time; thus furnishing specific data by which we may ascertain whether the time of the advent in question corresponds with the prediction. But in the Apocalypse there is no from and after given: we do not know when the holy city begins to be trodden under foot, or when the woman begins her flight into the wilder- 166 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. ness, or when her sojourn there commences, or when the two witnesses begin to prophesy, or when the blasphemous beast first rises from the sea. 'To ob- tain the desired date in either of these cases we are obliged to go out of the vision, and presume a warrant for finding the other part of the prophecy elsewhere. Instead of applying the solemn declaration to the matter in hand, commentators seem to have considered it as overstepping the limits of the Apocalypse, and as anticipating some subsequent moment when all the events predicted shall have transpired—defining a state of things when, ina literal sense, there shall be no more time. There is something peculiarly imposing in the thought of the sudden and entire cessation of time; and we seem to be carried away with the solemnity of the idea ; as if it were necessarily a point of Christian faith that time and eternity are inconsistent with each other, or as if time without end must be, in effect, no time at all. We know, however, almost with certainty, that if our earth and the whole solar system with which we are connected were entirely blotted out of existence, there must be other worlds and other solar systems, all having . their respective revolutions requiring time and marking time. If instead of this we suppose the end of time spoken of to apply to the destruction of this material globe, we cannot but ask why that subject is introduced in this place. How could it be said that time shall be no longer, when immedi- ately after the apostle is told that he has yet to prophesy before or concern- ing many nations, &c.? and the whole remainder of the book is an exhibition of a multitude of events yet to transpire, if any thing like a literal succes- sion of events be contemplated. On the other hand, under the construction we have adopted, that in this vision time literally is not to be taken into consideration, we are relieved from all these difficulties, and are enabled at once to seek an interpretation of what is subsequently related, without con- fining ourselves to the supposition of political or ecclesiastical events trans- piring at given epochs, and limited to certain durations. Such a release from material things and temporal objects, affords us reason enough for the introduction of the scene afforded by this chapter, and particularly for its introduction in this place. THE OUTER COURT. 167 CHAPTER XP: SEVENTH SEAL.—-SIXTH TRUMPET. SECOND WO. THE OUTER COURT—THE HOLY CITY—THE TWO WITNESSES—THE GREAT CITY—-THE EARTHQUAKE. Vs. 1,2. And there was given mea Καὶ ἐδόϑη μοι κάλαμος ὅμοιος ῥάβδῳ, reed like unto a rod: and the angel stood, λέγων ἔγειραι καὶ μέτρησον τὸν ναὺν τοῦ saying, Rise, and measure the temple of Ey ges aS Α ὙΠ eg God, and the altar, and them ΠΣ ϑεοῦ καὶ τὸ ϑυσιαστήριον καὶ τοὺς προς- 9 ~ > 2 ~ \ 1 dat ‘ >» ship ‘therein ; but [ὅν and] the court which *U”0UrTaS ey φυτῷ" ποὺ τὴν αὐλῃν τήν ἕξω- is without the temple, leave out, and mea- de TOU γαοῦ ἔκβαλε ἕξω καὶ μὴ αὐτὴν με- sure it not; for itis given unto the Gen- τρήσῃς, ὅτι ἐδόϑη τοῖς ἔϑγεσι, καὶ τὴν πό- tiles [nations]: and the holy city shall } ἡ they tread under foot forty (and) two rs ee i nll hg a ein κοντα Ovo. months. § 236. “ΑΝ there was given to me a reed like unto a rod.’-—A mea- suring rod, no doubt, such an one as was commonly employed in measuring distances, heights, &c. ‘And the angel stood, saying. —Kai ὁ ἄγγελος εἰστήκει λέγων. This reading is not the same in all editions of the Greek, although it apparently accords with the tenor of the narrative. ‘The scene is unchanged, and the division of chapters in this place was uncalled for. ‘The angel, after having given the little book, (the bitter and the sweet of which had been just experienced by the recipient,) and after having apprised the apostle of the prophetic function yet to be fulfilled by him, stands to give him further instructions ; teaching him in effect how to recommence his avocation of prophesying—an avocation like that of the prophets of old, performed by actions as well as by words. Whether we admit the reading as above or not, the natural inference seems to be that the saying or bidding accompanying the gift of the reed, was that of the angel just before speaking. ‘ Rise, and measure the temple of God.’—It does not appear that the apostle did measure, or that he attempted to do so; nor is any measure afterwards given of the temple, although at the close of the Apocalypse, the holy city is said to be measured, not by the apostle but by an angel ; and not with an ordinary reed, but with a golden reed—a standard measure of truth. It seems probable, therefore, that this order to measure is intended 20 168 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. to place in a prominent light the immeasurable attributes of the spiritual temple ; as if it had been said, Measure now if thou canst! The reed like a rod—an ordinary standard—representing human powers of admeasure- ment ; as it is said, Job xi. 7-9, “ Canst thou by searching find out God? canst thou find out the Almighty unto perfection? (It is) as high as heaven, what canst thou do? deeper than hell; what canst thou know? The measure thereof (is) longer than the earth, and broader than the 568.᾿ So, Eph. ii. 18, the great object of the disciple’s aspiration is represented to be the ability of comprehending the length, and breadth, and depth, and height, of the love of Christ ; while, at the same time, this love is said to be passing knowledge—beyond the compass of a finite mind. Something of this kind is found Zech. ii. 1-5: a man is there said to be seen with a measuring-rod, going forth to measure Jerusalem ; to see the breadth and the length thereof; but he is stopped from doing this by a mes- senger, telling him that Jerusalem shall be as towns without walls, for the multitude of men and cattle, and that the Lord himself would be a wall of fire round about her. 'There may be some correspondence between the immeasurable love of God, and this unlimited compass of the spiritual city of the prophet, or of the spiritual temple of the apostle’s vision. The dimensions of the temple, it is true, are very particularly given by another prophet, Ezek. xl. and xli.; but these forms, as they are there called, appear to be spoken of in conjunction with ordinances, leaving us to suppose that there may be the same difference between the temple of Ezekiel and that of John, as there is between the old economy and the new ;—the first being a figure of the legal dispensation with its prescriptions and limitations, and the last the arrangement in which the Great Object of worship giveth not the Spirit by measure. § 237. ‘ And the altar, and them that worship therein.—The temple we have elsewhere (ὃ 98) supposed to be. that arrangement by which, and in which, the disciple is enabled to worship God in spirit and in truth, (John iv. 24 ;) that is, serving God and not himself ;—such a service requir- ing a position obtainable only in Christ by adoption and imputation ; leay- ing the worshipper no motive of action other than that of gratitude towards his heavenly Benefactor, and zeal for his glory. In this respect the temple of Jerusalem was a symbol of Christ, as that in which only men ought to worship, (John iv. 90 :) a structure growing out of the love of God towards man, and on this account as immeasurable as that love itself. The altar we have also already considered (¢ 161) as a figure of the word or purpose of God manifested in Christ ; upon which, and by which, his sacrifice of propitiation has been set apart. By which purpose, as upon an altar, every sacrifice of thanksgiving must be sanctified or set apart, to be rendered acceptable. In the same sense, the worshippers THE OUTER COURT. 169 in the temple, “them that worship therein,” we suppose to be opposites of the Gentiles or nations—opposites of all not spiritually Jews ; these wor- shippers in the temple corresponding with the one hundred and forty-four thousand sealed ones—principles or elements of doctrine belonging exclu- sively to the system of salvation by sovereign grace. The expression “them that worship or serve therein” may refer more particularly to the priests and Levites, who were continually in the temple day and night, and whose peculiar functions were those of worship and temple service. These were sanctified and set apart by their office in the temple ; as the believer is sanctified or set apart in Christ, and is thus spiritually in him constituted a priest, even as he is a priest. Correspond- ing with this, the principles or elements of doctrine upon which God is thus worshipped are represented by these servants in the temple. These elements, as well as those peculiar to the altar, are pointed out as of the same immea- surable character as the temple itself; spiritual priests or Levites being also principles divested of all selfishness of motive : opposites of the sons of Eli, who served the altar for the sake of the portion of sacrifices allotted to them ; for which portion they sufficiently exhibited their extreme avidity, (1 Sam. ii. 15.) , § 238. ‘But the court which is without the temple leave out, and measure it not.—As the direction to measure the temple was intended to give prominence to its immeasurable character, so the order not*to measure the outer court may be intended to show that this is the symbol of some- thing not of the same unlimited character ; the temple in a spiritual sense being something enduring for eternity, while in the literal sense it is only of temporary importance. So the temple, in its external or literal sense, (its outer court,) being only a symbol intended to last but for a time, does not call for the exhibition of those unlimited powers peculiar to the mystery represented by the temple proper. ‘The external or literal sense is not of sufficient importance to be measured ; it does not belong to the spiritual system of divine worship which is to be preserved from perversion. ‘For it is given unto the Gentiles. —The literal or external sense of revelation is the subject of perversion ; the spiritual sense may be hidden, but when developed it cannot be perverted. Something else may be mis- taken for it, but the correct spiritual sense itself remains the same ; it is incapable of sustaining or of giving countenance to a false system of salva- tion. So, the arrangement of principles peculiar to the worship of God, represented by the outer court or temple in its literal sense, is that only which is subject to the influence of the elements of self-righteousness, figura- tively spoken of as the Gentiles or nations—the uncircumcised—the oppo- sites of the spiritual Jews. ‘ And the holy city they shall tread under foot forty and two months.’— 170 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. It is not expressed, but it seems to be implied, that the possession of the outer court of the temple by the Gentiles is a figure equivalent to that of their treading the holy city under foot ; the first figure involving the last : the temple being in the city, and possession of the city being requisite for a possession or control of the court of the temple. The holy city we sup- pose to be Jerusalem; but not the new Jerusalem, or new vision of peace, such as it is seen by the apostle when coming down from heaven, (Rev. xxi. 2.) It is the vision of peace, as discerned in a literal construction of the language of revelation, corresponding with the Jerusalem that now is, spoken of by Paul, (Gal. iv. 25.) Jerusalem in bondage to the Romans, was literally the holy city trodden under foot by the Gentiles. So the vision of peace revealed in the Scriptures, under a literal construction of that revelation, is in bondage or brought into subjection to self-righteous and legal principles. The mysteries of redemption are thus in the posses- sion of these erroneous principles, as a captured city is in possession of the conquerors. So we may say of the sacred Scriptures, figuratively speaking, while in the hands of interpreters insisting upon the literal sense, they are in a state of captivity, deprived of the liberty or power of promoting the glory of God, by a just development of the truth ; as the children of Israel were prevented by the Egyptian despot from going forth from their place of bondage to worship or serve their God, as they had been directed. The verb πατέω strictly signifies only treading, (Rob. Lex. 561 ;) tread- ing the city being equivalent to holding possession of it, or dwelling in it ; and this seems to be all that the sense here requires. As the Gentiles were to have possession of the outer court of the temple, so they were to have possession of the city. The difficulty is, that the enemy has possession ; the captured party is under constraint, deprived of the liberty of performing its proper functions. So the mysteries of the true worship of God and of the true means of salvation, as revealed in the Scriptures, while under the control of legal, self-righteous, and literal rules of construction, are also under constraint, incapable of exhibiting the truth according to its spiritual and proper sense. | § 239. Although the possession of the court of the temple, and that of the holy city, are in some degree equivalent figures, we do not suppose them to signify precisely the same thing. The temple, with its precincts and appurtenances, apparently represents the elements of the economy of grace pertaining more especially to the worship of God; while the czty, with all its peculiar properties, represents that portion of the same arrangement of grace, applying more particularly to the eternal salvation of the believer. “ One thing have I desired of the Lord,” says David, ‘that will I seek after; that I may dwell in the house of the Lord all the days of my life, to behold the beauty of the Lord, and to inquire in his temple.”—That is, THE HOLY CITY. 171 to inquire into the mystery represented by the temple proper ; the spiritual arrangement of principles by which the worshipper is enabled to come unto God in Christ.—* For in the time of trouble,” the Psalmist adds, ‘“ he shall hide me in his pavilion ; in the secret of his tabernacle shall he hide me ; he shall set me upon a rock.”—Here are three figures of the same posi- tion of safety. To be in the pavilion of God, is to be in Christ ; to be in the secret of the tabernacle of God, is to be in Christ ; and to be set upon a rock, is to rest upon Christ as upon a foundation. In this position it is that the disciple is enabled to draw near to God, and to offer in his taber- nacle sacrifices of joy and gratitude, (Ps. xxvii. 4-6.) It is commonly admitted by all who bear the name of Christ, that he is the only way of access to God ; that we must come-unto God in his name ; that he is the only mediator ; but the ordinary apprehension of this privilege is very superficial, and little better than literal. Such as it is, we may com- pare it to the outer court of the temple. [{ is subject to great perversion. It is in the possession of the elements of literal construction, as the outer court was given to the Gentiles. The intercession or mediation of Christ, in the ordinary sense, is supposed to be an oral intercession—a pleading as by word of mouth ; while, in a spiritual sense, it must consist in a virtual intervention of his merits—of his imputed righteousness. In the first sense, it is evident that doctrinal views may be admitted inconsistent both with the divinity of Christ and with the truth of salvation through his righteousness alone ; in the last sense, these erroneous principles can find no place, for the virtual intercession or mediation of the merits of Christ involve the truths of his divine nature, and of salvation through his imputed merits alone. Such, we suppose, to be the difference between the temple and the outer court of the temple. A city or walled town isa place of safety and comfort—a dwelling furnished with the means of shelter, food, and defence. Such is the econo- my of grace with reference to its immediate object—the salvation of the sinner—* A city which has foundations, whose builder and maker is God.” A self-righteous plan of salvation, on the contrary, is a city without a foundation, of which man only is the builder and maker. Here, it is said, (Heb. xiii. 14,) we have no continuing city, but we seek one to come ; we have no means of salvation in any merits of our own. ΑΒ it was said of the wandering Hebrews in the desert, “they found no city to dwell in.” In the wilderness of Sinai, as under the threatening of the law, their position was that of the disciple out of Christ, and unprotected by the im- putation of his merits. In Christ only, we find a shelter from the wrath to come—a defence from the power of the legal accuser, and the means of obtaining and of sustaining eternal life ; out of him our condition is spiritually analogous to that of the people of God during their sojourn in the desert. 172 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. This position in Christ, we suppose to be the same as that afforded by the holy city in its proper spiritual sense, that is, the economy of grace. This economy, however, has been misunderstood in proportion as the language of Revelation in respect to it has been literally construed. ‘The new Jeru- salem, it is true, has been supposed to be in some way a representation of the mystery of redemption ; but the holy city has been in possession of the Gentiles. The vision of peace has been perverted by self-righteous elements of doctrine; even so much 50, that, in the apprehension of many, the object of salvation (the community of disciples) has been substituted for the means of salvation, the plan of sovereign grace. The same erroneous principles have thus perverted the language of Scripture, in respect to the views peculiar to the worship of God, and to the salvation of the sinner. The city and the outer court of the temple have been alike trodden by the Gentiles. § 240. ‘Forty and two months.’—This is the time during which the Gentiles were to have possession of the city ; and it seems to be implied that the gift of the outer court to them was to be of a corresponding dura- tion; the term forty-two months applying to both. This period has been supposed to be equivalent to one of twelve hundred and sixty years, calculat- ing in round numbers thirty days to the month ; and various efforts have been made to assign this term of time, in a literal, chronological sense, to a certain portion of ecclesiastical history ; but for the reasons already given (ᾧ 230) we believe time in this literal sense is not to be taken into consideration. With those engaged in contemplating the mysteries of this vision there is tume no longer. It isremarkable, however, that the several mystic terms of time, in this and in the following chapters, correspond so nearly with each other, taking the expression time, and times, and half a time, to be synonymous with that of a year, two Years, and half a year; a construction now very generally admitted.* These various periods all resulting, in round numbers, in a term of twelve hundred and sixty days. As already suggested we can only account for this peculiarity, by sup- posing these various, terms of an equal period to be intended to point out a certain parallelism in the predictions severally connected with them. In applying this mystic scale, we conceive it as reasonable to convert the twelve hundred and sixty days into forty-two months, as to turn the forty- two months into days; and we feel the same liberty to turn the months, or days, into three and a half years, as we should m changing the years into days. As far as the parallelism of apocalyptic predictions is con- cerned this distinction may not be important, but it may be of service in throwing light upon other portions of Scripture; by enabling us to compare the figures of this vision with some of the historical relations of the Old * See Faber and others. THE TWO WITNESSES. 173 Testament.* At present we confine ourselves to the conclusion that this term of forty-two months is intended only to indieate the coincidence of the treading of the Gentiles, with the prophesying of the two witnesses in sack- cloth for twelve hundred and sixty days ; and that the two terms are designed to point out this Gentile predominance and prophesying in sackcloth, as co- incident with the sojourn of the woman in the wilderness, (Rev. xii. 6 and 14,) and with the power given to the beast, (Rev. xiii. 5.) In a literal sense, the Holy City was trodden by the Gentiles (the Romans) in the time of the apostles; and although the possession of it afterwards changed hands, there has been no time for the last eighteen hundred years that it has not been subject to Gentile power. In a spiritual sense it would be equally difficult to say when it was since the days of the crucifixion, that the mysterious truths represented by the outer court, and by the city, have not been perverted in their exhibition by the influence of incorrect doctrinal principles. Itis easy to point out twelve hundred and sixty years during which the city of Jerusalem was possessed by Gentiles ; but it is not so easy to point out a single hundred years of the Christian era, when it was not in the same predicament. In a literal sense, too, the temple was destroyed in the time of the Emperor Titus, not one stone being left upon another. Not only the outer court, but the temple itself, was in this sense given to the Gentiles; and there can hardly be said to have been a period admitting of discrimination between the temple and the outer court since. We seem to be shut up, therefore, to the conclusion above adopted, that the employment of these terms of time is altogether of a mystical char- acter, designed to direct the attention to a species of synthesis, or combina- tion, or collation of the several representations accompanied with these marks of identity, as so many different features of one picture. Vs. 3,4. And I will give (power) unto Kai δώσω τοῖς δυσὶ μάρτυσί μου, καὶ my two witnesses, and they shall pro- προφητεύσουσιν ἡμέρας χιλίας διακοσίας phesy a thousand two hundred (and) .." Binuty ila ἜΣ ΠΣ oy SE EE ERIE CEL AME de l/l A σάκκους, ΠΟΙ 5 ys, ᾿ . > ε δύ ay ~ \ ε δύ λ ΤΥ ς Sige re the ὑπο, O1IVe-Urecs,. ΜΠῚ LNG Ὁ Οὐ nee eee ee τ Ὁ tee an . . " 2 af, 5 ~ ~ ~ c ~ two candlesticks standing before the God ἐνώπιον τοῦ κυρίου τῆς γῆς ἑστῶτες. of the earth. § 241. ‘I will give unto my two witnesses.—The word power is not in the original. It would probably be a better rendering to say, I will give * There is evidently a strong analogy between the history of the children of Israel, from their exodus to their possession of the promised land, and the experience of the Christian disciple in matters of doctrine, or his progress in faith from his first perception of the bondage of the law to his full enjoyment of gospel truth. Our limits, however, will not admit of enlarging upon this illustration at present, except to remark that there may be a like analogy between these three and a half year- terms of the Apocalypse and the three and a half years’ drought in the time of the prophet Elijah. 174 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. mn charge to my two witnesses. This is the part to be given them—the duty assigned them to perform. 'To give power, simply implies a liberty of exercising the power or not; but to give in charge, while it implies the gift of power, also leaves no election to the agent, whether to discharge the function assigned or not. Whatever these two witnesses represent, it is something necessarily performing that which God designed should be per- formed by it. ‘My two witnesses ;’—or, as it might be rendered, the two witnesses of me. The same mighty angel is still speaking ; the angel whose face was as the sun, a personification of the Son of God. His witnesses, or the witnesses of him, must be such as bear witness to his character and offices, as announced in the gospel. We suppose these to be two elements of divine revelation virtually bearing testimony to the mystery of godliness, as manifested in Jesus Christ. ‘ And they shall prophesy ;’—that is, interpret the will and purposes of God, (ᾧ 69;) not so much in the sense of predicting events, as in that of unfolding the designs of God in the work of redemption. The two wit- nesses are instruments by which these designs are made known—the Old and New Covenants, or Testaments, (διαϑῆκαι,) not only as they are revealed in the Scriptures, but also as they have been in the divine mind from the beginning ; for what is said of them in the subsequent verse seems to imply that they have been and are perpetually before God. The ex- hibition made of them in the Scriptures may be said to be their prophesy- ing or preaching. ‘Twelve hundred and sixty days clothed in sackcloth.’—That is, ap- parently, they are to prophesy in sackcloth for this term; besides which, they may have prophesied before this period, or may do so afterwards, in a different garb. This prophesying in sackcloth is to continue twelve hundred and sixty days, a period when reduced to months, calculating thirty days to the month, corresponding with that during which the city was to be trodden by the Gentiles—showing the coincidence of the two pre- dictions ;—as if it were said, So long as the city is trodden by the Gentiles, so long the prophesying of these witnesses must he in sackcloth. In the nature of the case the one peculiarity involving the other. Assuming these two witnesses to be the two covenants, or the legal and the gospel dispensations, as revealed in the Scriptures, they may be said to bear testimony of Christ at all times, and in all eternity, existing in the divine mind as they have done from the beginning, and witnessing in their spirit- ual sense throughout eternity ; but they may be said to prophesy in a garb of mourning and humiliation, especially when the language in which they are re- vealed is so understood as to be that of the law, rather than that of the gospel. A raiment of sackcloth was, particularly amongst the Hebrews, a sign of mourning for the dead ; and spiritually it may represent a mourning on account THE TWO WITNESSES. 175 of the position of death or condemnation incident to the imputation of sin, as a consequence of a state of subjection to the law. Jacob put sackcloth upon his loins, whengnourning for the supposed death of Joseph, Gen. xxxvii. 34. The people were directed to gird them- selves with sackcloth for the death of Abner, 2 Sam. 111. 31; and the prophet calls upon the inhabitants of Jerusalem to “ Lament, like a virgin girded with sackcloth for the husband of her youth,” Joel i. 8. From this primary use of the material it became a token of mourning generally, and a sign of humilitation and penitence. Children, as we have before remarked, are figures of righteousnesses or merits. ‘The sinner, brought to a conviction of his entire destitution of merit, mourns as one mourneth for a lost son ; so, in the marriage relation, the husband is the figure of the Redeemer ; and those convinced of sin, and without the knowledge of a Saviour, have reason indeed to lament, as a virgin girded in sackcloth for the husband of her youth. In like manner, all who contemplate man only as dead in trespasses and sins, may be com- pared to mourners for the dead. ὁ § 242. A literal and legal misconstruction of the language of revelation, both in respect to the old and new dispensations, exhibits the sinner in this state of death. It goes no further—the letter killeth—Christ is spoken of as a Saviour, but he is represented only as a Judge. ‘The gospel is confess- edly the glad tidings of salvation, but it is virtually exhibited only as a re- finement of the law. Christ is declared to be the way of salvation; but man is in effect supposed to be dependent for eternal life upon some right- eousness, or holiness, or virtue of his own. He is thus, after all that divine mercy has done for him, supposed ‘to be left in the state of the dead; and the testimony of revelation in respect to him appears to be no other than the language of mourning. ‘This must be so, so long as, in the exhibition of the economy of redemption, Christ is not discerned as the Lord our right- eousness, and so long as the only ground of the believer’s hope is not per- ceived to be that of sovereign grace. So long as the holy city, the vision of peace, (Jerusalem,) the exhibition of the divine plan of redemption, is in the possession, and subject to the perversion of elements of self-right- eousness, so long the language both of the Old and New Testaments will appear to be the language of mourning, and so long both the old and new dispensations, as revealed in the Scriptures, will appear as witnesses indeed of Christ, but witnesses prophesying in sackcloth. The fault is not in the witnesses, or in the two dispensations, or in the Scripture account of them, but it is in that misconstruction of this account which throws over the tes- timony of these two covenants the garb of mourning ; this misconstruction arising from the influence of self-righteous principles figuratively styled Gentiles, that is, opposites of Jews inwardly, 176 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. The result will not differ much if we give to these two witnesses the appellation of the law and the gospel.* These both are witnesses of Christ —the law, used lawfully, showing the necessity of a remedy for sin; and the gospel, rightly understood, showing the provision of that remedy to be precisely such as to meet the case. The law unlawfully used, on the con- trary, and the gospel, contemplated merely as a commentary upon the law, while they witness of Christ, can do so only in a garb of sackcloth. . We do not pretend to define a time or place where the misconstruction alluded to has prevailed; whether in the disciple’s own breast, or in the world at large, or in any portion of it. Where the carcase is, it is said, there the eagles shall be gathered together. Wherever the error is to be found, there these witnesses are prophesying in sackcloth ; and this so long as the exhibition of the economy of redemption to the same individual or mind is perverted by the influence of the Gentile elements of self-justifica- tion; the one peculiarity involving the other. A clothing of sackcloth is the opposite of white rament—the white linen, fine and clean, declared to be the righteousness of the saints ; and which we take to be the imputed righteousness of Christ. ‘The two witnesses, during the season of humiliation, do not appear clad in this livery of the household of faith. And, as in physics black is said to be nothing more than the defi- ciency of colour, the rays of light not being reflected. so with the witnesses, so long as they do not exhibit the robe of divine righteousness—the gar- ment bright as the light—the want of this array causes them to appear as in sackcloth ; as the Sun of righteousness, so long as his true character is not * We do not mean by these terms to confine our idea of the law to what is said of it in the Old Testament alone, nor our idea of the gospel to what is said of that in the New Testament alone; we consider them each, as revealed in both the Old and New Testaments ;—the gospel being shadowed forth in the Levitical dispensa- tion, as well as in the typical history of the patriarchs, and constituting the burden of the Psalms and of the prophets ; and the legal dispensation being referred and ap- pealed to, and argued upon, in setting forth the glad tidings of the New Testament. The law and the prophets are spoken of, Rom. iii. 21, as witnessing to the right- eousness of God, evidently considering them as one witness of Christ. So, Is. viii. 16, the law and the testimony are appealed to as one witness ; and John v. 39, the Scrip- tures, those of the Old Testament of course—no other Scriptures being then in exist- ence—are referred to by Christ as witnessing of him. On the other hand, the preaching of the gospel is spoken of as “a witness unto all nations,” Matt. xxiv. 14; and the testimony of Jesus, Rev. i. 2, and xix. 10, is also spoken of as a witness; while it is said also to be the spirit, or as we may say, the essence of prophecy ;—to testify and to witness being expressed by the same word in the Greek; and in fact the only difference between the terms in our language being this, that one is a Latinism and the other is Saxon, We have thus no occa- sion for going out of the Scriptures to find two special witnesses of Jesus. Two wit- nesses always prophesying ; but prophesying in sackcloth only for a limited term in the sense supposed. THE TWO WITNESSES. 177 perceived by the spiritual understanding, appears in a literal aspect black as sackcloth of hair, (¢ 164.) § 243. The children of the bride-chamber do not mourn while the bridegroom is with them; but the days come, says our Saviour, when the bridegroom will be taken from them, and then shall they fast or mourn, Matt. ix. 15; fasting and mourning being terms scripturally interchangeable, or nearly so. These days of fasting probably correspond with the days of prophesying in sackcloth. Wherever and whenever the disciple is unable to trust in his imputed identity with his Saviour, as the wife is accounted one with her husband, there the bridegroom is taken away, and there is the season for mourning and fasting; there too, “ the city sits solitary,”—the economy of redemption is no longer recognized as the bride adorned for her husband. The ways of Zion do mourn—her beauty is departed, (Lam. 1. 4 and 6)—the gold has become dim, and the fine gold changed. We have only to suppose the scriptural revelation of the two covenants —the legal and gospel dispensations—to be read under the influence of such misconstruction as to cause them to appear to prophesy bitter things instead of sweet, to appear as the messengers of death rather than of life, and we shall contemplate them as two witnesses of Jesus clothed in sackcloth. Or if we suppose the law and the prophets of the Old Testament as one wit- ness, and the gospel of the New Testament as the other witness, taken in a literal sense, (2 Cor. iii. 6, 7,) to be so construed as to carry with them a legal import only, we shall then see cause for the mourning of the chil- dren of the bride-chamber ; while we also see the prophesying in sackcloth of these two instruments of interpreting the divine counsels, to be a conse- quence of the possession of the city by the Gentzles—a cause of lamenta- tion alluded to apparently, Is. i. 21, ‘‘ How is the faithful city become an harlot! It was full of judgment ; righteousness lodged in it, but now mur- derers,’’—(principles tending to death or condemnation.) ‘Thy silver is become dross, thy wine mixed with water,’—(adulterated ; the price of re- demption being represented by that which is in reality worthless, and the atonement by that which is deprived of its exhilarating quality of joy and gladness.) “Thy princes are rebellious,’—(opposed to the sovereignty of God.) ‘Companions of thieves’”—(robbing God of the honour and glory due Him for the work of redemption.) ‘ Every one loveth gifts, and followeth after rewards,”—(mercenary principles substituted for those of grat- itude for God’s free gift:) “they judge not the fatherless, neither doth the cause of the widow come before them.” There is no provision in this per- verted system for the sinner in his entirely helpless state—as by nature, without any merit of his own, exposed to the condemnation of the law with- out a defence. A parallel allusion may be found, (Ps. exxxvii. 4,) “ How shall we sing the Lord’s song in a strange land?” How shall the redemp- 178 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. tion of Christ be celebrated amongst those who advocate a system of self- justification ; or how can gospel principles of doctrine be set forth in a legal and self-righteous system of salvation? It is very evident that these mis- taken views—this prophesying in sackcloth, and treading of the city, have not been confined literally to a period of one thousand two hundred and sixty years in the Christian church, still less to any like period prior to the Christian era ; we have again therefore, in this particular, to fall back upon the declaration of the mighty angel, there shall be time no longer. § 244. ‘These are the two olive-trees, and the two candlesticks stand- ing before the God of the earth.—Not merely two olive-trees, but the two olive-trees ; referring perhaps to the vision of the prophet, Zech. iv. 2, 7, << And he said unto me, What seest thou? And I said, I have looked, and behold a candlestick, all of gold, with a bowl upon the top of it, and his seven lamps thereon, and seven pipes to the seven lamps, which are upon the top thereof: and two olive-trees by it, one upon the night side of the bowl, and the other upon the left side thereof.’ This exhibition is declared in the sixth verse to be “the word of the Lord unto Zerubbabel, say- ing, Not by might, nor by power, but by my Spirit, saith the Lord of Hosts.” ‘The declaration is preparatory to a prediction of bring’ng forth the head-stone (or perhaps the key-stone, speaking of the plan of salvation as an arch) “ with shoutings, Grace, grace unto 11. The two olive-trees or branches are afterwards, v. 14, declared to be the two anointed ones, that stand by the Lord of the whole earth, corresponding very nearly with what is said in the Apocalypse of the two witnesses—“ These are the two olive- trees, &c., standing before the God of the earth,” or according to the Greek, the Lord of the earth. ‘The oil of olives being employed in anointing or setting apart any one to a distinguished office, the tree itself producing the oil, is put for an anointed person or thing set apart to some peculiar office. These two anointed ones were standing before the Lord, we may say, in the time of Zechariah, and this we suppose to have been the case with the two witnesses ; but they were not then or there perhaps in sackcloth. These anointed ones are termed in the Septuagint the two sons of fat- ness. The scriptural attribute of the olive is its fatness, which quality in a good sense is a figure of the righteousness or merits of Christ; the disci- ple, in partaking of this righteousness by imputation, being said to partake of the fatness of the good olive-tree, (Rom. xi. 17-24.) When the dove returned to Noah with an olive-leaf, he knew that the waters were abated ; and perhaps from that time to the present an olive-branch has been pro- verbially considered an emblem of peace and reconciliation. These two olive-trees or olive-branches are witnesses of the reconciliation of man to God. They bear testimony to the mode or process of this reconciliation ; and this we think may be affirmed of the two economies, or dispensations, THE TWO WITNESSES. 179 They are harbingers of peace with God, inasmuch as they exhibit the rich provision by which it is secured, Or, if we prefer it, the law and the pro- phets serve as one olive-branch in the Old Testament, while the gospel is seen as the other in the new; that is, when both of these are rightly un- derstood ; otherwise, so long as the witnesses prophesy in sackcloth, their true character as olive-trees is not perceived. ‘ And the two candlesticks.’-—There are no two candlesticks mentioned elsewhere in the Scriptures. The golden candlesticks of the temple were tenin number, five on each side, (two ranges,) 1 Kings vii. 49, and there was but one such candlestick in the vision of Zechariah; although the office of the two olive-trees seen by the prophet seems to have been to supply the candlestick and its seven branches with the material for giving light by means of two golden pipes, which may be equivalent to the two candle- sticks of the Apocalypse. According to some editions of the Greek, how- ever, we may read, “ and two candlesticks there before the God of the earth,” &c. The witnesses are the two olive-trees, and certain two candlesticks, They perform the part of candlesticks in exhibiting the light of the glory of that rich provision of righteousness, which is figuratively the fatness or ful- ness of the olive-tree—the true means of sanctification, anointing, or setting apart: the true means by which the disciple is brought out of his position of darkness by nature into the position of God’s marvellous light, 1 Pet. ii. 9; both the old and the new dispensations being instrumental in exhibiting and carrying into effect this wonderful operation of Sovereign Grace. They are not candles, but candlesticks ; they are not the light, but the means by which the light is exhibited, or imparted—not an intellectual light, but, as we sup- pose, the moral perfection of the Deity—spiritual light or divine righteousness imparted by imputation to the subjects of divine favour. As it is said, Is, Ix. 19, 20, “The Lord shall be unto thee an everlasting light, and thy God thy glory.” “The Lord shall be thine everlasting light, and the days of thy mourning shall be ended.” The two witnesses are the instruments of exhibiting this light of divine righteousness, ‘Standing before the Lord of the earth.’—Were it not for this expres- sion we might confine our ideas of these witnesses, olive-trees, or candle- sticks, to the written revelations of divine merey—the Old and New Testa- ments ; but this standing seems to imply something perpetual, eternal, in the sight of the Lord, as the words ἐνώπιον τοῦ κυρίου might be rendered. Whether the light from the candlesticks be perceived by men or not; or whether the fatness or fruit of the olive-trees be recognized or not by those for whose benefit it is designed, the candlesticks and the olive-trees are ever before God, This consideration induces us to prefer supposing the two Witnesses to represent the two covenants or dispensations, as they exist and have always existed in the mind of Him who is without variableness or 180 * ΠῊΒ SEVENTH SEAL —THE SIXTH TRUMPET. shadow of change. As the Creator and Preserver of all things, God is de- clared by the apostle (Acts xiv. 17) never to have left himself without wit- ness ; so too as the Gracious Sovereign he has never lost sight of his pur- poses of mercy; his covenants, old and new, have been with him from the beginning, and are, and have always been, and always will be, the witnesses of his loving-kindness and tender merey—always standing before God, but not always revealed to man; and when revealed, not always discerned in their true characters. . V.5. And if any man will hurt them, Καὶ εἴ τις αὐτοὺς ϑέλει ἀδικῆσαι, πῦρ fire proceedeth out of their mouth, and EXTLOQEVETUL ἐκ TOU στόματος αὐτῶν καὶ κα- devoureth their enemies: and ifany man |, Bien cote Sots ere on will hurt them, he must in this manner be Η 3 : a sh $ μ᾿ ρος ἘΠ᾿ $ \illed. τοὺς ϑέλει ἀδικῆσαι, οὕτω δεῖ αὐτὸν ἀποκ- τανϑῆναι. ᾧ 245. ‘If any one,’ &c.—The word man is not in the original. The participle τις may be applied to man or angel, but we suppose it to be put here for principle. If any principle hurt, (¢ 174,) or tend to cause these two witnesses to appear to be unjust, or wanting in righteousness, fire pro- ceedeth out of their mouth. The action of revealed truth, comprehended in their prophesying, will devour or overcome their enemies ; corresponding with what we have before supposed to be represented by the element of fire, ($ 30.) This agent of destruction is also very plainly indicated to be a reve- lation, by its proceeding from the mouth of the two witnesses; and these witnesses being the legal and gospel dispensations, bearing testimony as with one mouth to the goodness and glory of Jehovah, their enemies are doctrinal principles, operating against their testimony—an opposition entirely ineffec- tual, the matter of this testimony itself destroying these opposing principles by exhibiting their fallacy. ‘ And if any one will hurt them, he must in this manner be killed.’— This clause seems to be a repetition of the preceding. The sense appar- ently is this: If any one desire to prove them wnyust, fire proceedeth out of their mouth, &c.; and therefore if any one do this, in this way he must be killed, or destroyed ; that is, by the fire out of their mouth. Whatever the enemy be, the destruction to be encountered is of this kind ; the result of the action of the word of God through the instrumentality of the revelation made by these two witnesses. A destruction similar to that predicted of the mystery of iniquity—the man of sim—whom the Lord shall consume with the spirit or breath of his mouth, 2 Thess. ii. 8, and to that of the wicked, Is. xi. 4. The breath, or fire, or spirit, being the same in all these cases ; the difference being only in the instrumentality. Taking the two witnesses to be the two dispensations, the fire from their mouths is the revealed word of God acting through their instrumentality upon opposing errors, or erroneous doctrines. THE TWO WITNESSES. 181 It is not necessary to suppose this killing or devouring to be instanta- neous. It may be something gradually and continually in operation—as the breath of the Lord is said, Is. xxx. 33, to be “like a stream of brim- stone ;” brimstone or sulphur, as the fuel of subterranean fire, being a figure of perpetuity. The action of divine revelation in the destruction of false doctrines is thus represented as something perpetually in operation, over- whelming and devouring until every opposing principle has yielded to its power. “ Behold the name of the Lord cometh from far, burning with his anger, and the burden thereof is heavy : his lips are full of indignation, and his tongue as a devouring fire : and his breath, as an overflowing stream,” Is. xxx. 27, 28. V.6, These have Mba to ri heaven, Οὗτοι ἔχουσι τὴν ἐξουσίαν κλεῖσαι τὸν desk diode ena Cee τῆν ΚΑ κ κος turn them to blood, and to smite the earth 790PNTSMS, GUTuN” | Kar Esovatuy EZovow with all plagues, as often as they will. a) ὑδάτων, PRGEP UR QUT EG tata ΘΑ πατάξαι τὴν γῆν ἐν πάσῃ πληγῆ, δσάκις ἐὰν ϑελήσωσι. ᾧ 246. ‘ These have power,’ &c.—That is, such is their commission ; the gift of power being equivalent to an injunction to perform that for the accom- plishment of which the power or ability is given. Although these two wit- nesses are instruments of revealing the mystery of salvation, they are charged with doing this in such a manner as that it should be only partially understood for a certain season. And this probably for the same reason that this mystery itself has been first announced through the medium of the types and symbols of the Old Testament revelation ; and for the same rea- son that our Saviour explained himself in parables to the multitude gener- ally, and even to his own disciplés only so far as they were able to receive it. “ΤῸ shut heaven.’—To shut or lock up ; the word in the original im- plying the use of a key. Heaven we suppose to be a display of the econo- my of redemption by symbolical representation, which, when spiritually understood, may be said to be opened or unlocked ; when not so understood —when only the symbols and figurative language are apparent—it is locked or shut. The old and new covenants, as revealed in the Scriptures, being the in- struments of revealing the mysteries of redemption, have the power of shut- ting heaven, by so clothing their revelation in symbolical and figurative lan- guage as to require a key for interpreting, developing, unlocking, the true meaning. This power is virtually theirs ; it is given or committed to them, in the nature of the case. So, to the apostles of our Lord, the keys of the kingdom of heaven were given, that, instrumentally, they might open its mysteries to some, and conceal them from others, Matt. xviii. 18; speaking some truths plainly, and clothing others in language not so easily understood 182 THE SEVENTH SEAL.—THE SIXTH TRUMPET. —acting indeed entirely under divine guidance, influence, and control, al- though apparently possessed of a discretionary power. ‘That it rain not’—or, word for word, that the rain moisten not, (Rob. Lex. 113) depriving the heavenly showers of their beneficent quality The atonement of Christ we suppose to be represented by the element of water, in the gentle action of rain or of showers, as well as in fountains and rivers. The old and new dispensations, as revealed in the Scriptures, ex-— hibit this atonement; but it depends instrumentally upon the exhibition, or mode of exhibition, whether this provision of divine mercy appear to be one of propitiation or not. ‘To those who understand the language of revela- tion in its literal sense only, the heavens may be said to be as brass, (Deut. xxvii. 13.) To them it affords no refreshing element. In all the types and symbols of the Old Testament, they perceive only certain curious partic- ulars of the history of a singular people or nation; and in the New Tes- tament, they see in the person of Jesus only a teacher of morality: in what he taught only so many moral precepts, and in his life and sufferings only an example of patience and forbearance worthy of imitation. To them heaven is shut; the rain descends not; orif it descend it moistens not. ‘To their apprehension the atonement of Christ affords no vivifying influence. ‘In the days of their prophecy ;’—that is, in the days of their prophe- sying in sackcloth. So long as they prophesy im sackcloth, it rains not, or the rain affords no moisture. The purport of the clause we take to be this: that while the interpretation of the purpose of redeeming mercy is shroud- ed by a legal and literal construction of revelation, there will not be that exhibition of the atonement of Christ which corresponds with the gentle and refreshing influence of rain or showers. In conformity however with our previous remarks, we do not suppose these days of their prophecy to refer literally to a period of time. In the sense in which we have before spoken of the fasting of the chil- dren of the bride-chamber, ($ 243,) we may easily suppose two disciples in the immediate vicinity of each other, even in the same family; one of whom may be said to enjoy the presence of the bridegroom. He leans with full confidence upon the redeeming power of his Saviour. With him the days of fasting and mourning are ended; but the other has not yet reached this happy position of faith: the bridegroom is taken from him ; he mourns over the conviction of his sins, and of his destitution of merit ; but he discerns not the provision intended for his consolation. Correspond- ing with this, we suppose the two witnesses may be prophesying to some in sackcloth, while with others this season of mourning has passed away. To the first class the heavens appear shut, and even the rain affords no moist- ure; while to individuals of the latter class, the spiritual phenomena they contemplate are like the approaching summer—the singing of birds and the THE TWO WITNESSES. 183 voice of the turtle is heard in their land. All this may be readily imagined without reference to any chronological period, in a literal sense. § 247. ‘And have power over waters to turn them to blood.’—Our views of this bloody transmutation of the element of purification, have been already anticipated in treating of the second and third trumpets, ($ 190.) The waters (plural) we suppose to be waters of the earth, opposites of the rain from heaven. They represent all means of propitiation of man’s device. The prophesying of the witnesses, although in sackcloth, has the effect of demonstrating that all these proposed human means of atonement must necessarily be means of blood. They must cost the eternal life of the sin- ner; as man cannot atone for himself without paying the penalty of his transgressions by eternal suffering. The old and new dispensations, as revealed in the Scriptures, even when clothed in figurative language, and understood in a literal sense, have the power of showing the fallacy of all human attempts at self-justification. ‘ And to smite the earth with all plagues as often as they will. The earth we have supposed to be a system of salvation, or the position of such a system (ᾧ 162) founded upon a literal construction of revelation, and the opposite of the display of the economy of grace represented by heaven, (Ὁ 167.) The term rendered plague may be as correctly translated strokes, equivalent we may presume to any appliances of a standard of truth, by which the errors of a false doctrinal system may be detected. These plagues remind us, however, of the accounts given in Exodus of the plagues of Egypt, which suggest also the probability of an analogy between the earthly system, and that represented by the Egyptian state of bondage. The plagues of Egypt were designed to bring about the deliverance of the children of Israel; so the plagues to be administered by the two witnesses may be designed to bring to a termination the subjecting of elements of truth to the literal or legal system represented by the earth. The two dis- pensations, as revealed, have the power to test the earthly system, and to expose its errors as often as their elements of truth are applied to it, as a standard or criterion of judgment ; which uniform capability is figuratively spoken of as the power of smiting as often as they will. The earthly system may be said to furnish a dwelling, (“our earthly house of this tabernacle,”) the opposite of the position in Christ, denomi- nated (2 Cor. v. 1) a building of God—a house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens. In allusion to which it is said, Ps. xci. 9, 10, “ Because thou hast made the Lord (which is) my refuge, (even) the Most High, thy habitation, there shall no evil befall thee, neither shall any plague come nigh thy dwelling.” Those on the contrary who are out of Christ must be con- tinually exposed to the powers of legal γύρον